^^:^^^« .•^f:^ Cffi«l ^C'^- c ^- ^ cc eg «5' ^ <*ci-«; LIBRARY OF CONGRESS. I .^^.^ '£l/dS't it UNITED STATES OP AMERICA. < if <:•i - C C c '(^^^. 1. c < m^;dves much disappointed in their expectations. The whole history of the remaining [)art of his reign, exhibits an uninter- rupted series of attacks upon the liberty, property, and Uves of his sub- jects.''— P. 43. 140 pox's JAMES THE SECOND, The most outrageous operations of Charles's tyranny were carried on in Scotland. This work exhibits, in considerable detail, the horrible system of proscription and murder, which has given him a ver}- reasonable claim to the company, in history or any where else, of Tiberius ; for so we must be al- lowed to think, notwithstanding Mr. Fox has taken exception to Burnet's classing these two names together, forgetting that he himself had done the very same thing in an earlier page. The scene becomes more hateful at every step ; till at length we behold one general spectacle of massacre, in which the most infernal riots of cruelty to which military ruffians, fully let loose, could be stimulated, were authorized and ap- plauded by a government, which colleges^ and dignitaries, and a large and preponderating part of the nation, adored as of divine authority, and really deserved, as a reward of such a faith, the privilege of adoring. It is after viewing such a course of transactions, that we want expressions of somewhat more emphatical reprobation, in closing the account with this wricked monarch, than those, though very strong and com- prehensive, which Mr. Fox has used in the concluding de- lineation of his character. It was very proper to notice his politeness and affability, his facility of temper, and kindness to his mistresses ; but we think they should not have been so mentioned, as to have even the slightest appearance of a set off against the malignity of his wickedness and the atro- cities of his government. The manner in which Charles's kindness to his mistresses is mentioned, is a remarkable illustration of the importance of personal morality to a historian, as well as to a states- man. "His recnminendation of the Duchess of Port?inouth and Mrs. Gwyn, upon his death bed to his successor, is much to liis honour; and they who censure it, Fe(in, in their zeal to show the msi Ives strict morahf-ts, to have suffered their notions of vice and virtue to have fallen into strange confusion. Charles's connexion with those ladies might be vicious but at a moment when that connexion was upon the point of being finally and irrevocably dissolved, to concern himself about their future welfare, and to recomn)end ihem to his brother with earnest tenderness, was vir. tue It is not for the interest of morality that the good and evl actions of bad men should be confounded." — F. (i4. We do not know that any moralist ever bade a departing fox's JAMES THE SECOND. 141 criminal to be concerned for the welfare of his surviving com- panions in guilt, only it would be enjoined that shame and penitence should mingle with this concern ; but every moralist will be indignant at this gentle equivocal mode of touching that vice, by which it is notorious that the example of the king contributed to deprave the morals of the nation, as much as his political measures to exterminate its freedom. It is most signally remarkable what a careful silence is maintained, in this work, respecting the state of morals during this reign. Is it then no business of history to take account of such a thing ? Even regarding the matter in a political view, is the depravity of a people never to be reckoned among the causes, and the most powerful causes, of their sinking quietly under despotism ? The commencement of James's reign, as far as the work before us has illustrated it, was a mere continuation of the preceding, as James, at his accession, graciously promised his subjects it should. This promise was received with grateful joy by a large proportion of the English nation, and by the governing party even in Scotland, whose fulsome abominable address of congratulation is given in this work. Their joy and loyalty were carried to the height of enthusiasm, no doubt, when they found the same infernal work of massacre ani- mated to redoubled activit}^ and were honoured with the charge of executing an act, which extended to all persons hearing conventicle preaching, the punishment of death. Though James was a papist, Mr. Fox has proved, by the most decisive arguments, that his grand leading object was the establishment of an absolute despotism ; and that any designs he might entertain of introducing popery, would have been kept in reserve till this was accomplished. Meanwhile he much courted the zealous adherents of the established church, and he plainly intimated that they had been found the firmest friends of such government, as that of his father, his brother, and himself. It is strange that a man of Mr. Fox's candour should, throughout the book, have contrived to find the very same thing. It surely became him, in the justice of history, to have particularized the many noble efforts made by the churchmen of those times, in resistance of the doctrines and the practices of despotism. He ought to have taken no- tice of what was so zealously done and written, by eccle- siastical dignitaries, in behalf of liberty of conscience, and in 142 fox's JAMES THE SECOND. prevention of all persecution for religious opinions and me- thods of worship. A large space is occupied with the invasions and proceed- ings of Monmouth and Argyle. The account of the exe- cution of Monmouth is finely written ; but the most interest- ing part of the whole volume, is the account of the last days and the death of Argyle. It is a picture drawn with the hap- piest simplicity, though with one slight blemish, of one of the most enchanting examples of heroic virtue that history or poetry ever displayed. It is closed with what we felt to be the most eloquent sentence in the whole work. After his capture, as Mr. Fox relates, "Argyle was imme- diately carried to Renfrew, thence to Glasgow, and on the twentieth of June was led in triumph to Edinburgh. The order of the council was particular ; that he should be led bareheaded, in the midst of Graham's guards, with their matches cocked, his hands tied behind his back, and preceded by the common hangman ; in which situation, that he might be the more exposed to the insults and taunts of the vulgar, it was directed that he should be carried to the Castle by a cir- cuitous route. To the equanimity with which he bore these indignities, as indeed to the manly spirit exhibited by him throughout in these last scenes of his life, ample testimony is borne by all the historians. Speaking of the supineness of his countrymen, and of the little assistance that he had receiv- ed from them, he declares with his accustomed piety, his re- signation to the will of God, which was that ' Scotland should not be delivered at this time nor especially by his hand.' He then exclaims with the regret of a patriot, but with no bitterness of disappointment — 'But alas! who is then to be delivered ? There may,' says he, ' be hidden ones, but there appears no great party in the country who desire to be relieved.' " When he is told that he is to be put to the torture, he neither breaks out into any high-sounding bravado, any pre- mature vaunts of the resolution with which he will endure it, nor on the other hand, into passionate exclamations on the cruelty of his enemies, or unmannerly lamentations of his fate. After stating that orders were arrived, that he must be tortured, unless he answers all questions upon oath, he simply adds, that he hopes God will support him ; and then leaves off writing, not from any want of spirits to proceed, but to enjoy the con. fox's JAMES THE SECOXD. 143 solation which was left him, in the society of his wife, the Countess being just then admitted. " Religious concerns, in which he seems to have been very serious and sincere, engaged mi ch of his thoughts ; while he anticipates, with a hope approaching to certainty, of a happy futurity, he does not forget those who had been justly dear to him in this world. He writes on the day of his execution to his wife, and to some other relatives, for whom he seems to have entertained a sort of parental tenderness, short but the most affectionate letters, wherein he gives them the greatest satisfaction in his power, by assuring them of his composure and tranquillity of mind, and reters them for further consola- tions to those sources from which he derived his own. He states that those in whose hands he is, had at first used him hardly, but that God had melted their hearts, and that he was now treated with civility. Never perhaps did a few sentences present so striking a picture of a mind truly virtuous and hon- ourable. Heroic courage is the least part of his praise, and vanishes as it were from our sight, when we contemplate the sensibility with which he acknowledges the kindness, such as it was, of the very men who are leading him to the scaffold ; the generous satisfaction which he feels on reflecting that no confession of his had endangered his associates ; and above all, his anxiety, in such moments, to perform all the duties of friendship and gratitude, not only with the most scrupulous ex- actness, but with the most considerate attention to the feelings as well as to the interests of the person who was the object of them. Indeed, it seems throughout, to have been the peculiar felicity of this man's mind, that every thing was present to it that ought to be so ; nothing that ought not. Of his country, he could not be unmindful ; and it was one among other con- sequences of his happy temper, that on this subject he did not entertain those gloomy ideas which the then state of Scot- land was but too well fitted to inspire. In a conversation with an intimate friend, he says, that though he does not take upon him to be a prophet, he doubts not but that deliverance will come, and suddenly, of which his failings had rendered him unworthy to be the instrument. In some verses which he composed on the night preceding his execution, and which he intended for his epitaph, he thus expresses this hope more distinctly ; 144 fox's JAMES THE SECOND. " ' On my attempt thougrh Providence did frown, His oppress d people God at lenijth will own ; Another hand, by more successful speed, Shall raise the remnant, bruise the serpent's head.' " For constancy and equanimity under the severest trials, few men have equalled, none ever surpassed the Earl of Ar- gyle. The most powerful of all tempters, hope, was not held out to him ; so that he had not, in addition to his other hard tasks, that of resisting her seductive influence ; but the pas- sions of a different class had the fullest scope for their attacks. These however would make no impression on his well-disci- plined mind. Anger could not exasperate, fear could not appal him ; and if disappointment and indignation at the mis- behaviour of his followers and the supineness of the country, occasionally did cause uneasy sensations, they had not the power to extort from him one unbecoming, or even querulous expression. Let him be weighed ever so scrupulously, and in the nicest scales, he will not be found, in a single instance, wanting in the charity of a Christian, the firmness and benev- olence of a patriot, the integrity and fidelity of a man of hon- our. " In order that the triumph of injustice might be complete, it was determined that without any new trial the Earl should suffer upon the iniquitous sentence of 1682. Accordingly on the thirtieth day of June, 1685, he was brought from the Cas- tle to the Laigh Council House, and thence to the place of execution. Before he left the Castle he had his dinner at the usual hour, at which he discoursed not only calmly but even cheerfully. After dinner he retired to his bed-chamber, where he slept quietly for about a quarter of an hour. While he was asleep, one of the members of the Council came and inti- mated a desire to speak with him. Upon being told that he was asleep, the manager disbelieved the account. To satisfy him the door was half opened, and he then beheld in a sweet and tranquil slumber the man who, by the doom of him and his fellows, was to die within the space of two hours. Struck with the sight, he hurried from the room, quitted the Castle with the utmost precipitation, and hid himself in the lodgings of an acquaintance, flung himself upon the first bed that pre- sented itself, and had every appearance of a man suffering the most excruciating torture. His friend offered him some wine. He refused, saying — ' No, that will not help me ; I have been 145 with Argyle, and saw him sleeping as pleasantly as ever man did, within an hour of eternity. But as for me' What a satisfactory spectacle to a philosophical mind, to see the op- pressor in the zenith of his power envying his victim ! What an acknowledgment of the superiority of virtue ! What an affecting and forcible testimony to the value of that peace of mind which innocence alone can confer ! When we reflect that the guilt which agonized that man was probably incurred for the sake of some vain title, or at least of some increase of wealth, which he did not want and possibly knew not how to enjoy, our disgust is turned into compassion for that very fool- ish class of men, whom the world calls wise in their genera- tion. " Soon after his short repose, Argyle was brought to the Council-House, from which place is dated the letter to his wife, and thence to execution. On the scaffold he had some discourse with the two ministers, Mr. Annan and Mr. Char- teus. He desired both of them to pray for him, and prayed himself with much fervency and devotion. The same mixture of firmness and mildness is conspicuous in every part of the speech which he then made to the people. He said — ' We ought not to despise our afflictions, nor to faint under them. We must not suffer ourselves to be exasperated against the in- struments of our troubles, nor by fraudulent, nor pusillanimous compliances, bring guilt upon ourselves. Faint hearts ordi- narily, are false hearts, choosing sin rather than suffering.' Having then asked pardon for his own failings both of God and man, he would have concluded ; but being reminded that he had said nothing of the Royal family — he adds, that he prayed, that there might never be wanting one of the Royal family to support the Protestant religion ; and if any of them had swerved from the true faith, he prayed God to turn their hearts, but at any rate to save his people from their machina- tions. He then turned to the south side of the scaffold, and said — ' I pray you do not misconstruct my behaviour this day ! I freely forgive all men their wrongs and injuries done against me, as I hope to be forgiven of God.' Mr. x4nnan repeated those words louder to the people. The Earl then went to the north side of the scaffold, and used the same or like expres- sions. Mr. Annan repeated them again, and said — ' This nohleman dies a Protestant.^ — The Earl stepped forward again, and said — ' / die not only a Protestant^ hut with a heart' 146 FOX S JAMES THE SECOND. hatred of Popery, Prelacy, and all superstition whatsorneverJ* He then embraced his friends, gave some tokens of his re- membrance to his son-in-law, Lord Maitland, for his daugh- ter and grand-children, stripped himself of part of his apparel, of which he likewise made presents, and laid his head upon the block. Having uttered a short prayer, he gave the signal to the executioner, which was instantly obeyed, and his head was severed from his body. — Such were the last hours, and such the final close of that great man's life. May the like HAPPY SERENITY IN SUCH DREADFUL CIRCUMSTANCES, AND A DEATH EQUALLY GLORIOUS, BE THE LOT OF ALL WHOM TYR- ANNY, OF WHATEVER DENOMINATION OR DESCRIPTION, IN ANY AGE, OR IN ANY COUNTRY, SHALL CALL TO EXPIATE THEIR VIRTUES ON THE SCAFFOLD !" — History, Chapter HI., year 1685. edgewoeth's professional education. 147 V. EDGEWORTH'S PROFESSIOXAL EDUCATION. Essays on Professional Education. By R. L. Edgeworth, Esq., F.R.S., M.R.I. A. In literary partnership with a female relative, this author has become sufficiently well known to the public, to enable it to prejudge with tolerable confidence the general qualities of any work he might write, especially on the subject of educa- tion. His book will be opened with the expectation of a very good share of valuable instruction, the result of a long and careful exercise of sound sense on the habits of society, on the experience of education, and on a great multitude of books. There will be no hope of convicting the author of enthusiasm for a system, or servility to any distinguished authority. It will be expected that good use will be made of the opinions of the most opposite speculatists, and that most of the opinions that are approved will be supported by some reference to ex- periments by which they have been verified. It will be ex- pected that, while a philosophic manner and diction are avoid- ed, and all speculations are constantly applied to a practical purpose, full advantage will yet be taken of those explana- tions which the laws of our nature have received from the best modern philosophers. The reader will reckon on find- ing it constantly maintained, that the influence of facts has fully as efficient an operation as instruction by words, in form- ing the human character ; and he will not be surprised at a tone of somewhat more positive confidence than himself is happy enough to entertain, of the complete and necessary success of the process, when it unites the proper facts and the proper instructions. As a moralist, it will perhaps raise no wonder if the author should be found so much a man of the world, as to admit various convenient compromises between the pure principles of virtue, and the customs and prejudices of society ; 148 edgewoeth's professional education, and as to religion, no man will expect bigotry, or ascetic and incommodious piety, or any sort of doctrinal theology. There will be an agreeable and confident expectation of a great va- riety of pertinent anecdotes, supplied from history and obser- vation, at once to relieve and illustrate the reasonings. The reader will be prepared to accept this mode of infusing both vivacity and instructive force into the composition, instead of brilliance of imagination ; comprehensive knowledge instead of argumentative subtlety ; and perspicuity of language instead of elegance. The first essay, or chapter, proposes principles and plans for those stages of education, which, preceding the direct training for a particular profession, admit of a discipline in many points common to the children destined to all the professions. And yet, as parents are urged to fix at a very early period the future profession of each of their sons, they are properly recommended to introduce at an early stage of this general discipline a specific modification of it, prospec- tive to the profession selected. In advising parents to this early choice, the author explodes, in a great measure, the popular notion of a natural inherent determination toward some one pursuit more than another, commonly called " pecu- liar genius," "impulse of genius," "bent of mind," "natural turn," &c. In attacking this notion, he calls in the power- . ful aid of Johnson, who always manifested an extreme antipa- thy to it. " I hate," said he, " to hear people ask children whether they will be bishops, or chancellors, or generals, or what profession their genius leads them to : do not they know, that a boy of seven years old has a genius for nothing but spinning a top and eating apple-pie ?" Mr. Edgeworth condemns the folly of waiting in expectation that the supposed natural genius will disclose itself, or be drawn forth by some accident ; during all which time the general discipline of edu- cation will probably be very remiss, the specific training pre- paratory to professional studies will be systematically avoided, and the youth is either growing up to be fit for nothing, or is per- haps determined at last by a casual event, or unfortunate ac- quaintance, to the very worst selection that he could have made in the whole catalogue of employments. It is insisted, that methods which will generally prove effectual may be adopted by parents, to give the child a preference for any de- partment of learning or action they choose, and to make him edgewoeth's professional education. 149 sedulous to acquire the requisite qualifications. The author notices some of the most remarkable instances recorded of persons being determined by a particular accident to the pur- suits in which they afterwards excelled ; as Cowley's passion for poetry originated from his meeting with the tairy Queen in his mother s window ; and Sir Joshua Reynolds's for paint- ing, from his chancing to open a book by Richardson, on that subject, at a friend's house. Mr. Edgeworth observes, that the effect produced by reading these books would not have been less if they had been laid in the way by design ; and that, besides, when an impression is to be made by design, the efiect is not left to depend on a single impression, since by a judicious management the child may be subjected to a combination and a series of impressions, all tending to the same point. The manner of conducting this process is sketched with a great deal of knowledge and judgment in these essays. If the magnitude and certainty of the eftect to be thus produced are assumed in terms rather too little quali- fied, it is an error on the right side ; since it will invigorate the motive by which parents and friends are to be prompted to design and perseverance, and since nothing can be practi- cally more mischievous, than the fancy that all is to be done by some innate predisposition and adaptation, aided by fortui- tous occurrences. At the same time, our author does not need to be reminded, that, as a thousand boys of the same ages as Cowley and Reynolds might have met with, and partly read, the Fairy Queen, and the book on painting, without re- ceiving from them any strong determination to poetry or painting ; so, from the same cause, — the same intrinsic men- tal difibrence, whatever be the ultimate principle of that diflerence, — the proposed discipline of multiplied and succes- sive impressions, passing just an equal length of time on a thousand youthful minds, will eventually leave, notwith- standing, all imaginable varieties in their dispositions and qualifications. Nevertheless, there will be many more heroes, or orators, or engineers, than if no such process had been employed ; and those who fail to become heroic, or eloquent, or scientific, will yet be less absolutely the reverse of those characters, than they would otherwise have been. Our author touches but briefly on the nature of that undenia- ble original distinction which constitutes what is denominated genius ; and maintains, very reasonably, that whatever might 150 edgeworth's professional education. have been the nature, the cause, or the amount, of the inhe« rent original difference between such men as Newton, Milton, and Locke, and ordinary men, that original difference was probably far less than the actual difference after the full effect of impressions, cultivation, and exertion. He suggests some very useful cautions to parents, against treating their children according to the mysterious and invidious distinction of " ge- nius" and "no genius." Thedefectsand the cultivation of memory are shortly noticed ; and it is maintained, that any memory may be so disciplined, as to be quite competent to the most important matters of bu- siness and science. In proof of this, and as a lesson on the best mode of cultivation, the example of Le Sage, the philoso- pher of Geneva, is introduced, and would have been very in- structive if his method of retaining his knowledge by connect- ing it with a set of general principles, (a sort of corks to keep it in buoyancy) had been more precisely explained by means of two or three exemplilications. There are some very useful observations on the several relations of ideas which are the instruments of recollection ; as resemblance, contrariety, con- tiguity, and cause and effect ; it is strongly and justly insisted, that the memory which operates most by means of the last of these relations is by far the most useful, and therefore that the best mode of cultivating it is a severe attention to this relation. Mr. Edgeworth censures, but not in illiberal language, the system which prevails in our public schools, and our colleges, in which so disproportionate a measure of time is devoted to classical studies, and in the former of which the course of in- struction is the same for all the youth, though they are intend- ed for all the different professions. He advises not to force any violent reforms on these ancient institutions, but to induce their gradual and voluntary melioration, or, if that be possi- ble, to superannuate them, by means of new though smaller seminaries, in which a much greater share of attention shall be given to science, to studies of direct moral and political utility, and to the peculiar preparation for professions. He adverts to the system of education adopted by the Jesuits ; and the plans devised by Frederic " the Great," as he is here designated ; and reviews at some length the succession of magnilicent schemes projected by the French philosophers before and in the course of the revolution. Some of these schemes were practically attempted, and they failed, partly 151 from being on too vast a scale, and beginning with too high a species of instruction, and partly from that state of national tumult which withdrew both the attention and the pecuniary support indispensable to these great undertakings. At length, a party of philosophers obtained the complete establishment of a more limited, but as far as it extends, more effective in- stitution, under the denomination of Ecole Polytechnique. In the general course of education in France, however, our au- thor observes, classical literature has of late years been re- garded with such indifference or contempt, as to have threat- ened a depravation of taste and of language ; the studies of youth having been directed with incomparably the most emu- lation and ardour, to the branches of knowledge related or capable of being applied to the art of war. He relates how the men of science rose to the highest importance at the very period at which it might have been previously imagined they must have sunk into utter obscurity, the hour of revolutionary violence and terror. Our author's scheme for the formation of an improved order of elementary and superior schools in this country, is laid down with much good sense, and without visionary extrava- gance, particularly without the extravagance of expecting any assistance from the legislature. He would create and sup- port them simply by the conviction, in the minds of parents in each town and village, of the usefulness and even necessity of such a mode of instruction as he advises ; a mode which should include, without any ostentation, an attention to more branches of knowledge than are usually acquired in schools. Or, if it were desirable there should be any expedient more formal, for promoting such schools, than merely the wish of parents to obtain such instruction, he recommends there should be an association of gentlemen in London to patronize their formation in any part of the country to which they can extend their influence and aid. But the only efficacious power to create competent seminaries, is the concurrent will of a toler- able proportion of the parents, in any place, to have their children instructed in the rational manner proposed. The second essay is on Clerical Education. Considering the expensiveness of a residence at college, and the very in- adequate salaries of curates, the author dissuades parents who have not such connexions as may assist their son's success in the church, from choosing this profession for him ; unless they 152 edgeworth's professional education. have fortune sufficient to contribute to his support for perhaps many years after his entrance on it, or he has ah*eady ac- quired a very strong determination of mind towards it, accom- panied by such proofs of application and unusual talent as may warrant a presumption that he will make his way through all difficulties by the force of conspicuous merit. By making his wai/, is meant, of course, his attaining the emoluments and honours of the church ; and it is obvious enough, that a young man who has no means of doing this but his personal qualities and conduct, has little ground for such a presump- tion, when it is considered how much the disposal of the ecclesiastical good things is regulated by parliamentary in- terest, and the favour of persons of rank. The parliamentary interest confessedly so powerful in making dignitaries and rich incumbents, our author decides to be partly beneficial and partly injurious to the church and to national morality. " That which is exerted by rich commoners or noble families, to obtain living^s for men of learning and virtue, who have been tutors to their children, is hiojhly advantageous ; it insures good education to our young nobility, and it encourages men of learning and talents, in the middle or lower orders of life, to instruct themselves, and become fit for such em- ployments, and worthy of such rewards. Parliamentary interest, in. fluencing the distribution of clerical honours and emoluments, is also beneficial, as it tempts parents of good (amilies and fortunes to educate younger sons for the church : they give, as it were, a family pledge for the good conduct of their children, who at the same time may by their maimers and rank, raise the whole profession in the esteem and respect of the public. Church benefices may thus be considered as a fund for the provision of the younger sons of our gentry and nobles ; and in this ponit of view it cannot surely be a matter of complaint to any of the higlier and middle classes of the community, that the clergy enjoy a large portion of the riches of the state." — P. 59 No reader, it is presumed, can permit himself for one mo- ment to doubt, whether all these arrangements can fail to keep in view, as their grand object, the promotion of primitive Christianity among the people, or to prove the best possible means of teaching and exemplifying it; whether the men from the inferior classes, thus seeking and attaining the pre- ferments of the church through the medium of tutorships in noble families, be secure against all possibility of becoming sycophants in the course of their progress, and political tools at its conclusion ; or whether zealous piety, and a dereliction of the spirit and fashions of the world, be the necessary in- heritance of the younger sons of the nobility and gentry. On EDGEWORTH S PROFESSIONAL EDUCATION. 153 these points there can be no doubt; and therefore it is clear that thus far the parliamentary interest in question is highly beneficial to the Christian cause. But the subject has a dark side as well as a bright one ; and every reader will be at once grieved and astonished on reading the next paragraph, in which our author says, in so many words, " But parlia- mentary interest is not always employed in this manner ; it is sometimes exerted to obtain livings for the mean hanger- on of one lord, or the drinking or the profligate companion of another." These are literatim the words, as they stand in the book before us ; but how is it possible they can be true ? How is it possible that any bishop will sufter such a man to declare before him that he is moved by the Holy Ghost to enter the sacred function ? Or, if it is alter his entrance into the church that he becomes such a character, how is it pos- sible an institution framed purely in aid of Christianity should fail to have the most peremptory regulations, not only for in- terdicting such a man from preferment to larger emoluments and more extensive cure of souls, but for expelling him from the ministry altogether ? If parents have resolved to devote a son to the church, a judicious education will, according to the essayist, infallibly make him a person to do honour to the sacred vocation. In order to determine the right method of education for this specific purpose, our author delineates at length the required character, in the successive oflicial stages of curate, rector, and prelate. He informs us that " a good curate is not the man who boasts of being the boon companion of the jolly squire, who is seen following hini and his hounds at full cry, leaping five -barred gates, the admiration of the hallooing heroes of the chase, or, floundering in the mud, their sport and derision : he is not the man set officially, at the toot of his patron's table, "to smack his wine, and rule his roast :" he neither drinks nor swears : he scorns to become the buf- foon, and never can become the butt, of the company. In- deed, he does not feel it absolutely necessary to be continually in company." The character which our author proposes to create, is extremely amiable in all the situations and offices in which it is represented. The reader will be prepared not to expect any very strong emphasis to be laid on religion, in the strict sense of the M'ord ; he may supply that desideratum, from his own mind, to a sketch of exemplary prudence, dig- 154 edgeworth's professional education. iiity, kindness to the poor and sick, diligence, propriety in the performance of the public offices of the church, and modera- tion on advancement to superior station. There seems a material omission in the description of a good rector. After the melancholy picture given of the misery and degradation suffered by many curates from extreme poverty, we confidently expected to find it made an essential point, in the good cha- racter of the rector, never to suffer his curate to be in this situation from the parsimony of the stipend. As the legisla- ture has declined to interfere in this concern, it lies with the holders of livings to give their curates that complacency in their office which accompanies a respectable competence, or to gall them with the mortification, impatience, and disgust, inflicted by a long, toilsome, and hunger-bitten apprenticeship to some better station, towards which they will be continually looking with a loathing and abhorrence of the present con- dition, and which they will be tempted to practise the grossest servility in order to obtain. What must be the natural effect, on the state of the church, of perhaps several thousands of its ministers having their characters and exertions subjected for many years, if not for life, to the operation of such feel- ings as these ? And what are all the gentlemanly qualities of a rector worth, if he can be content to see a fellow-clergy- man and his family half starving on the five per cent, which the said rector affords him from his ecclesiastical income, for taking the work of the parish off his hands ? Having exhibited the model of excellence in the different clerical ranks, in all of which he says it is the very same character that is required, and the highest of which none should attain without having commenced with the lowest, the writer proceeds to the proper training for making the good curate, rector, and bishop. And the plan includes something extremely specific and peculiar, for it proceeds on the princi- ple that " the virtues of a clergyman should be founded on religion ;" a foundation, which we cannot, from this work, ascertain to be necessary to the virtue of other professional characters, or necessary to man in general as a moral agent. We are not distinctly informed whether religion, that is, of course, Christianity, is to be considered as any thing more than a convenient basis for a profession, with its appropriate set of peculiar decorums ; or whether it is really a system of truth communicated by divine revelation. Nor are we taught to edgeworth's professional educations-. 155 comprehend how, if Christianity be to be regarded as such a system, education in general, and education tor the other par- ticular professions, can be safely and innocently conducted un- der the exclusion of this divine system of doctrine and moral principles ; and not only an exclusion, but in some of the de- partments of education, a most pointed and acknowledged oppo- tion. Possibly the light in which the subject is regarded is this — that it is a very trifling question whether Christianity be true or false ; but that it teaches some principles and modes of ac- tion, the prevalence of which to a certain extent would be use- ful in society, and therefore it is desirable they should be incul- cated ; while, on the other hand, the condition of society re- quires the prevalence also, to a certain extent, of directly op- posite principles, and therefore the same regard to utility re- quires that other professions should support, and be supported by, those opposite principles. — With entire gravity our author takes quite the Christian ground, in settling the moral princi- ples of the youth destined to the church. It is while deciding whether his education should be in a great measure private or at a public school. The private education recommended is not to be a recluse education : the youth is to see the friends and acquaintance of the family, and mix in general conversation. He is to be led gradually, and not with too much haste, into a comprehension of the principal truths, — perhaps we should rather say pro- positions or notions, — of religion, and into a firm faith in them, founded on the " broad basis of evidence." A devo- tional taste is to be created by " letting a child have oppor- tunities of observing the sublime and beautiful appearances of nature, the rising and the setting sun, the storm of winter and the opening flowers of spring," to all which, however, compared with the " top and apple-pie," most children will probably manifest the utmost indifference. The impressions are to be reinforced by Mrs. Barbauld's beautiful hymns, by good descriptions of the striking objects in nature, and by good church music. The most simple and affecting narrative parts of the Bible are to be added as soon as they can be clearly understood ; but the author strongly disapproves of children at an early age being set to read the Bible at large, when a great portion of it must be unintelligible to them, M hen the irksomeness of having it for a sort of task-book, and the carelessness resulting from constant familiarity with 156 edgeworth's professional education. it, may predispose the pupil to regard it with dislike, and dis- quaiity him tor feeling the full impression of its sanctity and grandeur in subsequent life. Instructors are admonished to be cautious of giving the child erroneous and mean ideas of the Divine Being by minute illustrations or trivial and de- ceptive analogies ; of habitually threatening his vengeance on their faults, in the form either of immediate judgments or future retribution ; and of describing the future state with the particularity which must divest the idea of all its sublimity. Considering it as impossible, by the nature of the youthful mind, that very young children can be effectually governed by ideas of a remote futurity, our author advises not to make use of these ideas in governing them^ " till reiterated experience shall have given them the habit of believing that what was future has become present." With regard to attempting to connect, in the minds of the children, ideas of the divine anger, and the punishments of a future state, with their faults and vices, we think there are pious parents and teachers that need some admonition. To resort, with a promptitude which has at least the effect of profaneness, to these awful ideas, on every recurrence of carelessness or perversity, is the way both to bring those ideas into contempt, and to make all faults appear equal. It is also obvious, that, by trying this expedient on all occasions, parents will bring their authority into con- tempt. If they would not have that authority set at de- fiance, they must be able to point to immediate consequences, within their power to inflict on delinquency. Perhaps one of the most prudential rules respecting the enforcement on the minds of children of the conviction that they are accountable to an all-seeing though unseen Governor, and liable to the punishment of obstinate guilt in a future state, is, to take op- portunities of impressing this idea the most cogently, at sea- sons when the children are not lying under any blame or dis- pleasure, at moments of serious kindness on the part of the parents, and serious inquisiti"eness on the part of the chil- dren, leaving in some degree the conviction to have its own effect, greater or less, in each particular instance of guilt, according to the greater or less degree of aggravation which the child's own conscience can be made secretly to acknow, ledge in that guilt. And another obvious rule will be, that when he is to be solemnly reminded of these religious sanc- tions and dangers in immediate connexion with an actual m edgeworth's professional education. 157 instance of criminality in his conduct, the instance should be one of the most serious of his faults, that will bear the utmost seriousness of such an admonition. As to how early in life this doctrine may be communicated, there needs no more pre- cise rule than this ; that it ma\" be as early as well-instructed children are found to show any signs of prolonged or return- ing inquisitiveness concerning the supreme Cause of all that they behold, and concerning what becomes of persons known to them in their neighbourhood, whom they find passing, one after another, through the change called death, about which their curiosity will not be at all satisfied by merely learning its name. These inquiries will often begin to interest them, and therefore these doctrines and sanctions of religion may be beneficially introduced into their minds, sooner a great deal than our author seems willing they should hear any thing about God as a Judge, or a fiiture state of retribution. Be- sides, we do not know what the economy may be at Edge- worth's Town, but in a family where there is any avowed at- tention to religion, where the children are made acquainted with even only select portions of the Scriptures, where there are any visible acts of devotion, and where it is a practice to attend public worship, it is quite impossible to prevent them from acquiring the ideas in question in some form ; and there- fore, unless parents will adopt systematically, and maintain with the most vigilant care, the practical habits of atheists, in order to keep the children's minds clear of these ideas, there is an absolute necessity of presenting these ideas in a correct though inadequate form as early as possible to the mind, to prevent their being fixed there in a form that shall be absurd and injurious. The Essay proceeds to indicate the practical discipline for cultivating, or rather creating, the virtues of economy, charity, tolerance, and firmness of mind. Here we meet with one of the many instances of compromise between absolute principle and convenience. " In marking the difference between education for different professions, we may observe that a clergyman's should essentially differ from a law- yer's in one respect. A boy intended for the bar may be, in some degree, indulged in that pertinacious temper, which glories in supporting an opin- ion by all the arguments that can be adduced in its favour ; but a boy designed for the church should never be encouraged to argue for victory ; he fihould never be applauded for pleading his cause well, for supporting^ 8 158 his o-wn opinion, or for decrying or exposing to ridicule that of his oppo- nent." P. 88. It seems quite a settled principle of our author's morality, thus to make the character of the man not only secondary to the professional character, but a sacrifice to it. Nor can we know where the operation of this principle is to be limited, nor whether it has any limits. If, as in the case before us, the love of truth, and, by infallible consequence, the practical love of justice, may thus be exploded, by a formal sanction to the love of victory, and to a pertinacity regardless of right and •wrong, for the sake of producing professional expertness — what other virtue should we hesitate to sacrifice to the same object ? Thus explicitly tolerate and encourage in the pupil the contempt of one essential part of moral rectitude, and he may very justly laugh at his parents and tutors, when they are gravely enjoining him not to violate any of the rest. He may tell them, he apprehends it may be of service, in prose- cuting some of his designs, to throw aside one or two more of the articles commonly put by moralists among the essentials of virtue ; and that therefore, if they please, he had rather be excused listening to any canting lectures about integrity. And if the pure laws of moral excellence are to be deposed from their authority at all, we presume the benefit of the exemption ought not to be confined to the persons intended to figure at the bar. Some other employments, to which the bar profes- ses to be in deadly hostility, have also their pupils and their adepts, to whom the abrogation of the rigid standard of moral- ity will be exceedingly welcome and convenient ; and more 'professions than these essays extend to, might have been treated of in the book, much to the edification of many acute and active young persons who are at all times training to them. — Let it be also considered in what a ludicrous predica- ment the theory of morals would be placed, in a family in which there were several sons, educating for different profes- sions, under the immediate care of their parents ; a case which our author regards as very desirable. One son, let it be supposed, is to be a lawyer, another a clerg^nnan. The young clergyman receives, in the sight and hearing of his brother, daily lessons on the indispensable duty of maintaining an ardent love of truth, and an honest candid simplicity, that admits every argument in its proper force, and would feel it a violation of principle— not of reason or decorum only, but of 159 conscientious principle — ^to defend error through obstinacy or the desire of victory. But the very spirit and conduct which the young clergyman is taught to regard as immoral, is by the same instructors, on the same day, in the same room, encour- aged in the young lawyer by a tolerance, which, if he acquits himself cleverly, will approach to applause. What are these virtuous instructors to do, or say, when the young lawyer laughs aloud at his brother while undergoing their moral lec- ture, and at them for making it ; or when their clerical pupil asks them, with ingenuous distress, what they really mean by the terms duty, morality, virtuous principle, and the like, seeing the pretended moral principle and its direct reverse are thus to be regarded as equally right 1 We can conceive no expe- dient for these worthy parents to adopt in such a case, but to dismiss at once the hypocrisy of an illusory diction, and frankly avow, that, as to the point of virtue and matter of conscience involved in the honesty enjoined on the clergyman, that is all a joke ; but that the plain thing is, there is a pi'ofessional pro- priety in the clergyman's cultivating the quality in question, and a professional convenience in the lawyer's despising it. The remainder of the essay briefly traces, without affecting any novelty of system, the proper course of a young clergy- man's studies, previously to his going to college, at college, and in his subsequent years. The French and English modes of eloquence are contrasted, and the latter, for very good rea- sons, preferred. There are some plain and useful suggestions of methods of discipline, by which the preacher should ac- complish himself as a good speaker. He is advised to study the pulpit manners of living preachers, not for so poor and ab- surd an object as the imitation of even the best of them, but to perfect his abstract idea of excellence by means of a consider- ation of various examples, better and worse, — for he recom- mends the student to hear some of the worst specimens as well as the best. Among the vilest sort, he says, " should be class- ed all those clerical coxcombs, who show that they are more intent on the nice management of a cambric handkerchief, or the display of a brilliant ring on their white hands, than upon the truths of the gospel, or the salvation of their auditors." He concludes by recommending the clergyman to acquaint himself accurately with the various modes of faith, worship, and religious establishment, in our own and other countries, in order to keep himself clear of bigotry and party violence, and -A 160 edgewokth's professional education. to become qualified to act the part of a wise and benevolent moderator among others. On taking leave of the clerical profession, the author ap- pears to take a final and willing leave of religion. The word is admitted, indeed, two or three times, in enumerating the re- quisite instructions for the other professions ; it is introduced just as a notice that the subject has been duly disposed of al- ready ; and the writer appears glad to be thus left at full liber- ty to sketch the whole scheme of the education of the soldier, physician, lawyer, and statesman, without formally including this ungracious article. Such a thing as a solemn regard to the Governor of the world, and a rigorous adherence to his re- vealed laws, was deemed too trifling or too fanatical to be brought forward in each of the delineations of professional ex- cellence, as a purifier of motives, as a prescriber of ends, and a regulator in the choice of means, in every department of human action. It was not that the author was anxious to avoid repe- tition ; for most of the other requisite branches of instruction, and qualities of character, which have been illustrated and en- forced as indispensable or highly useful for one profession, are again fully insisted on with reference to another, and still another. Nor do we complain of this repetition. The value of what may be called a philosophical memory, of a most care- fully cultivated reasoning faculty, of intellectual and moral self- command, of a certain portion of learning and science, and of extensive knowledge of mankind, is obviously so great to all persons employed in important concerns, that the reader is willing and pleased to have them brought again in view, in or- der to its being shown in what manner they are indispensable in the education of the physician, or the lawyer, or the states- man. But, while such ample liberty is taken of enlarging again, in the successive divisions of the work, on several quali- fications which are not merely professional, but are indispen- sable to professional men, just because they are indispensable to all enlightened and useful men, we own we cannot help re- ceiving an unfavourable impression of the moral quality of a work, from seeing so careful an omission, (except in the part where it was unavoidably to be noticed as professionally ne- cessary,) of that one qualification of human character, which is the only secure basis of any virtue, and gives the purest lustre to every talent. The third essay is on Military and Naval Education. In 161 undertaking to sketch the proper education for the several professions, Mr. Edgeworth has omitted, apparently by design, to premise any observations tending to fix the moral estimate of each, for the assistance of those persons who are compelled to consult a delicate conscience in choosing the professions of their children. A few observations of this kind might not have been out of place, at the beginning of an essay on the method of making a soldier ; for such a conscience may per- versely raise a very strong question, whether it be right to destine a child to the occupation of slaying men ; and, happily, for our country, (or unhappily, as we believe it will be more according to the current moral principles of the times to say,) there are a certain proportion of people who cannot dismiss in practice their convictions of right, even though flattered by a presumption that their names, in their sons, might attain the splendour of military fame. We cannot be unaware how much offence there are persons capable of taking, at a plain description of war in the terms expressive of its chief opera- tion. And it is, to be sure, very hard that what has been be- dizened with the most magnificent epithets of every language, what has procured for so many men the idolatry of the world, what has crowned them with royal, imperial, and, according to the usual slang on the subject, "immortal" honours, what has obtained their apotheosis in history and poetry, — it is hard and vexatious that this same adored maker of emperors and demi-gods, should be reducible in literal truth of description to " the occupation of slaying men," and should therefore hold its honours at the mercy of the first gleam of sober sense that shall break upon mankind. But, however whimsical it may appear to recollect that the great business of war is slaughter, however deplorably low-minded it may appear to regard all the splen- dour of fame with which war has been blazoned, much in the same light as the gilding of that hideous idol to which the Mexicans sacrificed their human hecatombs, however foolish it may be thought to make a difficulty of consenting to merge the eternal laws of morality in the policy of states, and however presumptuous it may seem to condemn so many privileged, and eloquent, and learned, and reverend personages, as any and every war is sure to find its advocates, — it remains an obsti- nate fact, that there are some men of such perverted percep- tions as to apprehend that revenge, rage and cruelty, blood and fire, wounds, shrieks, groans, and death, with an infinite ac- 162 companiment of collateral crimes and miseries, are the ele- ments of what so many besotted mortals have worshipped in every age under the title of " glorious war," To be told that this is just the common-place with which dull and envious moralists have always railed against martial glory, will not in the slightest degree modify their apprehension of a plain mat- ter of fact. What signifies it whether moralists are dull, en- vious, and dealers in common-place, or not ? No matter who says it, nor from what motive ; the fact is, that war consists of the components here enumerated, and is therefore an infernal abomination, when maintained for any object, and according to any measures, not honestly within the absolute necessities of defence. In these justifying necessities, we include the peril to which another nation with perfect innocence on its part may be exposed, from the injustice of a third power ; as in the instance of the Dutch people, saved by Elizabeth from being destroyed by Spain. Now it needs not be said that wars, justifiable, on either side, on the pure principles of lawful defence, are the rarest things in history. Whole centuries all over darkened with the horrors of war may be explored from beginning to end, without perhaps finding two instances in which any one belligerent power can be pronounced to have adopted every precaution, and made every effort, concession, and sacrifice, required by Christian morality, in order to avoid war ; to have entered into it with extreme reluctance, to have entertained while prosecuting it, an ardent desire for peace, promptly seizing every occasion and expedient of conciliation ; to have sincerely forsworn all ambitious objects, to have spurned the foolish pride of not being the first to ofl^er peace, and to have ended the war the very first hour that it was found that candid negociation and moderate terms would be acceded to by the enemy. It is certain, at least, that the military histo- ry of this country is not the record where such examples are to be sought. But it may be presumed, we suppose, that those parents whose moral principles are to be of any use to their children, w ill abhor the idea to their sons being employed in any war that has not the grounds of justification here enumer- ated. But then, in order to their feeling themselves warranted to educate those sons for the business of war, they must have a firm assurance that the moral principles of their nation, or its government, are about to become so transformed, that there shall be, during the lives of their children, no war which shall EDGEWORTH S PROFESSIONAL EDUCATION. 163 not, on the part of their country, stand within the justifying conditions that we have specified. And let a conscientious parent seriously reflect, whether there be any good cause for entertaining such an assurance. But, unless he has such an assurance, he gives his son to be shaped and finished, like a sword or a bayonet in a Birmingham manufactory, to be em- ployed in deeds of slaughter, righteous or iniquitous, just as may be determined by the persons in power, to whom he must sell his services unconditionally, and whose determinations may probably enough be guided by the most depraved princi- ples ; while there is this unfortunate difference between the youth and the sword, that the youth who is thus becoming an instrument of slaughter, cannot still be divested of the ac- countableness of a moral agent. A melancholy case ! that the father should have cause to deplore the impossibility of his son's being at once an accomplished soldier and an idiot. — If a time shall come when the nation and its government shall manifest, with any thing like a sufficient security for perma- nently manifesting, half as much moderation as they have shown pride and ambition, and half as decided an attachment to peace as they have shown violent passion for war, during the last half century, then the parent's conscientious scruples may be turned from the general question of the morality of the military employment, to the particular considerations of its probable influence on his son's character, and its dangers to his life ; that is to say, if all such considerations, and the pro- fession itself, are not by that time set aside by the final cessa- tion of war. In the mean time, conscientious parents may do well to resign the ambition of training sons to martial glory, to those fathers — a plentiful complement — who will laugh at the sickly conscience which scruples to devote a youth to the pro- fession of war, on the ground that the wars in which he shall be employed may be iniquitous. We are not sure that Mr. Edgeworth would not join in this laugh, as he makes very light of whatever morality has to do in the concern. He contemplates with the utmost coolness, not only the possibility that his young hero may be employed in an unjust cause, (in which case he is here recommended to take no responsibility on his conscience, but mind his pro- per business of killing and slaying,) but the certainty that the prescribed education for a military life will powerfully tend to promote and perpetuate a state of war. He says, 164 edgeworth's professional EDtrCATIOJr. •' After quitting his academy, it is scarcely possible that a young mai?,, who has acquired all the knowledge, and caught all the enthusiasm ne- cessary for his profession, should not ardently wish for war, that he may have opportunities of distinguishing himself. Martial enthusiasm and a humane philosophical love of peace are incompatible, therefore military pupils should not be made philosophers, or they cease to be soldiers, and how then can we expect to be defended ?" — P. 194. Thus it is plainly asserted, that a rightly conducted milita- ry education will inspire its subjects with an ardent passion against the nation's being at peace. Now let it be considered, that of the numerous youths to be thus educated, and there- fore inspired with this passion, a considerable proportion will be sons of the nobility, who form a branch of the legislature, a kind of permanent council to the king ; that another large proportion are from the families of the prodigious number of executive functionaries of the state, through all their grada- tions ; and that a very numerous supply is from the families of wealth and influence throughout the country, whose direct or collateral relations have seats in the House of Commons : ,let all this be reflected on but five minutes ; let it be consid- ered that the younger sons of the nobility, when thus educa- ted, must be provided for at all events, even if they were not burning for martial enterprize ; that in the descending ranks of family and wealth, who send their representatives to the House of Commons, the modern habits of living have created certain necessities very powerfully tending to influence the fathers of these young heroes to promote in that House, in person, or by their friends, such national schemes as will fur- nish employment for their sons ; and that the generous ambi- tion, as it will be called, of these high-spirited young men, always therefore the favourites and idols of their families and connexions, will probably have no little direct influence on the volitions of their parliamentary relatives. Let any man think of all this influence, acting in reinforcement of that horror of peace which may prevail as much in the government and a great part of the nation another half century, as it has prevail- ed during the last, and say whether there can be any better security for a constant national disposition to a state of war. The nation is to stand, therefore, in this desirable predica- ment ; that the grand expedient for defending it against ene- mies, is to be most exactly calculated to set it continually on finding and making enemies. EDGEWORTH S PROFESSIONAL EDUCATION. 165 Such are the natural effects of our author's scheme of mili- tary education, according to his own statement of its tendency, on which statement he appears not to have the slightest idea that any one can be so wrong-headed as to found an objection to such an education. It is no business of ours, in this place, to enter into a dull and useless discussion whether it be prac- ticable to devise a scheme of education which should qualify young men to be efficient soldiers, whenever duty should appear to summon them to act in that capacity, and should equally, at the same time, cultivate all the moral principles that would inspire a detestation of war. But it is our business, as Chris- tian censors and monitors, to say, that, if this is not practica- ble, no parent can educate his son for war, without a complete virtual abjuration of Christianity ; as it is obviously impossi- ble for him at once to be faithful to the laws of an institution which commands every thing gentle, pacific, preventive of strife and suffering, and repressive of ambition, and deliberate- ly to excite in his son an ardent passion for that employment, of which the grand elements are fury, anguish, and destruc- tion. The laws of this institution are fundamental and abso- lute, forming the primary obligation on all its believers, and reducing all other rules of action to find their place as they can, in due subordination, — or to find no place at all. No arguments in favour of this military passion are to be allowed from such topics as national glory, unless it is to be maintain- ed, that Christianity has provided for a suspension of its own principles, in favour of that pride and ambition generally im- plied in this phrase. And if it has made an exception in fa- vour of these, why should it not be equally indulgent to any other depraved feelings connected with other kinds of corrupt interest ? that is, why has it an existence, as a moral author- ity ? It had better not exist at all, if it were an institution which enforced gentleness and quietness on mankind, just as if to give the more destructive effect to an exception sanction- ing martial madness to harass and consume them. Truly it would deserve all the contempt which such persons as our author feel for it, if it were a system maintaining itself rigidly obligatory on those whose refined moral sensibility yields to admit the obligation, but not obligatory on those whose fierce passions disdain its control ; that is, a thing of which the obligation depends on whether men are willing to acknow- ledge it or not. 166 edgeworth's professional education. We have mentioned what is called national glory, as this is one of the chief idols which men of war are always required to worship, and to which there is hardly any thing in the whole moral system which they will not be justified, by the general- ity of politicians and moralists in these times, for sacrificing. But national defence is Mr. Edgeworth's immediate plea, in justification of a mode of training which must deprave the moral sentiments of a considerable portion of our youth : ** How can we" otherwise, he asks, " expect to be defended ]" We have already said, in reply to this, How can we, at this rate, be ever free from perils, created by our own foolish dis- position to seize or make occasions for war ? But we add another question of still graver import : — On the supposition that there is a righteous Governor of the world, how can we expect to be defended, if we industriously promote, in the minds of a large and the most active proportion of our youth, a spirit which he abominates, and the national conduct naturally re- sulting from which he has threatened to visit with punishment? This question, indeed, it must be acknowledged, can perti- nently be addressed only to the " fanatics ;" as we have had extensive opportunity of observing, that the persons so reput- ed alone show any real practical recognition of a divine go- vernment in speculating on the policy of states. It is to be hoped that all these fanatics, in consistency with their faith in such a government, beware of soliciting the demon of mar- tial ambition into the minds of their sons ; convinced that no possible combination of circumstances under heaven can sanc- tify a spirit the reverse of their religion, and that, as a gene- ral law, a state in danger has just so much the greater cause to despair of being defended, as it prepares its defence in a spirit careless of divine injunctions, and scornful of a reliance on Providence. Till the right spirit shall find its way into nations and governments, it remains to be seen what that Pro- vidence will suffer to be effected among them by that valorous ambition which Mr. Edgeworth wishes to inflame, and all the glory of which — except its success, and its efficacy to annihi- late national danger — has richly crowned this country during the last half century. If the question were still urged. But how can a nation be defended ? it may be answered at once, that a nation Avhose piety and justice are approved by heaven, (and how is a nation of an opposite character to have any security of being defend- 167 ed, whatever be its ostensible means ?) such a nation may be defended by the divine agency giving efficacy to the operation of such numbers, such military apparatus, and such resources of science, as the purely defensive spirit would always keep partly prepared, and would soon make ready for action, in an enlightened nation, conscious of having the most valuable pos- sessions to lose. Our author's morality appears on the same level, in the doctrine that it is not for military men, except those of the very highest rank, to form any judgment of their own on the right or wrong of the cause in which they are to be employed. That is, in the one employment which is the most awful on earth, that of inflicting death on human beings in the mass, men are not to consider their actions as of consequence enough for the cognizance of conscience ; they may divest themselves of the inconvenience of moral accountableness, till they return to the solemn functions of buying and selling, and the ordinary proprieties of life. In the civil economy of society, the life of an individual is regarded as of such importance, that it must not be touched without a most grave and punctilious process ; witnesses are attested and rigorously examined, juries are sworn and charged, laws are explained, learned judges pre- side, and are even allowed by their office to assume in a cer- tain degree the character of advocates for the accused ; and should any one of all these persons concerned, be proved to have acted in the process as a man divested of moral respon- sibility, his character is blasted for ever. But let an ambi- tious despot, or a profligate ministry, only give out the word that we must be at war with this or the other nation, — and then a man who has no personal complaint against any living thing of that nation, who may not be certain it has conmiitted any real injury against his own nation or government, nay, who possibly may be convinced by facts against which he cannot shut his eyes, that his own nation or government is substantially in the wrong, then this man, under the sanction of the word war^ may, with a conscience entirely unconcern- ed, immediately go and cut down human beings as he would cut down a copse. It is nothing to him if the people he is to co-operate in attacking are peaceful, free, and happy, and that this very freedom and happiness may have been the cause of the war, by exciting the malignity of the aggressor. The peaceful valleys and hills of Switzerland can be no more sacred 168 edgeworth's professional education, in his view, than the borders of the most arrogant and mali- cious rival. The officers who invaded and subdued that coun- try were, all but the commander-in-chief, as virtuously employ- ed as those who fell in attempting to defend it. And, admit- ting that the popular resistance in Spain is really an effort of a long-degraded people to obtain liberty, the invaders, except- ing perhaps the marshal dukes, are as honourably occupied as their opponents ; for they are destroying men and desolating the country, under the modest forbearance, enjoined by our moralist, to arrogate to themselves a right of judging of the merits of the cause. And should they receive orders from their superiors to perpetrate the barbarities of Herod, they have only to obey, and exult in their exemption from moral respon- sibility. The exemption goes this length, and every length, or it cannot be proved to exist at all ; for if an accountable - ness is to take place at some point, and the man's own judg- ment is to decide where, he will be compelled to begin his examination, and therefore to acknowledge his accountable- ness, at the very first moral question that can be put concern- ing his employment. The young soldier from Mr. Edgeworth's school is not to be eagerly set on duelling, but neither is he in all cases to decline that honourable practice. " The best character," he says, " a young man can establish on going into the army, is that of being determined to fight in a proper cause, but averse to quarrel for trifles." He strongly recommends fencing as a part of an officer's education. " It might again revive the custom among gentlemen, of fighting duels with swords instead of pistols: a custom, which would at least diminish the number of duellists, by confining them to a certam class in society. Gentlemen would then be in some measure protected from the insolence of uneducated temerity, and every ill-bred upstart would not find himself upon a footing with his superior because he can fire a pistol, or dares to stand a shot. If any distinction of ranks is to be supported, if any idea of subordination is to be maintained in a country, and what nation can exist without these, education must mark the boundaries, and maintain the privileges of the different orders. The honour and the life of an officer and a senator, and that of a mere idle man of the town, ought not to be put on the same level, nor should their differences be adjusted by one and the same appeal to the trigger." P. 152. This expedient for preserving so valuable a privilege to the better sort, for keeping duels a strictly genteel amusement, EDGEWORTH S PROFESSIONAL EDUCATION. 169 would prove ineffectual ; for these " idle men of the town" would, in spite of their description, be soon stimulated to qua- lify themselves in the art, on which they found their equality with the " officers and senators" was to depend ; and some of them, of the true bravo species, \vould soon acquire the power to overawe their pretended superiors. Mr. Edge worth might know that some of these men of the town practise shooting at a mark, expressly in preparation for "affairs of honour," with as much assiduity as would finish them in the use of the sword. Under the appearance of idle men of the town, there will always, in the metropolis, be a class of keen desperate adventurers by profession, who regard what Mr. Edgeworth may call "their superiors," as their game ; and so long as gentlemen of the senatorian, or whatever other dignified sort, choose, in defiance of morality and law, to maintain the prac- tice of" appeal " to either the " trigger" or the sword, they will deservedly be at the mercy of the more unerring pistols or swords of these formidable men. As to the supposed higher value of the " honour and the life of the officer or senator," surely the man is the best judge himself what the one or the other is worth ; he is not obliged to appraise them in a pistol- ling match with " every ill-bred upstart, or idle man of the town," and, if he chooses to do it, it is of course because he judges they are things fit for such a traffic. And, truly, what- ever price they might have borne before, he cannot well esti- mate them too meanly by the time that he has measured his ground with his worthless antagonist, since community in crime is the grand equalizer in degradation. By the time he has consented to place himself in that situation, his " honour," at any rate, is hardly worth the trouble of a preference of one w^eapon to another, and his " life " is worth — mentioning in to-morrow's newspaper as a thing that went out in a gentle- manly style. In the name, then, of that liberty, so much fa- voured by the government and tribunals of this Christian country, of violating in this point morality and law, let not the man be forced to take the pains of learning an additional art in order to dispose of his couple of trifles, " honour and life," which can be disposed of with less trouble in the mode now in fashion. The reader will be somewhat surprised to find that this de- termination to fight duels on all proper occasions, is to coa- lesce, in the young soldier's mind, with a religion which it 170 edgewokth's professional education. shall be worth his while to maintain with an equal constancy of determination. We are not certain, even, whether the same weapons are not, in the last resort, to be employed ; since "all interference with his religious sentiments, whether by ridicule or remonstrance," is represented as such "an in- fringement of his rights and his independence," as we should suppose he will be bound to resent with lead or steel. " As a young officer will early mix with varieties of dissipated company, his relifrious principles should not trust for their defence to any of those outworks which wit can demolish ; he should not be early taught to be scrupulous or strict in the observance of trifling forms ; his important du- ties, and his belief in the essential tenets of his religion, should not rest up- on these slight foundations, lest, if they be overthrown, the whole super- structure should fall. When his young companions perceive that he is not precise or punctilious, but sincere and firm in his belief; when they see that he avoids all controversy with others, and considers all interference with his own religious sentiments, whether by ridicule or remonstrance, as an infringement of his rights and his independence ; he will not only be left unmolested in his tenets, but he will command general respect. It is of the utmost importance that the early religious impressions made on the mind of a soldier should not be of a gloomy or dispiriting sort ; they should be connected with hope, not with fear, or they will tend to make him cowardly instead of brave. Those who believe that they are secure of happiness hereafter, if to the best of their power they live and die doing their duty, will certainly meet danger, and if necessary, death, with more courage than they can ever do who are oppressed and intimidated by su- perstitious doubts and horrors, terrors which degrade man, and which are inconsistent with all ideas of the goodness and beneficence of God." — P. 143. It should seem to be conveyed, in this piece of instruction, that it is in some certain degree at the option of religious teach- ers what they shall inculcate as religion ; and that therefore, in their religious instructions to their military pupils, they can considerably accommodate to the purpose of producing bra- very. We may also learn that a religion which involves " ter- rors " needs not be believed by any of us, soldiers, authors, or critics, any testimony to the contrary in the Bible notwith- standing. As to the phrase " if they live and die doing their duty," nothing can be more indefinite, or even equivocal ; for, according to our author, a military man may die doing his duty though he dies in a duel, or, as far as we see, if he dies in the act of sacking a harmless town, which some atrocious tyrant, or tyrant's tool, has sworn to annihilate. After so much more than enough on the moral complexion of this long essay on military education, there needs but very edgeworth's professional education. 171 few words on its other qualities. In common with the others, it has a certain defect, very sensibly felt by a reader of indif- ferent memory ; that of not prominently marking the several stages and topics in the scheme. But this perhaps could not have been remedied by any other means than a formal divis- ion into a number of sections with distinct titles and argu- ments. The multifarious assemblage of precepts and illustra- tions includes, we should suppose, almost all the expedients most conducive to excite the spirit and finish the accomplish- ments of a soldier. Many directions are given for preparing the young hero, from his infancy, for the toils and privations of his future service. The discipline of stripes must never be applied to him, of whatever perversity or mischief he may be guilty. Every thing must be done by an appeal to his pride, which passion is to be promoted and stimulated in every possible way, as the sovereign virtue of the military character ; nor is any pre- scription given for transmuting it into the opposite Christian virtue just at the extreme moment when he is finally laying down his arms, if he should then be apprehensive that this mil- itary character may be an uncouth garb in which to appear in the other world. The proper discipline for creating courage is pointed out ; amusements bearing some relation to the ope- ration of war are suggested ; it is advised that the boy be in- duced to employ himself sometimes in familiar practical me- chanics ; be early made master of the terms and elements of mathematics ; be carefully trained to an accurate use of his eyes, in order to judge of distances and relative magnitudes ; be taught drawing ; learn some of the modern languages, but not expend much of his time on Latin and Greek. He is to be made conversant with the lives of warriors, and even the sto- ries of chivalry. But the book of mightiest inspiration is the Iliad, of which it was indispensably necessary to mention yet once more, that it sent " Macedonia's madman and the Swede," to draw glorious lines of blood and devastation across certain portions of the surface of the earth, beckoned on by the Homeric ghost of Achilles. The character of this amiable hero has been "fated," it seems, like those of the Christian apostles and martyrs, to meet with detractors among the base- minded moderns. '* Some modern writers have been pleased to call Achilles a mad butch- er, wading in carnage j but all our love for the arts of peace, and all oui 172 respect for that humane philosophy which proscribes war, cannot induce us to join in such brutal abuse, such unseemly degradation of the greatest mihtary hero upon poetic record ;" and there follows a portion of useful composition on the "he- roic beauties in his character ;" in answer to all which it is sufficient to ask, But icas he not, after all, " a mad butcher wading in carnage ?" There are many excellent observations on an officer's conduct in war, on the proper combination, while he is a subaltern, of subordination with independence of character, on presence of mind, on the mode of attaching sol- diers, and inspiring them with confidence, and on that vigour of good sense which, disdaining to be confined to the princi- ples of any school of war, can adapt every operation pointedly to the immediate state of the circumstances. The whole es- say is enlivened by numerous historical examples, selected in general with great judgment and felicity. The remaining Essays are on the education for the Medical Profession, for the duties of Country Gentlemen, for the pro- fession of the Law, and for Public Life, with a short conclud- ing chapter on the education of a Prince. They involve such a multiplicity of particulars, as to be beyond the power of analy- sis, had we any room left to attempt it. Nor is there any bold novelty of general principles that can be stated as per- vading the whole mass ; unless, indeed, we may cite, as a novelty, the author's detestation of the political profligacy and low intrigues of what are called public men. This appears in many parts of the book, and is conspicuously displayed in the Essay on the education of men intended for Public Life. And it is quite time it should be displayed by every honest man, since the public mind habitually leans to a forgetfulness or a tolerance of those vices of public men, to which the public in- terests are made a sacrifice. Thus far is well ; but when our author proceeds confidently to remedy all these evils by means of the inculcation of pride, honour, and magnanimity, (which is only another name for pride, when it is found in such company,) we cannot help wondering through what pre- ternatural splitting of his faculties into a very intelligent part and a very whimsical one, it has happened that the same in- dividual has been in many directions an excellent observer and thinker, but in others a deplorable visionary. BEITISH STATESMEN, 173 VI. BRITISH STATESMEN Lives of British Statesmen. By John Macdiaemid, Esq,, Author of an Inquiry into the System of National Defence in Great Britain, and of an Inquiry into the Principles of Sub- ordination. If M^e have not learnt to feel for statesmen, as such, a suffi- cient share of that reverential respect which pronounces their names with awe, which stands amazed at the immensity of their wisdom, which looks up to them as the concentrated rea- son of the human species, which trembles to insinuate or to hear insinuated against them the slightest suspicion of obliqui- ty of understanding or corruption of moral principle, and which regards it as quite a point of religion to defend their re- putation, it has not been that we have not received many grave instructions and rebukes on this head from much better men. A hundred times it has been repeated to us, that a pe- culiar and extraordinary genius is requisite to constitute a statesman ; that men, who by situation and office are conver- sant wdth great concerns, acquire a dignity and expansion of mind ; that those who can manage the affairs of nations prove themselves by the fact itself to be great men ; that their ele- vated position gives them an incomparably clearer and more comprehensive view of national subjects than is to be attained by us on the low level of private life ; that we ought, in defer- ence to them, to repress the presumption of our understand- ings ; that, in short, it is our duty to applaud or be silent. With a laudable obsequiousness we have often tried to con- form ourselves to our duty, at least as prescribed in the latter part of this alternative ; and we have listened respectfully to long panegyrics on the sagacity, fortitude, and disinterested- ness of the chief actors and advisers in state affairs, and to in- culcations of the gratitude due to men who will thus conde- 174 BRITISH STATESMEN. scend, in their lofty stations, (which at the same time it is pre- sumed they can claim to hold for no other purpose,) to toil and care for us the vulgar mass of mankind. Presently these lau- datory and hortatory strains would soften into an elegiac plaintiveness, bewailing the distresses of men in high situa- tions in the state. The pathetic song has deplored the op- pressive labours of thought required in forming their schemes, their cruel exposure to the persecutions of an adverse party, the difficulty of preserving harmony of operation in a wide and complex system involving many men and many dispositions, their anxiety in providing for the wants of the state, the fre- quent failure of their best concerted measures, their sleepless nights, their aching heads, and their sufferings from the un- grateful reproaches of the people. Here our impatience has overcome our good resolutions, and we have been moved to re- ply. We have said. Is not the remedy for all these sorrows at all times in their reach ] They can quit their stations and all the attendant distresses whenever they please, in behalf of other men who are waiting, eager almost to madness, to ob- tain their share of all the vexations you are commiserating. But while you are so generously deploring the hardships of their situation, they are anxiously devising every possible con- trivance to secure themselves in possession of it, and nothing less than the power that put them in can wrench them out. It is vastly reasonable to be requiring lenient judgments on the conduct, and respectful sympathy for the feelings, of public men, while we see with what a violent passion power and sta- tion are sought, with what desperate grappling claws of iron they are retained, and with what grief and mortification they are lost. It might be quite time enough, we should think, to commence this strain of tenderness, when in order to fill the places of power and emolument it has become necessary to drag by force retiring virtue and modest talent from private life, and to retain them in those situations by the same com- pulsion, in spite of the most earnest wishes to retreat, excited by delicacy of conscience, and a disgust at the pomp of state. So long as men are pressing as urgently into the avenues of place and power as ever the genteel rabble of the metropolis have pushed and crowded into the play-house to see the Aew actor, and so long as a most violent conflict is maintained be- tween those who are in power and those who want to supplant them, we think statesmen form by eminence the class of per- BRITISH STATESMEN. 175 sons, to whose characters both the contemporary examiner and the historian are not only authorized, but in duty bound, to ad- minister justice in its utmost rigour, without one particle of extenuation. While forcing their way toward offices in the state, and while maintaining the possession once acquired, they are apprised, or might and should be apprised, of the nature of the responsibility, and it is certain they are extremely well ap- prised of the privileges. They know that the public welfare depends, in too great a degree, on their conduct, and that the people have a natural instinctive prejudice in favour of their leaders, and are disposed to confide to the utmost extent. They know that a measure of impunity unfortunate for the public is enjoyed by statesmen, their very station affording the means both of concealment and defence for their delinquencies. They know that in point of emolument they are more than paid from the labours of the people for any services they render; and that they are not bestowing any particular favour on the coun- try by holding their offices, as there are plenty of men, about as able and as good as themselves, ready to take their places if they would abdicate them. When to all this is added the acknowledged fact that the majority of this class of men have trifled with their high responsibility, and taken criminal advan- tage of their privileges, we can have no patience to hear of any claims for special indulgence of charity, in reading and judging the actions of statesmen. On the ground of morality in the abstract, separately from any consideration of the effect of his representations, the biographer of statesmen is bound to a very strict application of the rules of justice, since these men constitute, or at least be- long to, the uppermost class of the inhabitants of the earth. They have stronger inducements arising from situation, than other men, to be solicitous for the rectitude of their conduct ; their station has the utmost advantage for commanding the as- sistance of whatever illumination a country contains ; they see on the large scale the effect of all the grand principles of action ; they make laws for the rest of mankind, and they direct the execution of justice. If the eternal laws of morality are to be applied Avith a soft and lenient hand in the trial and judgment of such an order of men, it will not be worth while to apply them at all to the subordinate classes of mankind ; as a morality that exacts but little where the means and the responsibility are the greatest, would betray itself to contempt 176 BRITISH STATESMEN. by pretending to sit in solemn judgment on the humbler sub- jects of its authority. The laws of morality should operate, like those of nature, in the most palpable manner on the largest substances. Another reason for the rigid administration of justice to the characters of men that have been high in the state, is to secure the utility of history, or rather to preserve it from be- coming to the last degree immoral and noxious. For since history is almost entirely occupied with the actions of this class of men, and for the much greater part with their vices and their crimes, and the calamitous consequences, it is easy to see that a softened mode of awarding justice to these characters will turn the whole force of history to the effect of depraving our moral principles, by partially conciliating both our feelings and judgments to those hateful courses of action, of which we are already very much too tolerant in consequence of being from our childhood familiarized to the view of them, in every account of the past and present state of the world. And in this way we are inclined to think that history has actually been, on the whole, the enemy of morality. Its readers will have too light an impression of the atrocity of great crimes and great criminals. Great crimes constitute so large a pro- portion of the historian's materials for constructing splendid exhibitions, that if he does not insensibly become almost par- tial to them, as a general does to a band of the most cruel savages whose ferocity he has repeatedly employed to obtain his victories, his hatred admits at least a certain softening of literary interest ; and in many a glowing description of enor- mous wickedness, we fancy we see the hand of the painter or poet rather than the moral censor. Artful combinations of odious circumstances, epithets to aggravate each indignant line, eloquence of execration, are possibly not spared; but we still find ourselves rather invited as spectators of a splendid tragedy, than summoned as jurors in a solemn court of justice. The diminution or modification, in the historian's mind, of the abhorrence of crimes, in consequence of the benefit which he derives from them as striking materials for his work, aids the operation of any other cause which may tend to render him indulgent to the actor of them. And often the great criminal has had some one virtue, or at least some very showy faults, adapted, in the historian's view, to relieve and even extenuate the account of his wickedness ; he might have munificence, a BRITISH STATESMEN. 177 love of letters, a very lofty kind of ambition, or what a lax morality would term a liberal love of pleasure ; at any rate, he probably had talents, and this is perhaps after all the most seductive of the distinctions by which a bad man can dazzle our judgments. The historian, besides, acquires a kind of partiality for an eminent actor in the times and transactions which he describes, from even the circumstance of being, in imagination, so long in his company. In prosecuting his work, he returns to this person each morning, for weeks, months, or even years ; the interest of the literary labour consists in following this person through the whole train of his proceedings ; the disposition for quarrelling with him gradually subsides ; the odious moral features are familiarized to the view ; while perhaps the conviction of his great attain- ments, and the wonder at his achievements, are progressively augmented ; extenuations Suggest themselves, and occasion- ally even partial claims on applause ; the writer becomes a kind of participator in the activity and importance of the trans- actions, while he is clear of all the guilt ; and thus by degrees the rigour of justice is forgotten, and flagrant iniquity is ex- hibited with so little prominence of turpitude, that it depends very much on the moral state of the reader's own mind, whether he shall regard it with indulgence or detestation. We shall not wonder at the bad morality of history, if we com- bine this view of the injurious effect of the historian's studies on his mind, with the consideration that the eminent historians of antiquity were pagans, and the most distinguished ones of modern times very near the moral level of paganism, by means of their irreligion. It is, again, very desirable that a rigid justice should be maintained in delineating and recording the characters and actions of statesmen, because it is in the nature of the people, in all countries, to feel a kind of superstitious veneration for those who are so much above them as to have the command of their public affairs. Place men, of whatever sort, in power, and there will need no burning fiery furnace to intimidate their fellow-citizens into reverential prostration. On the mere strength of their situation they shall gain credit to almost all they pretend, and acknowledgment of right to all they arrogate ; fine talents and fine qualities in abundance shall be ascribed to them ; and the crowd shall look up with awe to the beings that can make speeches and enactments, 178 BKITISH STATESMEN. appointments and imposts, treaties and wars. Or even if the deficiency of integrity and abilities is so notorious as to force a reluctant conviction on the people, the high station secures a certain tolerance which a man in humbler life must not too confidently expect for vices and incapacity. It is matter of great difficulty and effort for these men to sin away the whole stock of credit and partiality, which sounding titles and elevat- ed stations have raised for them in the popular mind. Even our pride is in their favour ; our pride as respecting ourselves is unwilling to believe, that we are all passing our lives in sub- missive homage to persons not at all our betters in wisdom or morals ; and our pride of national comparison feels it abso- lutely necessary to maintain, that we are wise enough to put as much wisdom at our head as any people in the world can boast. — We mean this as a description not of the English nation in particular ; it is the case of every nation. Now this superstitious respect for persons possessing con- sequence in the state is injurious to the people in two ways ; it deteriorates their moral principles, and it endangers their political condition. If statesmen, as a class, had been proved by experience to be the purest of all saints, then this excess of reverence for them might be a most salutary sentiment, as re- inforcing the attractions and authority of virtue by all the in- jfluence held over our minds by these its noblest examples. But it has been found till now, or at least till very lately, that statesmen in general deem it necessary to keep in their posses- sion about the same quantity of vice as their neighbours ; and the respect which the people feel for the men, on account of their station, prevents the just degree of contempt or abhor- rence for the vice. All the palliation which vice acquires, as beheld in connexion with respected personages, it is sure afterwards to retain as viewed in itself; the principles there- fore by which its noxiousness should be esteemed are de- praved ; and all who are disposed to like it will gladly take the privilege of committing it at the same reduced expense of con- science and character, as their superiors. In every commu- nity the estimate of the evil of immorality, in the abstract, will infallibly be reduced nearly to the level of that opinion of its evil which is entertained respecting it, as committed by the most privileged class of that community. As to the danger which threatens the political condition of the people, no illustration can well make it plainer. If states- ^ BRITISH STATESMEN. 179 men were an importation of celestials, partaking in no degree of the selfishness and perversity of mortal men, it would be a delightful thing for us to throw into their hands an unlimited power over all the great concerns of a nation, and prosecute our individual purposes, and indulge our tastes and domestic affections, in perfect security that all would go right in the general affairs of the nation. Or if the constitution of things were such, that the interest of the leaders were necessarily coincident entirely with the interest of the people, it might be safe to dismiss the anxiety of vigilance under the presiding direction of even a party of mere human creatures ; as the passengers in a ship give themselves very tranquilly to their amusements or their sleep, because they are certain the offi- cial conductors of the vessel have necessarily just the same interest in its safety as themselves. But it is obvious, that in- numerable occasions will present themselves to men in power, of serving their own interests quite distinctly from those of the people, and decidedly to their detriment. Indeed, the personal interests of these men are necessarily opposed to the grand popular interest of freedom itself, insomuch that no people ever long maintained their internal liberty, who did not main- tain it by precaution against the very statesmen they were obliged to employ. Every thing that ascertains the freedom of the people necessarily fixes the bounds to the power of those who are placed over them ; and it would be requiring too much of human nature, to expect that men, whom ambi- tion, for the most part, has raised to the stations of power, should not regard with an evil eye these limitations to the scope of their predominant passion, and consider them as ob- stacles which they are to remove or surmount if they can. And their high station, as we have observed, affords them many facilities for concealing and protecting themselves, in the prosecution of measures for the gradual subversion of liberty ; in which course and for which purpose very many statesmen, according to the testimony of history, have employed the pow- ers and resources vested, and the confidence reposed in them, by the nation, as the persons officially engaged to guard its interests. Now the thing which beyond all other things would be desired by men with such designs, is, the prevalence in the public mind of a blind veneration for statesmen, that attributes to them rectitude and talents of too high an order to be inspected and scrutinized and controlled by any profane 180 BRITISH STATESMEN. *■, arrogance of the people. Under favour of this state of the popular mind, they have but to make pompous professions of patriotism, and act in tolerable concert, and they may obtain unlimited confidence while they are both wasting the imme- diate resources of the country, and assiduously sapping away all that which can enable each individual inhabitant to say, I am no man's property or slave. It is the duty therefore of all who wish well to mankind, to remonstrate against this perni- cious infatuation ; and it is our official duty to represent that the biographical flatterers of statesmen are among the most wicked perverters of the public mind. Mr. Macdiarmid is not of this class. His language is per- haps a little too indulgent, occasionally, to meet our ideas of the severe duties of the office he has chosen ; but we regard him on the whole as a faithful and impartial biographer. He never gets into such a current of panegyric that he cannot for his life stop to notice a fault. He appears in a considerable degree the friend of several of the eminent men whose actions he records ; but he is such a friend as, if he could have been contemporary and acquainted with any of them, would not have withheld those candid animadversions, which might have contributed to make them greater benefactors of the times, and greater ornaments to history. He does not profess to present their characters in any new light, nor to have drawn facts and anecdotes from rare and unpublished records ; but he thought it might not be an unacceptable service to the public to give a somewhat more ample, and a more minute and per- sonal sketch, of these distinguished men, than can be found, or could with propriety be contained, in any one history of their times. Accordingly he has employed much industry and judg- ment in deducing, from the information supplied by a number of historical and biographical works, very clear narrations of the lives of Sir Thomas More, and Lords Burleigh, Strafford, and Clarendon. The narration is very successful in the point of keeping the individual always fully in view, while it is often necessarily extended, by the public nature of his actions, to the whole breadth of the national history of his times. The writer in general confines himself very strictly to his narra- tion, and is very sparing of reflections ; a forbearance prac- tised, no doubt, from the conviction, that a narrative written with fidelity, force, and discrimination, might in general be very safely left, from the obvious simplicity of its moral, to the SIR THOMAS MORE. X81 reader's own understanding. It is also a commendable modest}- to keep at a great distance from the fault of those his- torians, who might seem to be persuaded, that the transactions thej record took place positively for no other purpose on earth but to draw forth certain wise notions from their minds. Yet many readers, and we do not disclaim to be of the number, are indolent enough to wish the historian would just give the direction to their thoughts ; and if he can manage to time his reflectiojis well, and to avoid being very trite or prolix, we are very willing to divide with him the merit of being very phi- losophical on every circumstance of the narration. We are not, perhaps, of opinion, that Mr. Macdiarmid's reflections would have been more than usually profound ; but they would have still further manifested that sound, liberal sense which is already so apparent. The style has quite the measured and equable form of set historical composition ; it is however per- spicuous, unaffected, and in a very respectable degree vigor- ous. The book offers a more speedy and elegant introduc- tion, than was before attainable, to an acquaintance with four of the most distinguished characters in our political history. With regard to the first of them, Sir Thomas More, we will acknowledge it must be nearly impossible for the historian of his life to avoid becoming very decidedly, and even enthu- siastically, attached to him. No great harm would result from a relaxation, in this instance, of that law" of severity under which we have represented that the lives of statesmen ought to be written ; for no second instance of the same kind will be found in the subsequent political annals of England. Indeed, he is a person so unique in the records of statesmen, that we can see no chance that any utility in the way of ex- ample, would arise from a display of his life and character. Some email degree of similarity is prerequisite as the basis of any reasonable hope of seeing an example imitated ; and therefore it would seem very much in vain, as to this purpose, to display a statesman and courtier who was perfectly free from all ambition, from the beginning of his career to the end ; who was brought into office and power by little less than compulsion ; who met general flattery and admiration with a calm indifference, and an invariable perception of their vanity ; who amidst the caresses of a monarch, longed to be with his children ; who was the most brilliant and vivacious man in every society he entered into, and yet was more fond 9 182 BRITISH STATE SME?*^. of retirement even than other statesmen were anxious for public glare ; who displayed a real and cordial hilarity on descending from official eminence to privacy and comparative poverty ; who made all other concerns secondary to devotion ; and who, with the softest temper and mildest manners, had an inflexibility of principle, which never at any moment knew how to hesitate between a sacrifice of conscience and of life. The mind rests on this character with a fascination which most rarely seizes it in passing over the whole surface of his- tory. In this progress we often meet with individuals that we greatly admire ; but the bare sentiment of admiration may fail to make us delighted with the ideal society of the object, or interested in its fate. In the company of Sir T. More, the admiration scarcely ever stands separate from the more kindly feelings ; it seems but to give the last emphasis to the inexpressible complacency with which we listen to him, converse with him, observe his movements, and follow him wherever he goes. If personally acquainted with such a man, wc should, in absence from him, be incessantly haunted with a necessity and a passion to get near him again ; and should not only feel the most animated pleasure, but also, in spite of the contrast between our intellectual powers and his, should feel as if we had five times more sense than usual, when stimulated and supported by the vigour of a genius which seemed entirely to forget any comparison between itself and those around, which kindly lent itself to assist every one to think, and gladly aided any one to shine, while it had never once any other ambition than to diffiise happiness or impart instruction. The absence of every kind of selfishness, the matchless gayety and good humour which accompanied his great talents, and his wonderfiil facility of using them, divested of the least timidity every one that approached him, except pretenders and villains. His manner of displaying his talents delighted his friends, into such a total forgetfulness of fear, that only his exalted virtue could preserve to him that veneration, which again his face- tiousness prevented from oppressing those who felt it. Per- haps there never was a person that possessed many various qualities in such perfect combination, as, in an equal degree with More, to make the effect of them all be felt in the opera- tion of any one of them. His playful wit never put his se- vere virtue and his wisdom out of recollection : and at the SIR THOMAS MORE. 183 same time it was acknowledged, that so imperial a virtue had never before been seen so much at its ease in the company of pleasantry and humorous fancy. The habitual influence, therefore, of his character, was a happy and most singular complexity of operation ; as he could exert, and did almost involuntarily exert, not in succession and alternation, but at one and the same time, the wit, the philosopher, and the Christian. Distinguished statesmen generally become what may be called technical characters ; the whole human being becomes shaped into an official thing, and nature's own man, with free faculties, and warm sentiments, and unconstrained manners, has disappeared. An established process regulates the crea- ture into a mechanical agency ; the order of its manners is squared to the proper model, formed between the smooth com- plaisance of the courtier, and the assuming self-importance of the minister ; the whole train of thiniiing turns on mea- sures of state, on councils, acts, debates, and intrigues ; and the character of the court, the cabinet, and senate, sticks to the being most inseparably, even in the domestic circle, in visits to friends, and in country rambles. In More, on the contrary, the general natural man was always predominant above any artilicial character of office. The variety of his interest, the animation of his sentiments, and the strength of his powers, would not suffer affairs of state to repress the living impulses of his mind, or reduce to a formality of action that elasticity which played in all directions with infinite free- dom. Even in the transactions of office, it appears that his wit sometimes threw its sparkles through the gravity of the judge. In reading the lives of most other statesmen, we seem to be making a very unmeaning and unentertaining visit, to see them among their secretaries, or going to their councils, or^at their levees, or seated in their robes ; in read- ing of More, it seems to be the statesman that makes a visit to us, in the dress of an ordinary person, with manners formed by no rule but kindness and good taste, talking on all subjects, casually suggested, with an easy vigour of sense, and no fur- ther reminding us of his station and its habits, than by the surprise now and then recurring on our own minds to recol- lect that so Avonderfully free and pleasant a man is really a great officer of state. More's character derives some adventitious lustre, from comparison with the persons most conspicuous in the public 184 BRITISH STATESMEN. affairs of England at that time. His being contemporary and intimately connected with Henry the Eighth, might seem as if intended to show in one view the two extremes of human nature. His modesty and disinterestedness contrast admirably with the proud insatiable ambition of Wolsey ; his indepen- dence and magnanimity with the courtly servility which it is im- possible not to impute to the otherwise excellent Cranmer. Amidst the early display and fame of talents and learning, his favourite wish was to become a monk, but was overruled by his father, who was earnest for his adopting the profession of the law. This at length he did, and with the greatest suc- cess, notwithstanding he continued to direct a large proportion of his studies to classical literature and to theology. At the age of twenty-three he entered the House of Commons, in the latter part of the reign of Henry the Seventh, in which situation his first exertion was little less than the hazard of his life, by an eloquent resistance to an iniquitous demand of money, made by this tyrant, and which the fears of the house w^ould have silently yielded but for the courageous virtue of More, which roused them to refuse the grant. He was, how- ever, compelled, in consequence, to exchange the bar for com- plete retirement ; but this only served to complete his know- ledge, and mature his virtues, while the tenderest domestic re- lations occupied his affections, and all the time that could be spared from his studies. He returned to his practice at the accession of Henry the Eighth, whose favourite, after a little while, he very reluctantly became, and so continued for many years, notwithstanding that lofty integrity which never once made the smallest sacrifice of principle to the will of the monarch. After holding several important situations, he was constrained to accept that of high-chancellor, in which he administered justice with a promptitude and a disinterested- ness beyond all former example, till the period of Henry's quarrel with the pope, respecting his divorce of the queen, and his marriage with Anne Boleyn. More foresaw that in his office of chancellor he should be compelled to an explicit op- position to the king, very dangerous to himself; and by ear- nest request obtained the acceptance of his resignation. In prosecuting his determination relative to the marriage, throw- ing off in consequence the authority of Rome altogether, and ultimately assuming himself the supremacy of the English church, the tyrant required the approbation, by oath, of the SIR THOMAS MORE. 185 chief persons in the state. Especially the approbation of More, though now but a private person, was of far greater importance to him than that of any other individual. He was aware that More was conscientiously unable to give this ap- probation, and knew well that nothing on earth could induce him to violate his conscience ; yet, after repeated attempts at persuasion, he angrily insisted on his taking the several oaths, summoned him before a council, and gave him time to deli- berate in prison. After enduring with unalterable patience and cheerfulness the severities of a year's imprisonment in the tower, he was brought to trial, condemned with the un- hesitating haste which always distinguishes the creatures em- ployed by a tyrant to effect his revenge by some mockery of law, and with the same haste consigned to execution. Im- agination cannot represent a scene more affecting than the interview of More with his favourite daughter, nor a character of more elevation, or even more novelty, than that most sin- gular vivacity with which, in the hour of death, he crowned the calm fortitude which he had maintained through the whole of the last melancholy year of his life. Thus one of the noblest beings in the whole world was made a victim to the malice of a remorseless crowned savage, whom it is the in- famy of the age and nation to have sufiered to reign or to live.* * In a subsequent paper on Cayley^s Memoirs of Sir Thomas More, Mr. Foster recurs to this subject, and dwells upon it with a beauty and force which strikingly exhibit the nice discrimination and sound moral sense by which his intellect was distinsfuished. The passage should be read in connexion with his remarks on the hilarity of Hume. " Some grave and pious persons have been inclined to censure this gayety as incongruous with the feelings appropriate to the solemn situa. lion. We would observe, that though we were to admit, as a general rule, that expressions of wit and pleasantry are unbecoming the last hour, yet Sir Thomas More may be justly considered as the exception. The constitution of his mind was so singular and so happy, that throughout his life his humour and wit were evidently, as a matter of fact, com- patible, in almost all cases, with a general direction of his mind to serious and momentous subjects. His gayety did not imply a dereliction, even for the moment, of the habitude of mind proper to a wise and consci- entious man. It was an unquestionable matter of fact, that he could emit pleasantries and be seriously weighing in his mind an important point of equity or law, and could pass directly from the play of wit to the acts and the genuine spirit of devotion. And if he could at all other times maintain a vigorous exercise of serious thought and devout sentiment, unhurt by the gleaming of these lambent fires, there was no good reason 186 BRITISH STATESMEN. Sir Thomas More's constant adherence to the church of Rome was evinced by his writing against the reformers in a strain of violence most uncongenial with his general charac- ter, by his superstitious discipline of a hair shirt and a knot- ted whip, by certain severities exercised on persons declaring against popery, by his expressing in the inscription which he wrote for his tomb his hostility to heretics, and by his de- liberate preference of death to yielding any sanction to a mea- sure by which the English monarch arrogated the ecclesiasti- cal supremacy which had previously been acknowledged in the popes. In the earlier part of his life, however, he manifested a freedom of opinion which by no means threatened to grow into that bigotry, which in the latter part formed the only, but certainly very serious foil, to so much excellence. In his Utopia he made no scruple to censure the corruptions and ridicule the follies prevalent in the Roman church, and there can be no doubt that to a certain limited extent he would have zealously concurred in a plan of reform. Till the tumults attending the reformation excited him to wish that Christen- why they might not gleam on the scaffold also. He had thousands of times before approached the Almighty, without finding, as he retired, that one of the faculties of his mind, one of the attributes of extraordinary and universal talent imparted to him by that Being, was become extmct in consequence of pious emotions : and his last addresses to that Being could not be of a specifically different nature from the former ; they could only be one degree mure solemn. He had before almost habitually thought of death, and most impressively realized it ; and still he had wit, and its soft lustre was to his friends but the more delightful for gilding so grave a contemplation : well, he could only realize the awful event one degree more impressively, when he saw the apparatus, and was warned that this was the hour. As protestants, we undoubtedly feel some defect of com- placency, in viewing such an admirable display of heroic self-possession mingled with so much error ; but we are convinced that he was devoutly obedient to what he believed the will of God, that the contemplation of the death of Christ was the cause of his intrepidity, and that the errors of his faith were not incompatible with his interest in that sacrifice. " There is so little danger of any excessive indulgence of sallies of wit in the hour of death, that there is no need to discuss the question, how far as a rule applicable to good men in general, such vivacity, as that of More, would in that season comport with the Christian character ; but we are of opinion that it would fully comport, in any case substantially resembling his ; in any case where the innocent and refined play of wit had been through life one of the most natural and unaffected operations of the mind, where it had never been felt to prevent or injure serious thinking and pious feeling, and where it mingled with the clear indica- tions of a real Christian magnanimity in death." SIR TH03IAS MORE. 167 dom might be tranquillized by a paramount authority in reli- gion, his veneration for the pope had by no means gone the length of ascribing an absolute unlimited authority in reli- gious matters. At all times he held the decrees of general councils in higher respect than those of the papal court : and when Henry the Eighth was about to publish the famous book which procured him and all his successors the title of De- fender of the Faith, More vainly remonstrated with him against the extravagant terms in which that book set forth the pope's authority. He probably was not himself aware how firmly the popish superstitions had taken hold of his mind, till they were at- tacked by Luther ; and then he found them become so sacred in his opinion, that he deliberately avowed, and with unques- tionable sincerity, in his Apology, that he deemed heretics worse than robbers and murderers. And since his philosophy had fallen far short of admitting the principle that human au- thority has no right to punish modes of faith, he considered heretics as amenable to the tribunals of the state, and the magistrate bound to prosecute the enemies of God. The pro- gress of his mind to bigotry and persecution is explained by Mr. Macdiarmid with much intelligence, and with the utmost candour toward the admirable person whom he is painfully forced to accuse. It is impossible now to ascertain how far More was prac- tically a persecutor. If it were possible, we should go into the inquiry with a strong apprehension of finding, that he did in some measure contribute to the rigorous execution of the laws enacted, or brought into more decisive operation, against the protestants, during part of the detestable reign in which it was his fate to live. It is unquestionable however that some of the protestant writers have greatly exceeded the truth, in charging him with numerous acts of direct personal cruelty in the exercise of his power. They have used expressions from which it might almost be inferred, that one of his ordi- nary methods against protestants was the infliction of corporal suffering. But we have his own express affirmation, which we consider as of higher authority than all other testimony, that he had recourse to personal violence on account of the declared renunciation of popery only in two instances, that of a boy of his household, and that of a man who was guilty of indecent outrages on persons, particularly on women, attend- 188 BRITISH STATUSMETT, ing the mass. These two he caused to be " stripped," he says, but not so much, he affirms, as to cause them any lasting pain or injury. Without however proceeding the odious length that has been most unjustly imputed to him, he might, in his high official capacity of cliancellor and president of the star- chamber, exercise much legal intolerance ; and from such a view we can only join with all good and wise men in lamenting the deplorable darkness and perversity of human reason, which both in that and later times so obstinately refiised to perceive or acknowledge, that religious opinions are entirely beyond the jurisdiction of human authority. What is most humiliating of all,- — many of the reformers themselves, though asserting liberty of opinion in their dissent from the church of Rome, could not comprehend that other men had the very same right to dissent from them. The larger portion of the history of the reformed churches has been the history of popish intolerance, variously modified indeed, in its action, by national and local character, and by the particular temper of leading individuals, but well furnished with its conclaves, its holy offices, its political intrigues, its bulls, its dungeons, and even its executioners, and operating rather on a reduced scale of power, than with any mitigation of malignity. All this, say the protestants, is very arrogant and impious in the papal church ; but the papal church is erroneous, and the papal church is not ours : — of what inestimable utility, in the true church, would be a modified exercise of that high authority, which is indeed so WTong and pernicious in the corrupt one ; it were very unfortunate to lose entirely so grand an advantage gained over the human mind by ecclesiastical authority ; cer- tainly it has been very improperly acquired and used by the church that gained it, but heing gained, might it not become a holy thing in the hands of holy men ? The conqueror was no doubt guilty of ambition and injustice, but his successors, who are of course wise and beneficent, may do much more good by retaining the subjugated provinces and the spoils, than by restoring liberty and property. Can the power be too great, when the only object to which it is possible for it ever to be applied in our hands is the support of the genuine cause of God ? When strong measures have been employed to pro- mote and establish error, are Ave not in duty called upon to use means equally strong to maintain the truth ? Sentiments of this kind are unhappily felt and expressed by bigots, not LORD BTJRLEIGH. 189 only in all establishments, but in all sects, however mani- festly incompatible with their primary and fundamental prin. ciples. As long as the popish establishment stands, it will have the effect, not only of setting an example, venerable by age, of ecclesiastical dominion, but of continually suggesting how far it might be carried ; and it will tend to prevent any set of men from ever suspecting themselves of intolerance, so long as they stop short of the downright tyranny which that church has always practised, and prevent them from cordially allow- ing an absolute freedom of thought and profession, satisfied with just so much authority over men's religious opinions as argument, eloquence, and virtue can maintain. On account of this influence, as well as of the immediate noxiousness of the papal dominion wherever it exists, we have fervently to wish for the downfall of all its establishments, and humbly to pray, that the movements of the present awful crisis may happily be made so far beneficial as to result in their final demolition. We come back to the book before us by observ- ing, that the detestable quality of religious, and especially popish bigotry, is hardly more conspicuous in the exhibitions of Smithfield and St. Bartholomew, than in the fact of its having sometimes filled with virulence such an otherwise almost angelic being as Sir Thomas More. We must be more brief in our notice of the remaining lives. That of Cecil, Lord Burleigh, presents to our view beyond all doubt the most useful minister that ever managed the affairs of our country. He held the important station during very nearly the whole reign of Elizabeth ; and we shall not allow it to constitute any impeachment of either our loyalty or gal- lantry, that we have wished, while reading the account of his life, that he had been the monarch instead of our famous queen. It is impossible to say what share of the better part of her fame was owing to him, but we are inclined to think, that if we could make out an estimate of that reign, Avanting all the good which resulted from just so much wisdom and moderation as Cecil possessed beyond any other statesman that could have been employed, and including all the evil w^hich no other minister would have prevented, we should rifle that splendid period of more than half its honours. A very considerable proportion of his political labour was a contest with his sovereign, a contest with caprice, with superstition, 9* 190 BRITISH STATESMEN. with bigotry, and with the prodigality of favouritism. This would no doubt reflect great honour on the sovereign who could, notwithstanding, retain in her favour and service so upright a minister, if the fact had not been, that his services were just as indispensable to her government as those of a cook or postillion were to her personal accommodation. She had the sense to be convinced, and the prudence to act on her conviction, that no other man in her dominions could so happily direct her affairs through the extreme dangers of that memorable period. Though, therefore, she would sometimes treat him with the meanest injustice, contriving to throw on him the odium of any dishonourable or unpopular action of her own, and would occasionally make him the object, like the rest of her ministers, of her abusive petulance, addressing him with the titles of " old fool," " miscreant," and " coward," yet she made him always her most confidential counsellor, zealously defended him against his enemies, refused his ur- gent solicitation, when advanced far in life, to be allowed to retire from his office, and anxiously visited his sick room in the concluding period of his life, and not remote from the close of her own. Excepting one or two sublime examples in the Jewish his- tory. Sir Thomas More was probably the only great states- man that ever rose to eminence and power without ambition. Though Cecil's virtue could descend to no base expedients for advancement, he was from his early youth of a very aspir- ing disposition ; and certainly, if the most extraordinary in- dustry and attainments could merit distinction and honourable employment, no young man ever had superior claims. He very soon drew the attention of the court, obtained the utmost that his ambition could desire, and held a ministerial office probably a greater number of years than any other man in our history. With the exception of a very few objectionable or doubtful circumstances, it seems impossible to use language too strong in praise of this admirable minister. No states- man since his time has given the nation, after long experience of his conduct, such a profound complacent feeling of being safe. The idea which gradually came to be entertained of him was almost that of a being not needing sleep or recrea- tion, always active by an invincible necessity, not subject to any caprices of temper nor obscurations of understanding, created and endowed to live for the state and for no other pur- LORD BURLEIGH. 191 pose, and so far above all meanness of self-intersst as to make it not at all worth while to examine his conduct ; and after being minister several times ten years, he seemed, in the apprehension of the people, to have outlived any danger of being removed from his office by death. If any unexpected public event happened, in England or the surrounding coun- tries, it was felt to be certain that the faithful old sentinel would be the first to see it, and would descry and avert any danger it might involve. If parties threatened to run high, it was recollected that Cecil's discernment and impartiality would calmly judge and balance their respective principles and merits, and that his incomparable powers of conciliation had already quieted or moderated many a political war. If a new man was raised to some important station, it was well- known that Cecil, in his appointments and recommendations, trampled on all pretensions but those of personal qualification. If the queen's favourites were given to wild courses, and seemed to endanger the sobriety of her government, it was not doubted that Cecil would keep a vigilant eye on their pro- ceedings, and would dare, if it should become necessary, even to admonish her Majesty on the subject. If a tax was im- posed, it was relied on that the careful and frugal minister would not have sanctioned it without an indispensable ne- cessity. If a negotiation was carried on with foreign states, it was quite a certain thing that Cecil would neither provoke them nor cringe to them, would sacrifice no national advan- tage either through pride or meanness. And if a military expedition was to be equipped, it was not a matter to bs doubted that some just and important object was to be gained, at the smallest possible hazard and expense. Such a man was of necessity violently hated by every party and every in- dividual, in constant succession, that had any mean projects of self-interest to prosecute at the expense of the public wel- fare ; but the bulk of the nation must have wished centuries of life, if it had been possible, to the incomparable minister. The character of his understanding was that of vast compre- hension, which could view the most complicated system of concerns in all its parts, and in due proportion, at once ; and therefore saw how to promote the advantage of the whole by the expedients devised for any particular part. The charac- ter of his political temper, if we may so express it, was a vigorous moderation, prompt and resolute in its measures, 192 BRITISH STATESMEN. and yet seeking to accomplish the end hj the most temperate means and in the quietest manner. Moderation was conspi- cuous in the general scope and direction of his designs, as well as in the manner of eifecting each particular object. He was the invariable opponent of war, which he, unaccounta- bly, judged an expedient very rarely necessary even in the most turbulent times, and of which he most perfectly beheld the vile and hideous features through the romantic dazzling kind of heroism so much in vogue in those enterprising times. But the greatest and most continued efforts of his moderate policy were made in the endeavour to preserve to the peo- ple some slight shadow of religious liberty, in opposition to the half-popish queen, and a most bigoted and perse- cuting hierarchy, that incessantly counteracted his liberal schemes. The boasted reign of Elizabeth was a period of great barba- rism, as far as related to the royal and episcopal notions of the rio'hts of conscience, and of great cruelty in the practical ad- ministration of the religious department. Cecil remonstrated in a spirited manner against the proceedings of the prelates, which he charged with being nearly the same as those of the Inquisition ; but when he attempted to interpose his official authority in defence of the victims of their intolerance, he found they had so entirely the approbation of the queen, that they would set his remonstrances and interposition at defiance. She was a bigoted devotee to various popish superstitions, was passionately fond of gaudy and childish ceremonials in the ecclesiastical institutions, was the bitter enemy of every thing like real liberty of religious opinion, and, in short, was altogether unworthy of being, where circumstances had placed her, at the head of the protestant cause. The accident of her being placed in this distinguished situation, and being conse- quently hated and conspired against by all the catholic go- vernments, was the grand security for the animated loyalty of her protestant subjects ; and even the puritans, towards whom the measures of her reign symbolized a good deal with the plagues of Egypt, were so desperate of any other defence against the horrors of a real popish dominion and persecution, that they entered into associations for the protection of her person and government. Their loyalty, therefore, was ob- viously in a great degree self-interested ; but the following passage, among very many others of a similar kind that might LORD BURLEIGH. 193 be extracted, will tend to show that it was also in no small degree generous and gratuitous. Away then with the charge of faction and turbulence which has been made against this venerable class of sufferers, unless the charge of fac- tion is also to be applied to the principle of returning good for evil. " Elizabeth hoklins: very different sentiments from these, not only pre- scribed pecuHar forms for the worship of her people, but was deter, mined that they should use no other. The puritans, on the other hand, without caUing her right in question, objected to the forms which she had appointed, because they had been previously employed in the popish wor- ship, as mystical symbols, and were associated in the minds of the people with the grossest superstitions. They resolved therefore that no worldly considerations should induce them to assume what they accounted appcn. dages of idolatry : while the queen, on her part, prepared to employ all her authority in support of this exertion of her supremacy. " Fmding that her council, the ablest and wisest council that England ever saw, were decidedly averse to measures which threatened to involve the nation in the most dangerous dissensions, she resolved to effect her pur- pose by means of the bishops, particularly Archbishop Parker, who readily and zealously entered into her views The severities to which these now proceeded, were only surpassed by the frivolity of the pretences under which they were exercised. While the fervent attachment to the use of surplices, corner-caps, tippets, the cross in baptism, and the ring in mar- riage, were considered as the distinguishing characteristics of a Christian, any dislike to these forms, which were allowed to be in themselves indif- ferent, was accounted a sufficient crime to subject the most learned and pious clergyman to imprisonment and exile ; or, as a mitigated punish- ment, to be turned out of his living, and with his family consigned to indi. gence. The most pernicious effects necessarily flowed from these excesses. While the church was weakened by the loss of a large portion of her most able divines, and degraded by the introduction of a great number of men who could barely read the prayer-book, and write their own names, without even pretending to preach, the people began every where to collect round their expelled teachers, and to form conventicles apart from the establish- ment. Yet these bad consequences only set the queen and her bishops upon obtaining new statutes to reach the refractory ; and at length, even the laity were brought within their grasp, by an act which provided that non- attendance at public worship, in the parish churches, should be punished with imprisonment, banishment, and if the exile returned, with death. An arbitrary commission was appointed with full powers to bring all religious offenders to punishment ; and as any resistance to the injunctions of the queen, as supremo head of the church, was at length construed into sedi- tion and treason, many subjects, of unquestioned loyalty, were imprisoned, banished, and even executed." — P. 156. There could be no hazard in affirming, that a man combin- ing greater industry with greater powers of execution, never 194 BRITISH STATESMEN. lived since the beginning of time. And when it is considered through what a very long period these exertions were main- tained, and that for the most part they were most judiciously directed to the public good, we may be allowed to dwell with high complacency on this great character, notwithstanding the censure which we think justly due to the magnificence of his private establishment, and the reprobation deserved by one or two iniquitous modes of taxation which he suggested to Eliza- beth. And though it was certainly very unnecessary, except to his ambition, for him to occupy so vastly wide a sphere of official employment, and it might have been more truly pat- riotic to have endeavoured to introduce other men of merit into some of the departments, both in order to give them a share of the deserved distinction, and to qualify them to serve the na- tion after death should have closed his own labours, yet we would earnestly press this wonderful example of industry, as a pattern and a monition, on the consciences of many worthy people, who may applaud themselves for having passed a busy week, in virtue of about so much real application as would have been compressed into less than half a day of our indefati- gable statesman. Notwithstanding the rigorous occupation of his time and faculties by the business of the government, we are informed that he could lay aside all the formality of the statesman, in the company of his select friends, and in amusing himself with his children and grandchildren. — We are gratified by all the indications that religion had a habitual influence on his mind ; and his maxim, given in the first sentence of the following quotation, will furnish the most dignified explanation of the principle which secured the general rectitude of his own use- ful and admirable life. " It was usual with him to say that he would never trust any man but of sound rcliorion, for he that was false to God would never be true to man. From his speeches and discourses we are led to conclude, that his religious sentimsnts had a powerful effect in confirmuig his fortitude, amidst the perilous circumstances with which he was often surrounded. At the aw- ful period when Philip was preparmg his Armada, and when the utter de- struction of the English government was confidently expected abroad, and greatly dreaded at home, Burleigh appeared uniformly collected and reso- lute ; and when the mighty preparations of the Spaniards were spoken of in his presence with apprehension, he only replied with firmness, ' They shall do no more than God will suffer them.' The strictness of his morals correspouded with his religious professions ; nor could his enemies, who EAEL OF STRAFFOED. 195 severely scrutinized his most indifferent actions, impute to hlra even the vices peculiarly incident to his rank." — P. 245. Devout references to the Deity might not be of ordina- ry occurrence among ministers of state of that day ; the more extensive prevalence of sincere piety among the great, in the present times, must be the cause that we now so very frequently hear our statesmen, in adverting to dan- gers of similar kind, utter with true devotional solemnity such reflections as that expressed by Cecil on occasion of the Ar- mada. The next life is that of Wentworth, Earl of Straflbrd, and it is the longest and most important of the series. It is evi- dently the result of severe thought, and very diligent research ; and to us it appears to be written with the utmost impartiality that is possible to any man who really holds certain decided principles relative to the right and wrong of governments. We can perceive in the writer no trace of the demagogue or partisan ; the amplest justice is done to the talents of the dis- tinguished person, and in several points his conduct is liberal- ly applauded for integrity ; while the very fair advantage is given him throughout of being his own evidence and advocate, as his letters and dispatches are taken as the principal author- ity. This life is a most interesting piece of composition, in which the account of an extraordinary individual is very dex- terously managed to combine and animate various general sketches of the affairs of the most memorable period of our his- tory. The narration of Strafford's active political career, which commenced early in his life, is preceded by a rapid but very able and luminous statement of the contest which had been zealously maintained, through several ages, between the respective claims of the monarch and the people ; which great contest, as he clearly shows, was precipitated very fast to- ward a decision, at the period when Strafford entered on the public stage. The preceding sovereigns, and by no means less than the rest, James's immediate predecessor, had held a very magnificent language on the subject of the royal power and prerogatives ; but Elizabeth took care to avoid the necessity of bringing the obnoxious question to issue in the most dan- gerous form of large demands of money. Her extreme econo- my in the public expenditure, her admired talents, the une- qualled policy of her great minister, her being the chief of 196 BRITISH STATESMEN. the protestant cause, and the influence which her sex main- tained on the chivalrous part of the nation, had all concurred to secure for her a tolerance of the arrogant pretensions which she so prudently forbore to follow up into a complete practical assertion. It was not within the capacity of James to understand, that the nation must be greatly transformed if it could endure the same language, even though combined with the same practical forbearance, from a stranger, of the slen- derest endowments, of prodigal and low habits, suspected of popery, and governed by such a favourite as the infamous Buckingham. But he was resolved that they should not only hear the loftiest strains of the jus divimnn, but should be made to acquiesce in all the modes of verifying it on their purses, their creeds, and their persons. He was indeed compelled to observe the popular formality of calling parliaments ; but he revenged himself by stout though laconic lectures to them on passive obedience, by insults, by declarations of their futility, by peremptory demands of money, and by petulant orders of dissolution. This was the state of things at the time that Strafford, a young gentleman of large fortune, of very high spirit, of powerful talents, and by no means devoid of all good qualities, entered into parliament ; and it required but a short time to make him very prominent among the leaders of the popular cause, to the support of which none of his contempo- raries brought more courage, or more eloquence. He entered so fully into the arguments of this cause, as to deprive himself, if he should desert it, of all apology on the ground of juvenile rashness and inconsideration. It was of course not long before so formidable an opponent received overtures from Bucking- ham, in behalf of himself and the court which he ruled. What surprise would be felt by any reader who should not have lived long enough to know how these matters regularly go, to find that these overtures were received and replied to with the greatest possible politeness by Strafford, though he had a thou- sand times, within a few preceding months, pronounced the man by whom they were made to be the greatest miscreant in Europe, and to be intent on such designs as every man of vir- tue ought to oppose, even to the hazard of his life ! He in- stantly placed himself in the attitude of patient waiting, and in part payment of the price of the good things he was going to receive, began, in parliament, to endeavour to moclei-ate the tone of the popular party ; though most zealous for their great EARL OP STRAFFORD. 197 cause, he was anxious they should not prosecute it in the spi- rit and language olfaction. Our benevolent sympathy was ex- tremely hurt to find, that this virtuous patriot was deceived and insulted by Buckingham, who, on second thoughts, had deter- mined to do without him. It then became proper to discov- er again, that no energy of opposition in parliament could be too vehement against the designs of the favourite and the king. That king was Charles the First, who having made a long and very strenuous effort to subdue the people and the parlia- ment to his arbitrary government by authority and intimidation, was induced again to try the expedient of converting some of the boldest of the refractory into friends by means of honours and emoluments. He was instantly successful with Strafford, who accepted a peerage, and the presidency of the Council of York ; and became and continued to the end of his life, the most faithful and devoted servant of the king, and of his de- spotic system of government. He might seem to have felt an almost enthusiastic passion for despotism in the abstract, inde- pendently of any partiality for the particular person who was to exercise it. After a few years of his administration as viceroy of Ireland, he exulted to declare, that in that country the king was as absolute as any monarch in the whole world. And when, after the very long series of struggles between Charles and the people, the question was coming rapidly to the last fatal arbitrement, he urged the king to the prompt adoption of the most vigorous and decisive measures ; and he was mor- tified almost to distraction when he saw him, notwithstanding this energetic advice, falling into a wavering and timid policy. His own character and measures, indeed, had always been distinguished by an extraordinary and almost preternatural vig- our. His energy and fortitude did not desert him, even when at length he found himself falling under the power and ven- geance of that irresistible popular spirit which embodied its de- termined force and hostility in the long parliament, aided, with respect to Strafford, by the hatred and court influence of the queen. He maintained the most graceful and dignified firmness on the scaffold, to which he was consigned in the result of the most memorable trial, except that of his royal master, in the records of our history ; a trial in which a perversion of law was made the expedient for accomplishing what was deemed a point of moral justice not formally provided for by the law. 198 BRITISH STATESMEN. As in all such cases, the bad effects became conspicuous, as Mr. Macdiarmid observes, in the admiration which the heroic suf- ferer excited in his death ; whereas, if he had only been doom- ed, as he did well deserve, and would have been felt to deserve, to perpetual imprisonment or exile, his name and character would have sunk down quietly to their proper level, and he would simply have been recollected as one of the many able unprincipled men, who have chosen to identify their fame with that of the despots of whom they have consented to be the tools. LORD KAMES. 199 VII. LORD KAMES. Memoirs of the Life and Writings of the Hon. Henry Home^ of Kame ; containing Sketches of the Progress of Litera- ture and general Lnprovement in Scotland, during the great- er part of the Eighteenth Century. The principal facts relative to the individual who forms the leading subject of this work, may be given in a few words. Henry Home was the son of a country gentleman of small for- tune, and was born in the year 1696. About the age of six- teen, he was bound by indenture to attend the office of a writer to the signet in Edinburgh, with a view to prepare himself for the profession of a solicitor. Being sent one evening by his master with some papers to the President of the Court of Ses- sion, he was so handsomely treated by the venerable judge and his daughter, and so enchanted with the character of dignity and elegance in their manners and situation, that he was in- stantly fired with the ambition of attaining eminence in the public profession of the law, and resolved to qualify himself for an advocate. He commenced a most laborious course of study, as well in the departments of literature and science, as in the knowledge more peculiarly appropriate to his intended profes- sion, and made a rapid progress in them all. He was called to the bar at the age of twenty- seven, published various writings on legal subjects, obtained at length the first eminence as a pleader, and was appointed at the age of fifty-six one of the judges of the Court of Session, by the title of Lord Kames. His moral and metaphysical studies were prosecuted with as much ardour as those of the law ; he was personally acquaint- ed with most of the philosophers of the time ; and by means of his writings became celebrated as a philosopher himself. When he was near the age of seventy, his fortune received the addition of a very large estate, left to his wife, to whom he had 200 LOED KAMES. been married at the age of forty-five : this estate he was ahiiost enthusiastically fond of cultivating and adorning. About the same period that he obtained this wealth, his legal rank was raised to that of a Lord of Justiciary, a judge of the supreme criminal tribunal in Scotland, of which office he continued to discharge the duties till his death, in 1782, in the eighty- seventh year of his age. Lord Karnes was a very conspicuous man in his time, and deserved to pass down to posterity in a record of considerable length. He has rendered a material service to literature by his "' Elements of Criticism ;" and from the work before us it is evident, that his professional studies contributed the most im- portant advantages to both the theory and the administration of law in Scotland. The improvement in agriculture also, in that country, seems to have taken its rise, in a great measure, from his zeal and his example. He received from nature an extra- ordinary activity of mind, to which his multiplied occupations allowed no remission, even in his advanced age ; we find him as indefatigable in his eightieth year, as in the most vigorous and ambitious season of his life. The versatility of his talents was accompanied by a strength and acuteness, which penetrated to the essence of the subjects to which they were applied. The intentions with which he prosecuted such a wide diversity of studies, appear often excellent ; very few men so ingenious, so speculative, so systematic, and occasionally so fanciful, have kept practical utility so generally in view. The great influence which he exerted over some of the younger philoso- phers of the time, several of the most distinguished of whom were proud to acknowledge themselves his pupils, was employed to determine their speculations to useful purposes. His conduct in the office of judge appears to have impressed every impartial man that witnessed it, with an invariable opinion of his talents and integrity. As a domestic and social man, his character was that of frankness, good humour, and extreme vivacity. His prompt intelligence continually played around him, and threw its rays on every subject that even casualty could intro- duce into conversation. His defects as a speculatist were, that he had not, like the very first order of minds, that simplicity of intellect that operates rather in the form of power than of inge- nuity, and is too strong to be either captivated or amused by the specious fallacies of a fantastic theory ; and that, as far as we have the means of judging, he had a higher respect for LORD KAMES, 201 the conjectures of mere reason, than for the authority of rcA^e- lation. The name of Lord Kames is sufficiently eminent to render an account of his life interesting, though it appear more than twenty years after his death. But we greatly admire the modesty wdth w^hich Lord Woodhouselee, better known to the literary world under the name of Mr. Fraser Tytler, has been waiting, during this extended interval, for some abler hand to execute a work, to which he, very unaccountably, pro- fesses himself inadequate. This long delay, however, has been of immense service to the magnitude of the performance, which has perhaps been growing many years, and has risen and expanded at length, into a most ample shade of cypress over the tomb of Lord Kames. In order to give the book this prodigious size, the author has chosen to take advantage of Lord Kames's diversified studies, to enlarge on the several subjects of those studies ; of his profession of law, to deduce the history of Scottish law, and of the lives of its most distinguished professors and practitioners, accompanied by dissertations on law in general ; and of his happening to be a Scotchman, to go back as far as the tenth century in order to prove that there were scholars then in Scotland, and return all the way downward, proving that there have been scholars there ever since. In his youth Lord Kames was acquainted with a particular species of beaux, peculiar to those times, which animals had, if our author is to be believed, a singular faculty of uniting the two functions of fluttering and thinking ; and therefore several in- dividuals are to be separately described, (vol. i. p. 57, &c.) It was extremely proper to give us a short account of the species, as forming a curious branch of entomology ; but it does not seem to have been so indispensable to describe, in- dividually, beau Forrester and beau Hamilton. Because one of Lord Kames's early friends, a Mr. Oswald, was a mem- ber of parliament, a sheet and a half must be occupied by uninteresting letters, w^iich this Mr. Oswald wrote to him about temporary and party politics. A larger space is filled with letters from Dean Tucker, which, excepting one, and perhaps two or three paragraphs of another, are not of the smallest consequence, further than their being written to Lord Kames ; but therefore they are inserted. Lord Kames was acquainted with David Hume, and, therefore, in his life, there must be a very long account of the publication and reception 202 LORD KAMES. of " Hume's Treatise of Human Nature," with a very long extract from its conclusion. Lord Kames wrote a well known book called the " Elements of Criticism," and therefore ac- tually fifteen pages at once are filled with an extract from that book. We have taken all due pains, but ineffectually, to reconcile ourselves to this mode of enlarging the size of a book by uninteresting letters, and indolent extracts. But even if a large work were constructed without this lazy ex- pedient, and consisted almost wholly of the honest workman- ship of the author, we have still an invincible dislike to the practice of pouring forth the miscellaneous stores of a com- mon-place book, of relating the literary, the legal, the philo- sophical, and the political transactions of half a century, and of expending narrative and panegyric to a vast amount on a crowd of all sorts of people, under the form and pretence of recording the life of an individual. It is an obvious charge against this species of writing, that it can have no assignable limits, for as the object is undefinable, we can never be cer- tain that it is gained ; and therefore the writer may go on adding volume to volume, still pretending that all this is neces- sary to his plan, till his whole stock of miscellaneous ma- terials is exhausted ; and then he may tell us with a critical air of knowing what he is about, that he has executed, how- ever imperfectly, the plan which he had considered as best adapted for doing justice to the interesting subject. But if instead of this he were to tell us, (perhaps on having found another drawer-full of materials) that another volume was ne- cessary for giving right proportions and a right conclusion to his work, we could not contradict him, because we should not know where to seek for the rules or principles by which to decide what would be a proper form or termination ; unless we were to refer the case to be settled by our patience, or our purse, according to which authorities in criticism, we may possibly have passed, a good way back, the chapter or paragraph, which appeared very proper for a conclusion. Every work ought to have so far a specific object, that we can form some notion what materials are properly or improperly introduced, and within what com- pass the whole should be contained. Those works that dis- dain to recognise any standard of prescription according to which books are appointed to be made, may fairly be regarded as outlaws of literature, which every prowling reviewer has a right to fall upon wherever he finds them. Another serious objection against this practice of making a LORD KAMES. 203 great book of a mass of materials so diverse that they have no natural connexion, and in such quantity that the slender nar- rative of an individual's life is insufficient to form an artificial connexion, is, that it is extremely injurious to the good order of our intellectual arrangements ; as it accustoms the reader to that broken, immethodical, and discursive manner of thought which is preventive or destructive of the power both of pro- longed attention and continuous reasoning. Just when a man has resolved, and possibly begun, to put his mind under severe discipline, in order to cure its rambling propensities, when he has perhaps vowed to do penance in mathematics for his mental dissipation, he is met by one meretricious pair of vol- umes after another, presenting all the seducing attractions of novelty, variety, facility of perusal, amusement somewhat dignified by an admixture of grave sense, and all this in an attire of the utmost elegance, from the type to the outside covering. The unfortunate sinner renounces his vows, throws away his mathematics, and becomes as abandoned a literary libertine as ever. If it be said, that a book thus composed merits, at the most, no more serious accusation than merely that of its being a miscellany, and that we have many mis- cellanies and collectanea which are well received by the pub- lic as a legitimate class of books ; we answer, yes, we have miscellanies and collectanea without number, and they are a pest of literature ; they reduce our reading to a useless amusement, and promote a vicious taste that nauseates the kind of reading, which alone can supply well-ordered know- ledge, and assist the attainment of a severe and compre- hensive judgment. These heterogeneous productions drive away the regular treatises, the best auxiliaries of mental dis- cipline, from the tables of both our male and female readers ; and the volumes of our Lockes, and Hartleys, and Reids, are reduced to become a kind of fortifying wall to the territory of spiders, on the remotest and dustiest shelf in all the room. Against an assemblage of multifarious biography of dis- tinguished men, under the ostensible form of a record of the life of an individual, we have to observe that it has the falla- cious effect of making that individual appear as always the king of the whole tribe. This would not be the eflect, if merely so much were mentioned, concerning other eminent persons, as should be indispensable to the history of the one immediately in question. These short references might just give us an impression of the high rank of those other persons, 204 LORD KAMES. and induce us to seek in the proper quarter for more ample information concerning them : they would be brought into no comparison with the person whose life is exclusively to be re- lated. But when so much is said of them, that we seem to have a competent memoir of each, so that we do not want to inquire any further, and when yet all these memoirs together do not occupy so large a space as that filled by the chief per- sonage, this individual comes to hold in our thoughts a magni- tude superior to that of the rest, nearly in proportion to the ampler space he fills in the book. There is enough to bring them into comparison with him, and too little to illustrate and support their claims in that comparison ; and they seem but assem- bled as bashaws round their Grand Turk. In the work be- fore us, Lord Karnes appears, (for we have been at pains, with the help of Erasmus^ De copia verhorum et rerurn^ to find a nobler simile than the last) like Jupiter on the top of the Scottish Olympus, looking kindly, though majestically, down, on the inferior personages of the worshipful assembly, such as Hume, Reid, Adam Smith, Millar, and many others. Lord Woodhouselee does not expressly proclaim the superiority, and perhaps no more did Mercury or Ganymede s ; it is enough that Jupiter did, and that Lord Kames does, Sit on the most spacious throne. But then let us turn to the historian and eulogist of some other member of that great philosophic hierarchy, and the venerable order is strangely confounded and revolutionized ; Dr. Adam Smith, for instance, places David Hume on the proudest eminence, and Kames, and all the rest of them, are made to know their places. This game of shifting dignities, this transferring of regal honours, must continue, till each panegyrist shall have the discretion to con- fine his work so much to an individual, as to avoid the in- vidiousness of constantly, in effect, running a parallel between him and his contemporaries. We also object to the telling, in the life of one man, of so much about the life, and works, and actions of another, be- cause if the life of that other is likewise to be written, the biographer of the former actually forestalls or pilfers the ma- terials which are wanted by the biographer of the latter. And thus the same thing is told twice, or, if but once, it is told in the wrong place. But it is certain to be told twice, for the trade of mutual borrowing, and mutual stealing, never throve better than among the biographers of the present day. In reading this, and some late voluminous works, purport. LORD KAMES. 20B ing to be tlie lives of particular persons, and in observing the multitude of memoirs of other persons appended or inter- woven, we have earnestly wished, that each country, and especially North Britain, had been a good while since pro- i^ided with a standard approved dictionary of all its names of any consequence ; with a sufficient quantity of information under each, and with a concise supplement regularly added every few years. In that case, the writer of a particular and eminently distinguished life, would not have needed, and could have had no pretext, to swell the bulk of his work with an account of every person, of the smallest note, whom he had occasion to mention, as contemporary, or in any manner connected, with the principal person, or even as having pre- ceded him by years or centuries. We might then be re- ferred, in one line, to the article in the dictionary, to be con- sulted at leisure, and go on, without circuit or interruption, with the main subject. We still wish this were done, with the utmost haste; since we do not know how many more pon- derous and costly works, like the present, may else come out, loaded with secondary subjects, and even with the substance of some of the very same articles which have encumbered this and recent publications. For making such a dictionary, it will be of service to consult these works of which we have complained, and extract from them several articles relating to persons of whom, though deserving of some notice, no in- formation, as it should seem, may be found anywhere else. There is, for instance, in the book before us, a particular ac- count of an obscure, but apparently an able man, of the name of Colin Maclaurin. It was a disappointment to us not to see this followed by some account of Maclaurin's master, an- other obscure man of the name of Newton. Having thus honestly protested against this mode of raising a large and costly book by collecting a heap of heterogeneous materials, and having informed our readers that the life of Lord Kames, though very long and busy, forms but a rather slight and arbitrary combination of the contents of these vol- umes, we must now express our opinion of the merit of those contents separately considered ; and produce some extracts illustrative of their quality. And we are prompt to testify, that in many instances their quality is high. Lord Wood- houselee is an able and practised thinker, possessed of ample stores of learning and general knowledge, well acquainted 10 206 LORD KA3IES. with the history, the schools, and the questions of philosophy ; a discriminative judge of character ; and writir.g in a style, which we deem a linished exan^.ple of what may be called transparent diction. It is so singularly lucid, so free from all affected rhetoric and artificial turns of phrase, so perfectly abstracted, with the exception of a law term or two, from every dialect appropriated to a particular subject, that we have never viewed thoughts through a purer medium. It is so pure and perfect, that we can read on, a considerable way, without our attention being arrested by the medium ; it is as if there were nothing, if we may so express ourselves, between us and the thought. And we are made to think of the medium after some time, only by the reflection how very clearly we have apprehended the sense, even when relating to the uncouth subjects of law, or the abstruse subjects of metaphysics. By this pure and graceful diction, we are beguiled along with the author, through several prolix and unnecessary details, without being indignant, till we are past them, that he should have occupied himself and us with things too inconsiderable to deserve a fifth part of the space they fill. We have been greatly pleased and instructed by many of the reasonings on topics of philosophy, law, and criticism, the result of mature and comprehensive thought, and but very little tinctured by the peculiarities of any sect or school, though somewhat partial, of course, to the opinions of Lord Kames, who, in spite of the immense disparity of age, was the intimate friend of the author's younger years. Many of his observations and statements, elucidate the history and pro- gress of law, science, and literature in Scotland* We have only to regret, that he had not elaborated his thoughts on these various subjects into a digested series of finished essays, in- stead of throwing them together in a mass, to swell beyond all reasonable bounds the importance of an individual. A great part of this matter might just as well have been ap- pended to the life of any one of half a dozen other of the Scottish philosophers of the last century ; a proof of the im- propriety of its being all incorporated with the history of one. As to the letters to Lord Kames, which constitute a ma- terial portion of the work, we have already said, that many of them ought to have been omitted. But a considerable number are highly distinguished by sense or ingenuity ; we refer to LORD KAMES. 207 several from Dr. Franklin, many from Mrs. Montague, one from Lord Chancellor Hardwicke, on com'ts of equity, one or two from David Hume, and a few long ones, of great value, fi'om Professor Walker and Dr. Reid. The very long and intimate friendship with this last eminent philosopher, con- tinued to the death of Lord Kames. Their characters are thus amusingly contrasted by Mr. Dugald Stewart : " With one very distinguished character, the late Lord Kames, he (Dr. Reid) hved in the most cordial and affectionate friendship, notwithstand- ing the avowed opposition of their sentiments on some moral questions to which he attached the greatest importance. Both of them, however, were the friends of virtue and of mankind ; and both were able to temper the warmth of free discussion with the forbearance and good humour founded on mutual esteem. No two men, certainly, ever exhibited a more striking contrast in their conversation, or in their constitutional tempers : the one slow and cautious in his decisions, even on those topics which he had most diligently studied ; reserved and silent in promiscuous society; and retaining, after all his literary eminence, the same simple . and unassuming manners which he brought from his country residence : the other lively, rapid, and communicative ; accustomed by his pro- fessional pursuits, to wield with address the weapons of controversy, and not averse to a trial of his powers on questions the most foreign to his ordinary habits of inquiry. But these characteristical differences, while to their common friends, they lent an additional charm to the distinguish- ing merits of each, served only to enliven their social intercourse, and to cement their mutual attachment." — Vol. II. p. 230. Their correspondence, and no doubt their conversations, were directed very much to the most abstruse questions of physical and metaphysical science. Indeed, we deem it honourable to Lord Kames, that most of his friendships ap- pear to have been as laborious as they were sincere. The w^hole quantity of intellectual faculty existing among his friends was put in permanent requisition. And when he at any time heard of strong minds among his contemporaries, beyond the circle of his acquaintance, it was not long before he was devising how to trepan them, as elephants are caught in the east, in order to make them work. He had all kinds of burdens ready for them, and no burden so light, that any of them could frisk and gambol under it, in the wantonness of superfluous strength. It was at their peril, that any of them showed signs of thinking little of the difficulty of a discussion in law or criticism ; they were sure to have a whole system of metaphysics laid on their backs at the next turn. Very early in life he commenced this plan, and thought himself on the point of catching one of the stoutest of the elephantine 208 LORD KAMES. race. Dr. Clarke had some years before published his cele- brated Demonstration of the Being and Attributes of God, Mr. Home, at the age of twenty-seven, wrote him a long letter, proposing" objections, and demanding new arguments and solutions. Its unceremonious and almost presumptuous style, however, evinced a want of skill as yet in his inveigling art; the device was too coarsely adjusted to trepan one of the most discerning of the giant species ; who just stopped a few minutes in passing, tossed about with his trunk, as if in scorn of the design, some of the piles of materials with which it had been intended to load him, and then moved quietly off into the forest. — In simple language, Dr. Clarke wrote him a short, civil, and argumentative letter, and the correspondence went no further. Lord Kames had always a very strong partiality to meta- physical studies ; and he evinced even in that letter to Dr. Samuel Clarke, which we have already noticed with disappro- bation of its spirit, an acuteness adapted to excel in abstract speculations. In first introducing him in the character of a philosopher. Lord Woodhouselee takes occasion to make some observations on the tendency and value of metaphysical re- searches. *' Allowing them to be conversant about the noblest part of our frame, the nature and powers of the human soul ; and granting that they give the most vigorous exercise to the understanding, by training the mmd to an earnest and patient attention to its own operations ; still I fear it must be admitted, that as those abstract studies are beyond the limits of the faculties of the bulk of mankind, no conclusion thence derived can have much influence on human conduct. Even the anxiety shown by metaphy- sical writers to apologize for their favourite pursuits, by endeavouring, with great ingenuity, to deduce from them a few practical consequences with respect to life and manners, is strong proof of the native infertility of the soil, on which so much labour is bestowed to produce so small a return. It is not much to the praise of this science, that the most subtle and inge- nious spirits have, for above two tliousand years, assiduously exercised themselves in its various subjects of discussion, and have not yet arrived at a set of fundamental principles on which the thinking world is agreed. Neither have the uses, to which this sort of reasoning has sometimes been applied, tended to enhance its estimation. The attempts that have been made to found morality on metaphysical principles, have for certain been prejudicial, on the whole, to the cause of virtue. The acutest of the sceptical writers, availing themselves of Mr. Locke's doctrine of the origin of ideas, and the consequences he has thence drawn respecting morals, have done much more harm by weakening our belief in the reality of moral distinctions, than the ablest of their opponents, combating them on the same ground, and with the same weapons, have found it possible to LORD KAMES. 209 repair. The baneful industry of the former has, it is true, made the labours of the latter in some degree necessary, and therefore useful ; and it is in this point of view tliat the writings of those metaphysicians, who are antagonists of the sceptical philosophy, are entitled to attention and to praise." — Vol. I. p. 21. Such observations are of much weight as coming from a person so well versed in metaphysics. But it will be impos- sible for the reader of these volumes to believe the author can mean to be very rigid in proscribing metaphysical study, to which we can perceive that his clear understanding is in no small degree indebted. Nor will any enlightened man, we think, condemn, without great qualification, what is evidently the sublimest class of speculations, what demands the strong- est mental powers, and their severest exertion, and makes a bold effort to reach, in some small degree, that kind of know- ledge, or, if we may so speak, that mode of knowing, which perhaps forms the chief or peculiar intellectual distinction be- tween us and superior spirits. Metaphysical speculation tries to resolve all constituted things into their general elements, and those elements into the ultimate mysterious element of substance, thus leaving behind the various orders and modes of being, to contemplate being itself in its essence. It retires awhile from the consideration of truth, as predicated of parti- cular subjects, to explore those unalterable and universal re- lations of ideas, which must be the primary principles of all truth. It is not content to acknowledge or to seek the respec- tive causes of the effects which crowd every part of the crea- tion, but would ascertain the very nature of the relation be- tween cause and effect. Not satisfied to infer a Deity from the wise and beautiful order of the universe, it would descry the proof of this sublime fact in the bare existence of an atom. To ascertain the laws according to which we think, is a grati- fying kind of knowledge, but metaphysical speculation asks what is it to thinks and what is that power which performs so strange an operation ; it also attempts to discover the nature of the connexion of this mysterious agent with a corporeal machine ; and of the relation in which it really stands to that external world, concerning which it receives so many millions of ideas. In short, metaphysical inquiry attempts to trace things to the very first stage in which they can, even to the most penetrating intelligences, be the subjects of a thought, a doubt, or a proposition ; that profoundest abstraction, where 210 LORD KAMES. they stand on the first step of distinction and remove from nonentity, and where that one question might be put concern- ing them, the answer to which would leave no further ques- tion possible. And having thus abstracted and penetrated to the state of pure entity, the speculation would come back, tracing it into all its modes and relations ; till at last metaphy- sical truth, approaching nearer and nearer to the sphere of our immediate knowledge, terminates on the confines of distinct sciences and obvious realities. Now it would seem evident that this inquiry into primary truth must surpass, in point of dignity, all other speculations. If any man could carry his discoveries as far, and make his proofs as strong, in the metaphysical world, as Newton did in the physical, he would be an incomparably greater man than even Newton. The charge, therefore, of being frivolous, alleged sometimes angrily, and sometimes scornfully, against this department of study, is, so far as the subjects are concern- ed, but a proof of the complete ignorance of those who make it. Ignorance may be allowed to say any thing ; but we are very much surprised, when we sometimes hear men of consid- erable thought and knowledge, declaring, almost uncondition- ally, against researches into pure metaphysical subjects ; and also insisting, that our reasonings on moral subjects must never, for a moment, accept the pernicious aid of metaphysi- cal distinctions. We cannot comprehend how it is possible for them to frequent the intellectual world, without often com- ing in view of some of the great questions peculiarly belong- ing to this department of thought ; such as those concerning the nature of the mind, the liberty or necessity of human action, the radical distinction between good and evil, space, duration, eternity, the creation of inferior beings, and the attributes of the Supreme. And we wonder that, if it were only to enjoy the sensation of being overwhelmed in sublime mystery, and of finding how much there is reserved to be learnt in a higher state of existence and intelligence, an in- quisitive mind should not, when these subjects are forced on the view, make a strong, though it were a transient, effort of investigation. Nor can we conceive how a man of the least sagacity can deeply examine any moral subject, without often finding himself brought to the borders of metaphysical ground ; and there perceiving very clearly that he must either enter on that ground, or leave his subject most partially and unsatis- LORD KAMES. 211 fectorily discussed. All subjects have first principles, toward which an acute mind feels its investigation inevitably tending, and all first principles are, if investigated to their extreme re- finement, metaphysical. The tendency of thought toward the ascertaining of these first principles in every inquiry, as con- trasted with a disposition to pass (though perhaps very ele- gantly or rhetorically) over the surface of a subject, is one of the strongest points of distinction betvv^een a vigorous intellect and a feeble one. It is trae enough, to the grief of philosophers, and the humiliation of human ability, that but a very small degree of direct success has erer crowned these profound researches, or perhaps will ever crown them in the present state of our existence. It is also true, that an acute man who will abso- lutely prosecute the metaphysic of every subject to the last pos- sible extreme, with a kind of rebellion against the very laws and limits of nature^ in contempt of his senses, of experience, of the universal perceptions of mankind, and of divine revela- tion, may reason himself into a vacuity whore he will feel as if he were sinking out of the creation. Hume was such an example ; but we might cite Locke and Rcid, and some other illustrious men, who have terminated their long sweep of ab- stract thinkin^^ as much in the spirit of sound sense and rational belief as they began. Yet while we must attribute to weakness or ignorance the contempt or the terror of these inquiries, it is so evident from the nature of things, and the whole history of philosophy, that they mu5t in a great measure fail, when extended beyond cer- tain contracted iimlts, that it is less for the portion of direct metaphysical science which they can ascertain, than for their general eflbct on the thinking pov/ers, that we deem them a valuable part of inteliecLual discipline. Studies of this nature tend very m jch to augm3nt the power of discriminating clearly between ditfarent subjects, and ascertaining their analogies, dependencies, relative importance, and best method of inves- tigation. They enable the mind to dissipate the delusion of first appearances, a'.id detect fallacious subtleties of argument. Between the most superficial view of a subject and its most abstracted principles, there is a gradation of principles still more and more abstracted, conducting progressively, if any mind were strong enough to follow, to that profoundest princi- ple where inquiry must terminate for ever : now, though it be 212 l/ORD KAMES, impossible to approach within the most distant glimmering sight of that principle, yet a mind sharpened by metaphysical investigation, will be able sometimes to penetrate to the second, third, or fourth place in this retiring gradation, and will therefore have a far more competent understanding of the subject, from being able to investigate it to this depth, than another mind which has been accustomed to content itself with an attention merely to the superficies, A man habitua- ted to this deeper examination of every subject of which he seriously thinks, will often be able, and entitled, to advance his propositions with a confidence to which the man that only thinks on the surface of a subject must be a stranger, unless indeed he can totally forget that there is any thing deeper than the surface ; but then he may very fairly be excused from making any propositions at all. On the whole, we are of opinion, that though it is most un- wise to dedicate the chief part of a studious life to metaphysi- cal speculation, except in the case of those few extraordinary minds which can carry this speculation so far as to render to mankind the service of practically ascertaining the limits which human ability cannot pass, a moderate portion of this study would be of the greatest use to all intellectual men, as a mode of acquiring, in the general exercise of their under- standings, at once the double advantage of comprehensive- ness and precision. While therefore we are doing honour to abstract science, for the superior talents which it requires in the investigator, for the augmented powers which it confers in the progress of study, and for the elevating dignity which it bestows in the suc- cessful result, we are willing to remember, that after all it is but of subordinate importance. And we cannot help admir- ing the wisdom of that arrangement, by which nothing that is truly essential to the well-being of man is denied to the exer- tion of such powers as man generally possesses. The truths connected with piety and the social duties, with the means of personal happiness, and the method of securing an ulterior condition of progressive perfection and felicity, lie at the very surface of moral inquiries; like the fruits and precious stores of the vegetable kingdom, they are necessary to supply inev- itable wants, and are placed, by Divine Benevolence, within the reach of the meanest individual. The secret treasures, however, of the moral, as of the physical world, lie deep and LORD KAMES. 213 remote from casual observation, and are only yielded up to a series of skilful and laborious efforts : they are indeed wonder- ful and splendid ; they may gratify the ambition of the curious and ostentatious, and they may denote the gradations of men- tal nobility; they may even be applied to more useful pur- poses ; but they afford no substantial enjoyments, they consti- tute no part of the necessaries or comforts of existence ; a man who wants them, may yet be happy, contented, and secure ; and he who possesses them in profusion, may glitter in the array of intellectual opulence, yet pine, and perish. About the middle of his life Lord Kames became acquaint- ed with David Hume, who was considerably younger than himself, and who was just then making a manftd attempt for fame, and against religion, in the publication of his " Treatise of Human Nature." His letters describing the views and feelings which possessed his mind at that time, and which he seems to have retained with little alteration through life, ex- hibit but a very mean moral picture of the man. The printing of his "Philosophical Essays," Avhich Lord Kames dissuaded, gave occasion for his lordship's Ml appearance before the public as a philosopher, in his " Essays on the Principles of Morality and Natural Religion," in which he set himself to oppose the opinions of Hume. The intelligent reader will be anxious to meet with this book ; for he is given to expect, that the author makes out a fine account of human nature, as a well-poised, well-regulat- ed, and most harmonious moral system. He must be curious to see in what manner he disposes of the stupendous depravity, which through all ages has covered the earth with crimes and miseries : and how he has illustrated the grand and happy effects resulting from the general and permanent predominance of the selfish over the benevolent affections, from the imbeci- lity of reason and conscience as opposed to appetite, from the infinitely greater facility of forming and retaining bad habits than good ones, from the incalculable number of false opinions embraced instead of the true, and from the deprivation which is always found to steal very soon into the best institutions. He must, surely, be no less solicitous to see the dignity and certainty of the moral sense verified in the face of the well- known fact, that there is no crime which has not, in the ab- sence of revelation, been committed, in one part of the world or another, without the smallest consciousness of guilt. 10* 214 LORD KAMES. It is too evident that our philosopher felt it a light matter, that his speculations were sometimes in opposition to the book which Christians deem of paramount authority. He would pretend, in a general way, a kind of deference for that book, and yet go on with his theories and reasonings all the same. In this we consider his conduct, and the conduct of many other philosophic men, as most absurd, setting aside its irreligion. The book which avows itself, by a thousand solemn and ex- plicit declarations, to be a communication from heaven, is either what it thus declares itself to be, or a most monstrous impos- ture. If these philosophers hold it to be an imposture, and therefore an execrable deception put on the sense of mankind, how contemptible it is to see them practising their civil cringe, and uttering phrases of deference ! If they admit it to be what it avows itself, how detestable is their conduct in advancing positions and theories, with a cool disregard of the highest authority, confronting and contradicting them all the while ! And if the question is deemed to be yet in suspense, how ridi- culous it is to be thus building up speculations and systems, pending a cause which may require their demolition the instant it is decided ! Who would not despise, or pity, a man eagerly raising a fine house on a piece of ground at the very time in doubtful litigation ? Who would not have laughed at a man, who should have published a book of geography, with minute descriptions and costly maps, of distant regions and islands, at the very time that Magellan or Cook was absent on purpose to determine their position, or even verify their existence ? If Lord Kames was doubtful on the question of the truth or im- posture of the most celebrated book in the world, a question of which the decision, the one way or the other, is the indis- pensable preliminary to so many speculations, why did he not bend his utmost strength to decide it ? This had been a work of far more importance than any of those to which he applied himself: of far more importance than his reasonings on the existence of a Deity; since the very object of these reasonings was to prove, that we have a natural, intuitive, and invincible assurance, that there is a God, and therefore, in fact, that we need no reasoning or writing on the subject. Or if he would not make an eftbrt toward the decision of this great question himself, why should he not lie quiet till the other examiners should decide it ; cautious, even to anxiety, not to hazard, in the mean while, a single position of such a nature as must LORD KAMES. 215 assume that the question was already decided, and decided against the pretensions of the book professing to be of Divine authority ? But such positions he made no ditficulty of advanc- ing, especially in what was called, at that time, his magnum opus, the " Sketches of the History of Man." The leading doctrine of this work appears to be, that man was originally in the state of a most ignorant savage, and that all his knowledge and improvements, subsequently attained, as well in morals and theology, as in arts and sciences, have resulted from the progressive development of his natural pow- ers by natural means : in this same work, notwithstanding, the author affected to pay some deference to the Mosaic his- tory. This idle and irreligious notion was retained and cher- ished, in spite of the able reasoning of Dr. Doig, of which Lord VVoodhouselee gives a lucid abstract, followed by a curious account of the commencement of the acquaintance between Dr. Doig and Lord Kames. The other distinguished literary performance of Lord Kames, was the " Elements of Criticism." The biographer intro- duces his remarks on this work, by a very curious inquiry into the history of philosophical criticism, the invention of which he attributes to the Scottish philosopher, after an acute exam- ination of the claims of both the ancients and moderns. We are very much entertained by this ingenious investigation ; though Lord Woodhouselee's own acknowledgment of the near approaches to this species of criticism in one or two of the ancients, and the actual, though very imperfect, development of it in several modern writers, especially Akenside, warrants our hesitation to assign to Lord Kames the title of inventor which is wrested, by a rather nice distinction, from Aristotle. In the " Treatise of Rhetoric," Aristotle gave an elaborate analysis of the passions, and of the sources of pain aiKl pleasure, expressly with a view to instruct writers and speakers how to interest those passions. If this was not actually deducing, it was making it easy for the persons so instructed to deduce, from the very constitution of the human mind, the essential laws of good writing and eloquent speaking. It was showing that excellence in these arts must consist, in the adaptation of all their performances to the principles of human nature. By thus illustrating the manner in which the human mind can be subjected to the powers of eloquence, Aristotle laid at least the foundation of philosophical criticism. It is true that this could 216 LORD KAMES. not so strictly be called criticism till it should be carried a little further, till a number of precise inferences from this ex- plication of the passions should be propounded, as laws of cri- ticism, and these laws be formally applied to the productions of genius. But this was nearly a matter of course when the first great work of elucidating the passions was accomplished ; •when the nature of the materials was ascertained, it dictated at once the mode of operating on them. By a very slight change of form, each proposition, relative to the passions, might have been made a critical rule, applicable to its respec- tive part of the works to be addressed to them. This had been a very slender effort for the great philosopher, if he had chosen to pursue his subject so far ; and therefore it does not claim any very high degree of fame, if a modern has done what he omitted. We allow, however, to Lord Kames, the " merit of having given to philosophical criticism the form of a science, by reducing it to general principles, methodizing its doctrines, and supporting them everywhere by the most copious and beautiful illustrations," DEFENCE OF THE STAGE. 217 VIII. DEFENCE OF THE STAGE. Four Discourses on Subjects relating to the Amusement of the Stage. Preached at Great St. Mary's Church, Cambridge, on Sunday, September 25, and Sunday, October 2, 1808; with copious Supplementary Notes. By Jahes Plumptrb, B.D., Fellow of Clare-Hall. It is not expressed in the title-page, that these discourses were preached, and are published, with an intention hostile to the stage ; but the reader can have no doubt as to this point, we presume, when informed that they are dedicated to the Vice- Chancellor of the University of Cambridge after having re- ceived his approbation, that the author is an admirer of some of our most serious and orthodox divines, that he appears to be actuated by a sincere wish to do good, and that the discourses are founded on no other than the following texts : — " Whether therefore ye eat or drink, or whatsoever ye do, do all to the glory of God." — " Be not deceived, evil communications cor- rupt good manners." — " Let not foolish talking, nor jesting, which are not convenient, be once named among you, as be- cometh saints." — " To him that knoweth to do good, and doeth it not, to him it is sin." A selection of texts so pointedly ap- plicable, will appear to indicate the preacher's correct view of his subject ; and shall we not incur the suspicion of wantonly offending against the third injunction, when we state, that, notwithstanding all these reasons for a contrary presumption, Mr. Plumptre's discourses are meant as a formal defence of the stage ? Merely that a minister of the Christian religion should have considered it as within the scope and duty of his sacred func- tion to undertake such a defence, will not be a fact of sufficient novelty, in our times, to excite surprise ; for it would be un- grateful to charge it on defect of reverend instruction, if we 218 DEFENCE OF THE STAGE. do not know that the play-house is one of our best Christian institutions. But there is something strikingly new in hear- ing a vindication of the stage from a clergyman, who connects it with a serious admonition that life should be employed in a preparation for eternity, with a zealous inculcation of the apostolic rule of doing all things to the glory of God, with an admission that the general quality of polite literature is decid- edly adverse to Christian principles, and with an extended and very instructive illustration of the prevalence of this adverse spirit in even the least exceptionable part of the English drama. If the reader's impression of the incompatibility of what we have here reported to him as combined, should lead him to suspect affectation in the religious parts of the compound, we must assure him there are the strongest marks of sincerity. This being believed, his surmises towards an explanation of such a phenomenon will probably terminate in a conjecture, that, in the preacher's youth, the drama must have inspired a passion so deep as to become like one of the original princi- ples of his mind, which therefore the judgment could never eradicate, nor ever inspect without an involuntary bias operat- ing like a spell. And this is the explanation furnished by the preacher's long dedication, in which he adverts to the leading circumstances of his life, by way of accounting for his wl-iting a book on such a subject, and with such a design. In course of time he entered, at college, on the studies pre- paratory to the clerical profession, and obtained a parochial charge, in which his professional duties and studies began entirely to engross his thoughts, " and yielding," he says, " to the prejudices of the world, I determined to relinquish in a great measure the amusement of the stage." He sold a large dramatic library in order to purchase better books, among which were Mrs. More's works, including her dialogue on amusements, and her most excellent preface to her tragedies ; these tracts had a great influence on his mind, and for some years he wholly abstained from the amusement of the theatre. " The circumstances of his parish" suggested to him the pos- sible utility of modifying to a moral purpose the most popular convivial songs, of which he has subsequently printed several volumes, with the required expurgations and additions, under the title Vocal Repository. This occupation revived his at- tention to the dra'ma, which he had never been persuaded en- tirely to condemn, though his opinion of it was somewhat al- DEFENCE OF THE STAGE. 219 tered. In an interval of professional employment, he medita- ted a set of lectures to be delivered at the University, partly with a view to the reformation of the stage. This design was not executed ; but an opportune occasion was offered for putting some of the collected materials into the form of sermons, to which, when printed, another portion could be appended as notes. The inducement to adopt the form of sermons was, the hope that they might, as public addresses, be of service to other clergymen, situated" in the neighbourhood of the various theatres in this country. Toward the close of this dedicatory introduction, which we have regarded it as a point of justice to notice thus particular- ly, the author distinctly meets, what he necessarily anticipat- ed, the censure which will be apt to fall on a clergyman for composing a volume on such a subject. His apology is, that this is the only way in which he may hope to redeem, in some sense, the time which he regrets he has wasted in former dra- matic studies. He esteems his knowledge of the subject as very dearly purchased ; but actually having this knowledge, he thinks it is his duty to put it to the use of displaying the moral character of the English drama, of attempting its refor- mation, and we may add, of correcting the opinions of those austere Christians, who insist on the entire destruction of what he thinks capable of being made a " powerful engine to pro- mote the cause of virtue." The first discourse proposes to argue the question, "wheth- er the stage be a thing lawful in itself;" but we are not quite satisfied that this question takes the subject in the right point of view. What is meant by the stage " in itself," or abstract- edly considered ? If by the stage, described under these terms of limitation, the written drama were meant, no question could be more easily decided, than whether it be lawful to write and to read useful and ingenious things in a dramatic form ; no question, therefore, could be more needless, and we do not see why several pages of the work should have been occupied in answering it. But understanding by the stage literally the theatre and its performances, we do not exactly comprehend what is meant by the question whether it be lawful "in itself." The estimate of the good or evil of the theatre must necessari- ly be founded on the combined consideration of a number of particulars ; as the qualities of human nature in general, to- gether with their modifications in any one age or nation, — the 220 DEFENCE OF THE STAGE. effect on the human mind of exhausting its passions on ficti- tious objects, the character of that part of society that will at all times be most addicted to amusements, and will chiefly sup- port them, — the natural attendants and consequences of a pas- sion for splendid amusements, — the tendency and the attend- ant circumstances of immense nocturnal assemblages of people in great towns, — the quality of the works of the great national dramatic writers, that must necessarily form the main stock of the theatre, (till writers shall be put in requisition to dramatize and versify the Homilies and the Whole duty of Man,) — the probable moral character of a set of men and women employ- ed under the circumstances inseparable from a company of players, — and the vast expense, original and permanent, of the whole theatrical establishment. All these and other particu- lars are involved in the question of the lawfulness of the stage ; and therefore we think any attempt to discuss that lawfulness in the abstract, or "in itself," would too much resemble a dis- cussion of the lawfulness of war abstractedly from all consider- ation of national enmity, of battle, wounds, and slaughter, 'of the barbarizing effect on its agents, of the misery of the coun- tries where it prevails, and of national expense and ruin. We do not say that these two things are perfectly parallel ; but we mean that the moral estimate of the stage must be formed on a view of all those circumstances, which are naturally relative to it, which are essential to its existence, or with which in point of fact it has invariably been connected. Admitting most fully, (as every person must, who possesses ordinary moral and religious perceptions,) the gross depravity of the theatre, in the collective character of its constituents, the plays, the players, and a large portion of the spectators, and deploring its widely pernicious influence, our preacher yet en- deavours, by distinguishing between the use and abuse of a thing, to defend the theatre "in itself" against those, who, from all they have seen and can anticipate, pronounce it radi- cally and essentialaly mischief. He has told us, from Eccle- siasticus, that " as a nail sticketh fast between the stones, so doth sin stick close between buying and selling," that " strong drinks and wine" have been abused by intemperance, and that even the public worship of God has been perverted to wicked- ness ; and maintains, unanswerably, that we are not therefore, to prohibit buying and selling, and the use of Avine, and the worship of God. This argument from analogy ought, at its DEFENCE OF THE STAGE. 221 weakest point, to prove that the divine providence has, in the order of nature, made a specific direct provision for a play- house ; and, as its strongest point, to prove that the pernicious effects of the play-house should be calmly left to the govern- ment of God, as an evil become incidental through human de- pravity to one of his own appointments, which we are not the less bound in duty to observe because it is liable to such a per- version. It should also prove, that the cessation of acting plays would inflict an evil tantamount to breaking up the regular busi- ness and intercourse of society. But not to dwell on such an unfortunate argument, we will say a word or two on the propriety of giving the denomination of abuses to the evils uniformly attending the stage. When we speak of the abuses of a thing, we cannot mean less than that the thing in question is at least fitted to do greatly more good than harm, even in the present state of the human mind and of society ; we understand of it that good is its natural general ef- fect, and evil the incidental, man being as he is. We repeat this conditional point ; for, if the thing in question be not calcu- lated mainly to do good till human society shall have grown in- comparably more virtuous, and thus attained a state capable of neutralizing its operation, or even converting it into something beneficial, it is plainly, for any present use, absolutely bad, ne- cessarily bad, in its regular operation ; and to call this opera- tion an abuse is a disingenuous and deceptive language. Now our preacher, while reprobating the obvious mischiefs of the stage under the denomination of" abuses," insists that it is not- withstanding adapted, and may by a very practicable reform be brought, to be of the greatest moral utility, in the present condition of society. It would be going very much beyond the limits of our office, to enumerate the principal arguments, (in- deed they are amply quoted by Mr. Plumptre) advanced by seri- ous and intelligent men in opposition to his opinion. The best works on the subject are very well known ; and we think the chief good that will be efiected by the book before us will be, to induce some of its readers to examine them with more atten- tion. The most material points of the argument were hinted above, in one of the preceding sentences ; and in slightly adver- ting to several of them we shall employ but very few more. It must be quite obvious for what purpose it is that society chooses to have a theatre, and by what part of society it must be principally supported. And Mr. Plumptre knows it would 222 DEFENCE OP THE STAGE. be disingenuous trifling to pretend, that the theatre is raised and supported, with any other view on the part of the public, than that of amusement. A very few individuals may occasion- ally, or even habitually, attend it for the purpose of philosophi- cal observation ; but even if these were sincerely anxious to ap- ply the knowledge of human nature there acquired to the ser- vice of virtue and religion, which is rarely the case, the cir- cumstance would be inexpressibly too trivial to be mentioned against the notorious fact, that the part of the community that require and frequent a theatre, do it for no purpose even the most distantly related to moral improvement. This would be testified, if it needed any testimony, by every one who has lis- tened to the afternoon conversation of a party arranging and preparing to go to the play, and to the retrospective discussion of this party during the 11 o'clock breakfast on the following morning ; or by any one who has listened to the remarks made around him in any part of the boxes, pit, or galleries. The persons, who are intent on moral or intellectual improvement, will be found occupied in a very different manner, inspecting the works of the great historians, philosophers, moralists, or divines, or holding rational conversations with their families or friends, or even (if theyjudge instruction really is to be obtain- ed from that source,) reading the most celebrated dramatic works in their own or another language, and with a far more judicious and scrutinizing attention than any one exerts amidst the thousand interfering and beguiling circumstances of the theatre. Now if amusement is the grand object sought at the play-house, the object on copiously ministering to which its ex- istence wholly depends, it must, to preserve that existence, adapt itself completely to the taste of that part of society that is devoted to amusement, and will pay its price, in time, health, and money. And what sort of persons are they that compose this part of society? It really might have been accounted su- perfluous to say that they are necessarily the trifling and the immoral. They are such of the wealthy as have neither oc- cupation nor benevolence ; the devotees of fashion; the most thoughtless part of the young, together with what are called young men of spirit, who want a little brisk folly as an inter- lude to their more vicious pursuits ; loungers of all sorts ; tradesmen who neglect their business ; persons who, in do- mestic relations, have no notion of cultivating the highest so- cial and intellectual interests ; and old debauchees, together DEFENCE OF THE STAGE. 223 "witli the wretched class of beings, whose numbers, vices, and miseries, they can still be proud to augment. It is by the part of the community composed of these classes that the theatre is mainly supported ; and these it must gratify, or it will perish. And if it must gratify this part of the community, of what moral quality must its exhibitions be ? Is it possible to maintain, with a grave face, that those exhibitions can be lessons of pure morality, and even piety, — according to our author's injunction and professed hope that " the stage shall go hand in hand with the pulpit ?" The stage will have a beneficial influence, he says, when the writers, actors, and frequenters compose, and act, and attend plays " with a view to the glory of God," (a most original association of ideas) — and when they preserve amidst these occupations a deep concern for the " salvation of their souls." Now can he believe that there are twenty fre- quenters of the play-house in all England, who could hear such a state of mind insisted on as necessary even in the common course of life, without sneering at such notions as rank method- ism ; or who would fail to mutter a charge of stark madness, if seriously told it was a necessary state of mind in attending the theatre ? Is it not fully settled in the minds of all classes of its fi-equenters, that it is a place of perfect immunity from grave thought and converse with conscience, and from all pu- ritanism, cant, sermonizing, saintship, godliness, sober repre- sentations of life and duty, and squeamish modesty, — excepting so far as some or all of these may be introduced for ridicule, in which mode of introduction, indeed, they are probably greater favourites with an English theatrical audience than all other subjects ? In short, are not the entertainments of the theatre resorted to and delighted in as something confessedly, avow- edly, and systematically opposite to what is understood by its frequenters to have formed the chief concern, the prominent and unpopular distinction, of the most devout and holy men, of dying penitents, of Christian apostles, of all the persons most deeply solicitous for the "glory of God," and the " salvation of their souls f Mr. Plumptre will fully agree with us, for he has himself very forcibly shown, that, with certain fluctuations, and some degree of modern amendment, in the article of de- corum, this has always been the character of the stage, and is the character of the great body of our written drama. And why has this been uniformly the character? Are we to be- lieve that the writers and actors, with an unparalleled con- 224 DEFENCE OF THE STAGE. tempt of self-interest, have been for several hundred yearg forcing on their grand and sole patron, the public, a species of dramatic exhibitions disapproved by that patron 1 On the con- trary, these writers and players have always been to the full as sagacious with respect to their own interest, as any other class of persons who are to prosper or famish according to the acceptance or disapproval of what they furnish to the public market ; and quite as obsequious in accommodating to the public taste. In a few instances, indeed, it may have been attempted to make the stage a pure Christian moralist, and a sort of half Christian di- vine ; and the attempt has failed. It deserved to fail ; for, if a manufacturer in any department absolutely will make his goods of a quality and form quite different from what he knows the pub- lic have uniformly required in that sort of article, nobody com- passionates him for the consequences. And we would ask Mr. Plumptre, where is the reasonableness and humanity of re- quiring the writers and actors of plays to commit a profession- al suicide by provoking the disgust and indignation of their supporters ? The present time shows what an imperious as- pect the public, that is, the play-going public, can assume when they are not pleased ; and if, instead of the trifling alteration of a little advance in price, there were to be introduced a moral change to one half the extent demanded by our preacher, a change which would instantly give the denomination of " Me- thodist Theatre," can any one believe this genteel and vulgar rabble would not bellow to a still nobler tune if possible, and fairly baffle at last the utmost rhetoric of the journalists in at- tempting, even with the aid of Miltonic diction, to describe the "confusion" still "worse confounded?" Parson Kemble, or Saint Cooke, after having once appeared, seriously, in the Gos- pel Scene, would prefer taking the second turn in the pillory at Charing-cross. In thus predicting the treatment awaiting the stage when turned methodist, we have not misrepresented our preacher as to the extent of the conversion which he demands. He insists, with respect to the drama, as it ought to be insisted with respect to every institution which is to be retained in society, that its entire spirit and tendency must be made strictly coincident with the Christian religion ; and he per- fectly agrees with Mrs. More and several other writers, that, besides all the more gross and tangible immorality adhering to our drama, there is a decidedly antichristian quality pre- DEFENCE OF THE STAGE. 225 vailing through almost its whole mass, so that even most of its greatest beauties please with a noxious lustre. Consis- tently, therefore, he requires the stage to be purified from its many modes of heathenism, from its erroneous conceptions of divine justice and the atonement of guilt, from its profane language, from its pernicious notions of honour, from its en- couragement and extenuations of suicide and duelling, from its extravagant and often corrupt representations of love, and from its indecorum. And all these things, we are to believe, may be swept away in the very face of the persons who are paying expressly for their continuance ; and by whom the pure Christian contraries of all these things will be received with abhorrence, unless, while the transmutation is taking place on the stage, a sudden conversion also visits the minds of the audience, as when Peter was preaching. But no, says our author, the change is to be gradual ; something is al- ready effected, and " we must go on to perfection." It is true that a very slight superficial amendment has taken place, in avoiding the excessive undisguised grossness which prevailed on the stage in a former century ; and this is because the age is grown more delicate, not, probably, because the audience are much more moral ; for does Mr. Plumptre really believe that the theatre now contains a less proportion of profligate men and women than in former times ? But taking this slight superinduced refinement at whatever he can seriously think it worth, we have his own testimony that the pervading heathen- ism and profaneness, the detestable moral principles, and the romantic extravagance, remain nearly undiminished ; and we would therefore ask him how many ages, at this rate of improvement, we are to be waiting for the stage to attain even the point of neutrality between good and evil of moral and religious influence. And should not the melancholy thought of so many tens of thousands, whose principles, with respect to the most important subjects and concerns, are to be acted upon by a powerfully pernicious influence in the course of this long period, have impelled him to exhort his auditors and readers to an instant withdrawment of all coun- tenance and support from one of the worst enemies of human virtue and happiness ? Instead of which, we lament to find a minister of the Christian religion advising the respectable inhabitants of places where plays are acted, to attend them, in order to influence the selection of the pieces and the man- ners of the company. 226 DEFENCE OF THE STAGE. Against those who assert the radical evil of the stage, and instead of devising remedies urge the duty of entirely relin- quishing it, he raises a strange, and what he seems to think conclusive argument, from the simple fact that the stage is still in existence : as if he would say, It must be a good thing, or capable of being made so, and claims that we should all join hand and heart to support and improve it, because — all efforts to put it down have been unavailing. It may be hardly worth while to notice, that there seems here an admission that the people are not good enough to re- form, any more than they are to give up, a corrupt stage ; or to observe, that it is unfair to complicate the question whether individuals ought to abandon the theatre, with the question whether the state ought to suppress it. But as to the fact which he makes into an argument, namely, that the stage still exists, we may properly say to Mr. Plumptre, What is that to you, or to us ? There exist also dens of gamblers, and gangs of thieves, and brothels, and clubs for gluttony, drunkenness, and ribaldry ; but you or we are not therefore called upon to study the better regulation of these associations, and sometimes to go among them as a " check on their im- proprieties." — The complaint that the adversaries of the stage have not employed "conciliating " measures, is passing strange, as coming from a Christian divine, who tells us, that one of those adversaries (Bedford) has cited in his book ''^nearly se- ven thousand instances of impiety and immorality from the plays in use at that time, and some of which, (though in rather an amended state) still keep a place upon the stage," p. 36. If such a hideous monster was a thing capable of being " vili- fied," or deserving to be " conciliated," what is it on this side the infernal pit that we can lawfully make relentless war upon ? Our argument above has been, that it is impossible for the stage to become good, in any such Christian sense as Mr. Plumptre requires ; because its character must be faithfully congenial with that of its supporters, and they chiefly consist of the more trifling, irreligious, and immoral part of the com- munity. But perhaps our author thinks that if the stage, by a resolute effort of its directors, were quite to change its char- acter, and become the mirror of Christian sentiments and morals, it might obtain a better class of supporters, and thus afford to lose the frivolous and the dissolute. — And if this DEFENCE OF THE STAGE. 227 were possible, is it desirable ? We are not convinced it would be any great advantage gained to the happiness of so- ciety, if we were to see the great temple of wisdom and virtue in Covent Garden lined with an auditory of right rev- erend bishops, zealous ministers, and the worthiest part of their flocks, drest in sober faces and decent apparel, rank above rank, up to the region of what used to be called " the gods ;" if we were to see the pit occupied by a battalion of quakers ; if worthy domestic men, who have been accus- tomed to pass their evenings in reading with their wives and sisters, after half an hour's sport with their children, were to commence the practice of either sliding off* alone, or tak- ing their families along with them to the new rendezvous of saints and philosophers ; or if virtuous young men qualifying by diligent study for important professions, and young women qualifying for their wives, were seen flocking to the dramatic oracle to inquire how to combine wisdom and love. But if all this were ever so much " a consummation devoutly to be wished," it would never be attained ; and the mansion of the christened Apollo might be surrendered to the bats, unless he would forswear his newly-adopted and unprofitable faith, and again invite the profane and profligate. The orderly, indus- trious, studious, benevolent, and devout, would never, in any state of the theatre, frequent it in sufficient numbers to defray the cost of dresses and wax candles. And besides, what be- comes, during this hopeful experiment, of that worse part of the community, which the stage, according to our author, was to have helped the gospel to reform 1 They are the while wandering away, perverse and hapless beings ! from the most precious school ever opened for the corrective disci- pline of sinners. But the place, originally intended to please them, will not long be occupied by the usurping morality that would assume to mend them. Like the unclean spirit, they will soon re-enter the swept and garnished house, and even, like him, bring auxiliary companions, the more effectually to assert whose house it is. We will not waste more words. Mr. Plumptre knows that no theatre could support itself under the odium of maintaining an explicit hostility against not only direct grossness and vice, but all antichristian principles of morality. It is a ruined thing, if not only the women of the town, and the vile gangs of journeymen and gentlemen blades that frequent the place to joke with them, purchase them, 228 DEFENCE OF THE STAGE, or insult them, but also the more decorous holders of a fash- ionable moral creed, are to be dosed there with Christian medicaments, and fumigated off with an effluvium a hundred times more nauseous to them than the smell of the burning fish was to the goblin that haunted Tobias's bride. As long as there is a play-house, it will and must be assumed, as their legitimate place of resort, by the least serious and the most irreligious and profligate class of the nation. Where else indeed should they resort ] — to the evening lecture at church or at the conventicle 1 — Thus the stage, so far from contri- buting to promote the ascendency of good over evil in society, will be the faithful attendant and ally of the evil, at once liv- ing on it and ministering to it, just so long as a sufficient measure of it shall exist in the shape of vain and profligate persons to support the amusement, and perishing at length when Christianity shafl have left too few of these persons for this purpose. Or shall we suppose it will then arise and flourish afresh under a renovated Christianized character ? That is to say, shall we suppose, that at such a happy period, it will be deemed one of the worthiest efforts of virtue and religion to raise and furnish edifices at the expense of £150,000 apiece, and maintain in each of them, at a cost equal to that of several hospitals, or of some fifty or a hundred of Lancas- ter's schools, an establishment just for the purpose of em- ploying a number of persons to sham the name and dress of certain fictitious foreigners, or, if you please, good home-bred Christians, and recite a course of lines from a book which the audience could have quietly read at home ; and, if they are tragic lines, read, according to the opinion of Dr. John- son, with a deeper impression ? This view of the necessary character of the stage forms but a narrow section of the argument against it ; and we have dwelt on it, not with the design of any thing so absurd as de. bating the general subject, in an article of a journal, but for the particular purpose of exposing Mr. Plumptres doctrine that " the evil attached to the stage is no part of its inherent quality, but arises merely from the abuse of it." — P. 7. With regard to many of the specific evils attendant on the theatre, he has himself done ample justice to the subject, partly by quoting, with a candour not to be surpassed, and deserving of the high- est applause, a number of the strongest passages from the adversaries of the stage, Collier, Law, Witherspoon, Styles, DEFENCE OF THE STAGE. 229 &c., and partly by an indictment drawn up by himself, of which the several counts are excellently illustrated and sustained by passages furnished by his extensive acquaintance with the English drama. These illustrations are placed in the mass of notes at the end of the book, which form a very entertain- ing and instructive miscellany. One portion of these notes is a kind of marshalling of great names against Mr. Styles, who had ventured to boast that the most venerable authorities, the most illustrious moralists and philosophers of all ages, have been enemies of the stage ; too rash a boast, as it should seem ; for Mr. Plumptre has proved that Bishop Rundle of most pious celebrity, that Mr. Cumberland, and Mr. Dibdin, and a Mrs. Douglas, which last person tells " the theologians and philosophers " they have no business to say a word about a subject so much above their faculties as the merits of the drama, — that these illustrious authorities are in favour of the stage. Not, however, that these are the only names in array ; for he jcites, on the same side, opinions or implications vari- ously modified and limited, from Addison, Blackmore, Tillot- son. Seed, Hanway, Johnson, Gilpin, and Gisborne. It is irksome enough to see quoted from such a writer as this last, "the stage ought to recommend itself as the nurse of virtue." In another part of the book it is quoted from him, that there is one quarter from which the purification of the stage, with respect to all offences against modesty, " might be effected at once. To those who act under a royal license, a single hint from Royal x\uthority would be sufficient." And why then, we ask, has not this purification been effected ? We might ask too, whether it is any part of the purification which this " hint " is to accomplish, to banish from the stage persons whose whole life is an offence against modesty. We are ashamed to find a Christian minister vindicating, under any circumstances, the impious practice of addressing the Deity on the stage. " Many, indeed," (says Mr. Plumptre,) " have doubted and denied the propriety of addresses to the Deity in representations, because they are not realities. But, if a character be introduced, as an example for our imita- lion, in such a circumstance, as, were he in real life, trust in God and prayer to him would be a duty, provided it be done with reverence, it does not appear to be a mockery and in vain, but a highly useful lesson. Are we not too little accustomed, too much ashamed to let ourselves be seen, or known to be on our knees before God, in real life ? We are commanded, indeed, not to pray in public, for the sake of being seen of men ; for the 11 230 DEFENCE OF THE STAGE. motive ought to be to please God ; but we are commanded to let our lighd BO shine before men, that they may see our good works, and glorify our FATHER WHO IS IN HEAVEN." P. 29. We must think with Mr. Styles, that " a fictitious charac- ter on the stage has nothing to do with heaven." The per- sonation of such a character in the act of prayer endeavours to pass itself for some very unde finable species of^ reality, and claims to excite nearly the same feelings that reality would do. It is intended, therefore, that the prayer in question shall be regarded rather as a real act of piety, than as the mere historical reading or reciting, if we may so express ourselves, of a prayer supposed to have been uttered by the character whom the player personates. This being the case, the player does assume to make, and the audience are called to witness, an actual address to the Deity, expressive of sentiments, and relative to a situation, which are totally fictitious ; and this we think the vilest impiety. As to the benefit arising from seeing examples of mingling piety with the concerns of life, the playhouse, with all its mass of profaneness and ribaldry, must be a marvellous proper place for making the exhibition, and receiving the edification* FRANKLIN S CORRESPONDENCE. 231 IX. BENJAMIN FRANKLIN. The Private Correspondence of Benjamin Franklin, LL.D,^ F.R.S., 6^0. Minister Plenijjotentiary from the United States of America at the Court of France, and for the Treaty of Peace and Independence mith Great Britain, ^^c. t^c. Com- prising a Series of Letters on Miscellaneous, Literary, and Political Subjects, written between the Years 1753 and 1790 ; illustrating the Memoirs of his Public and Private Life ; and developing the Secret History of his political Trans- actions and Negotiations, Now first published from the Originals, by his Grandson William Temple Franklin. This ample assemblage of letters is intended as a sequel to the Memoirs of Dr. Franklin, written by himself. Or rather, it appears as constituting the latter half of that work, and is designated as the second volume, though preceding by a con- siderable interval of time the publication of the regular nar- rative. The reader will feel little disposition to complain of the withholding of all information relative to the manner in which these letters could have been collected, the repository where many of them must long have lain, the proportion, in number, of those that have been suppressed, to that of these which are produced, or the question whether any considerable liberties have been taken in suppressing parts and passages of these. He will acknowledge that quite a sufficient number, and per- haps somewhat more, are given, that they embrace a con- siderable diversity of subjects, that they afford decisive internal evidence of authenticity, and that they very efiectually display the talents and character of the writer. The collection is distributed into three parts, — letters on miscellaneous subjects — letters on American politics — and let- ters on the negotiations for peace. In each part they are put 232 franklin's coriiespondence. in chronological series, and therefore they are placed as far as the shorter series extend back in time, in three parallel courses, thus bringing the writer thrice through the same stages of his life and employments ; and that, too, after the reader may be presumed to have passed through them once already in the narrative. This is the best arrangement for facilitating the reader's acquisition of the historical information to be derived from the political portions of the correspondence ; but it less comports with a strictly biographical purpose, since, instead of our beholding, during the progress, the whole character and the diversitied agency of the man, we are shown only one section or side, if we may so express it, of that character and agency at once, and are brought back to go with him again, and yet again, through the same periods of his life, in order to have another and still another view of the same person. We would rather, if we conveniently might, take our whole view of the man in one progress, beholding him exhibited, at each step and stage, in each and all of his capacities, characteristics, and occupations. Perhaps, however, when a large portion of a man's letters relate solely to a grand national affair, which they very greatly elucidate, it may, after all, be as well to let the biographical purpose and interest become secondary, and make such a dis- position of them as will be most advantageous for understand- ing that affair of history. Indeed, if the display of the man were to be regarded as the chief object in this part of the cor- respondence, we are apprehensive that most readers might wish it retrenched, as less than one half the number of letters would have sufficed for that ; but let the object be a dis- closure of the secret history of the American Revolution, and nearly all of them may be found to have their pertinence and value. Taken all together, this collection of letters would, we think, in the absence of all other documents and representa- tions, afford sufficient means for a competent estimate of the writer. The character displayed by them is an unusual com- bination of elements. The main substance of the intellec- tual part of it, is a superlative good sense, evinced and acting in all the modes of that high endowment ; such as, — an in- tuitively prompt and perfect, and steadily continuing appre- hension ; a sagacity which with admirable ease strikes through all superficial and delusive appearances of things, to the 233 essence and the true relations ; a faculty of reasoning in a manner marvellously simple, direct, and decisive ; a power of reducing a subject or question to its plainest principles ; an unaffected daring to meet whatever is to be opposed, in an ex- plicit, direct manner, and in the point of its main strength ; a facility of applying familiar truths and self-evident proposi- tions, for resolving the most uncommon difficulties ; and a happy adroitness of illustration by parallel cases, supposed or real, the real ones being copiously supplied by a large and most observant acquaintance with the world. It is obvious how much this same accurate observation of the world would contribute to that power of interpreting the involuntary indi- cations of character, and of detecting motives and designs in all sorts of persons he had to deal with, and to that foresight of consequences in all practical concerns, in which he was probably never surpassed. It is gratifying to observe how soon he would see to the very bottom of the characters and schemes of plausible hypocrites and veteran statesmen, proud as they might be of the recollected number of their stratagems and their dupes, and so confident of their talents for under- mining and overreaching, that it took some of them a consid- erable time to become fully aware of the hazard of attempt- ing their practice upon the republican. Not one of their in- advertencies, or of their over-done professions, or of the in- consistencies into which the most systematic craft is liable to be sometimes betrayed, was ever lost upon him. There are in the course of these letters, curious and striking instances of personages of great pretension, and of other personages, seeking to effect their purposes, under the guise of making no pretension, putting him in full possession of their principles and designs, by means of circumstances which they little sus- pected to be betraying them, and for which he, if it was neces- sary, could be discreet enough to appear never the wiser. In process of time, however, courtiers, ministers, intriguers, and the diplomatic gentry, had the mist cleared from their facul- ties sufficiently to understand what kind of man it was they had to do with. There is one thing deficient in this collection, for the per- fect illustration of the independence of Dr. Franklin's judg- ment. He resided a long course of years in France, in the exercise of the most important official functions for the Amer- ican States, both during and after the war ; and a great major- 234 ity of the letters are dated at Passy, near Paris. As the French government was a most efficient friend to America in that momentous and perilous season, and her minister at the French Court experienced there all manner of respect and complaisance, it was natural enough he should speak in terms of considerable favour of that people and their governors, — of favour to certain extent, — quoad hoc. But we are in vain curious to know whether this complacency was any thing like limited by justice. We are compelled to doubt it, from ob- serving the many unqualified expressions of partiality to the French and their rulers, and from nowhere finding any terms appropriate to the frivolity of the nation, and the despotism and ambition of the government. Why do we find none such ? Are there no preserved letters manifesting that the republican philosopher maintained a clear perception and a condemna- tory judgment of such things, in spite of the Parisian adula- tion to himself, and the aid given to the rising republic by a tyrannic monarchy ? And as to that aid itself, it would be one of the most memorable examples of the weakness of strong minds, if Franklin could ever for a moment mistake, or estimate otherwise than with contempt, the motive that prompted it ; a motive which, in any case in which he had not been interested, would have placed the whole affair of this alliance and assistance in a quite different light from that in which he seemed so gratified to regard it. — A profligate and tyrannic court, a disinterested friend to a people asserting their freedom, and in the form of a republic ! And could the Amer- ican ambassador, though gratified, of course, by the fact of powerful assistance, affect to accept from that court, without a great struggle with his rising indignant scorn, the hypocritical cant and cajolery about co-operation against oppression, re- spect for the virtuous and interesting patriots of the new world, and the like, as expressive of its true principles in seizing so favourable an occasion for giving effect to its hatred against England ? And could he, into the bargain, contemplate an enslaved and debased people, pass in the front of the Bastile, and behold the ruinous extravagance and monstrous depravity of that court, with feelings which required nothing to keep them in the indulgent tone, but the recollection of French troops and French money employed in America ? If the editor had in his possession any letters or other manu- scripts tending to prove that no such beguilement took effect 235 upon a judgment on which so many other kinds of persons and things attempted in vain to impose, it was due to Franklin's reputation for independence of judgment, to have given them, even though they should have brought some impeachment upon his sincerity in the grateful and laudatory expressions repeat- edly here employed respecting France, and its interference in the contest. In a general moral estimate of his qualities, insincerity would seem to find very little place. His principles appear to have borne a striking correspondence, in simplicity, direct- ness, and decision, to the character of his understanding. Credit may be given him for having, through life, very rarely prosecuted any purpose which he did not deliberately approve ; and his manner of prosecution was distinguished, as far as appears, by a plain honesty in the choice of means, by a con- tempt of artifice and petty devices, by a calm inflexibility, and by a greater confidence of success than is usually combined with so clear and extended a foresight of the difficulties ; — but indeed that foresight of the difficulties might justify his confidence of the adaptation of his measures for encountering them. He appears to have possessed an almost invincible self- command, which bore hmi through all the negotiations, strifes with ignorance, obstinacy, duplicity, and opposing interest, and through tiresome delays and untoward incidents, with a sus- tained firmness, which preserved to him in all cases the most advantageous exercise of his faculties, and with a prudence of deportment beyond the attainment of the most disciplined adepts in mere political intrigue and court-practice. He was capable, indeed, of feeling an intense indignation, which comes out in fiill expression in some of the letters, relating to the character of the English government, as displayed in its policy toward America. This bitter detestation is the most unre- servedly disclosed in some of his confidential correspondence with David Hartley, an English member of parliament, a per- sonal friend of Franklin, a constant advocate, to a measured extent, of the Americans, and a sort of self-offered, clandes- tine, but tacitly-recognized medium for a kind of understand- ing, at some critical periods, between the English government and Dr. Franklin, without costing the ministers the conde- scension of official intercourse and inquiry. These vitupera- tive passages have a corrosive energy, by virtue of force of 236 mind and of justice, which perfectly precludes all appearance of littleness and mere temper in the indignation. It is the dignified character of Cato or Aristides. And if a manifes- tation of it in similar terms ever took place in personal con- ference with such men as were its objects, it must have ap- peared any thing rather than an ungoverned irritability ; nor would it have been possible to despise the indignant tone in wliich contempt was mingled with anger, as far as the two sentiments are compatible. Believing that the men who pro- voked these caustic sentences did for the most part deserve them, we confess we have read them with that sort of pleasure which is felt in seeing justice made to strike, by vindictive power of mind, on the characters of men whose stations de- fended their persons and fortunes from the most direct modes of retribution. When, at length, all was accomplished that, with long and earnest expostulation, he had predicted, and been ridiculed for predicting, to the English statesmen, as the certain conse- quence of persisting in their infatuated course, we find na rancorous recollection, no language of extravagant triumph at the splendid result, nor of excessive self-complacency in the retrospect of his own important share in conducting the great undertaking to such a consummation. His feelings do not seem to have been elated above the pitch of a calm satisfac- tion at having materially contributed to the success of a right- eous cause, a success in which he was convinced he saw not simply the vindication of American rights, but the prospect of milimited benefit to mankind. And here it may be remarked, that his predominant passion appears to have been a love of the useful. The useful was to him the summum hoimm., the supreme fair, the sublime and beautiful, which it may not perhaps be extravagant to believe he was in quest of every week for half a centuiy, in whatever place, or study, or practical undertaking. No department was too plain or humble for him to occupy himself in for this pur- pose ; and in affairs of the most ambitious order this was still systematically his object. Whether in directing the construct- ing of chimneys or of constitutions, lecturing on the saving of candles or on the economy of national revenues, he was still intent on the same end, the question always being how to ob- tain the most of solid tangible advantage by the plainest and easiest means. There has rarely been a mortal, of high in- fsanklin's correspondence. 287 telligence and flattering fame, on whom the pomps of life were so powerless. On him w^ere completely thrown a\vay the oratorical and poetical heroics about glory, of Avhich heroics it was enough that he easily perceived the intention or efiect to be, to explode all sober truth and substantial good, and to impel men, at the very best of the matter, through some career of vanity, but commonly through mischief, slaughter, and de^ vastation, in mad pursuit of what amounts at last, if attained, to some certain quantity of noise, and empty show, and intox- icated transient elation. He was so far an admirable spirit for acting the Mentor to a young republic. It will not be his fault if the citizens of America shall ever become so servile to European example, as to think a multitude of supernumer- ary places, enormous salaries, and a factitious economy of society, a necessary security or decoration of that political lib- erty which they enjoy in pre-eminence aboA^e every nation on earth. In these letters of their patriarch and philosopher, they will be amply warned, by repeated and emphatical repre- sentations, of the desperate mischief of a political system in which the public resources shall be expended in a way to give the government both the interest and the means to corrupt the people. Of such representations the following passages will afford a tolerably fair specimen. " Her" (England's) " great disease at present is the number and enor- mous salaries and emoluments of office. Avarice and ambition are strong passions, and separately act with great force on the human mind ; but when both are united and may be gratified in the same object, their vio- lence is almost irresistible, and they hurry men headlong into factions and contentions destructive of all good government. As long therefore as these great emoluments subsist, your parliament will be a stormy sea, and your public counsels confounded b}^ private interests." " When I think of your present crazy constitution and its diseases, I imagine the enormous emoluments of place to be among the greatest." " As it seems to be a settled point at present that the minister must govern the parliament, who are to do every thing he would have done, and he is to bribe them to do this, and the people are to furnish the money to pay these bribes, the parliament appears to me a very expensive machine for govern- ment, and I apprehend the people will find out in time that they may as well be governed, and that it will be much cheaper to be governed, by the minister alone." " As long as the immense profits of these offices subsist, members of the shortest and most equally chosen parliaments will have them in view, and contend for them, and their contests will have all the same ruinous conse- quences. To me there appears to be but one effectual remedy, and that not likely to be adopted by so corrupt a nation ; which is to abolish these profits, and make every place of honour a place of burden. By that means 11* 238 franklin's correspondence. the effect of one of the passions above mentioned would be taken away, and something would be added to counteract the other." " The parhament have of late been acting an egregious farce, calling before them the mayor and aldermen of Oxford, for proposing a sum to be paid by their old members on being re-chosen at the next election ; and sundry printers and brokers for advertising and deaUng in boroughs, &c. The Oxford people were sent to Newgate, and discharged after some days, on humble petition, and receiving the Speaker's reprimand upon their knees. The house could scarcely keep countenance, knowing as they all do, that the practice is general. People say they mean nothing moro than to beat down the price by a little discouragement of borough jobbing, now that their own elections are all coming on. The price indeed is grown exorbitant, no less than 4000Z. for a member. Mr. Beckford has brought in a bill for preventing bribery and corruption in elections, wherein was a clause to oblige every member to sv»^ear, on admission into the house, that he had not directly or indirectly given any bribe to any elector, &c but this was so universally exclaimed against as answering no end but perjur- ing the members, that he has been obliged to withdraw that clause. It was indeed a cruel contrivance of his, worse than the gunpowder-plot, Mr. Thurlow opposed his bill by a long speech. Beckford in reply gave a dry hit to the house, that is repeated every where : ' The honourable gentle- man, in his learned discourse, gave us first one definition of corruption, and then another definition of corruption, and I think he was about to give us a third. Pray does that gentleman imagine there is any member of this house that does not know what corruption is ?' which occasioned only a roar of laughter, for they are so hardened in their practice that they are very little ashamed of it." " The parliament is up and the nation in a ferment with the new elec- tions. Great complaints are made that the natural interests of country gentlemen in their neighbouring boroughs, is overborne by the moneyed in- terests of the new people who have got sudden fortunes in the Indies, or as contractors, &c. £4000 is now the market price for a borough. In short, this whole venal nation is now at market, will be sold for about Two Mil- lions, and might be bought out of the hands of the present bidders (if he would offer half a million more) by the very devirhimself." It would, however, have been but fair to have acknowledg- ed how inconsiderable a portion of the nation they are whose venality it is that, on these occasions, has the effect of selling the whole people ; and that, the case being so, the fact of the nation's being sold does not prove its general venality. How perverse is its fortune ! that in such a state of its representa- tion it might be sold, though a vast majority of its people were of the sternest integrity ; whereas, in an enlarged and more equalized state of its representation, with a more frequent re- turn of elections, it could not be sold, though every living thing in the land were venal, for the plain reason that the buyers could not come into such a market. They could not afford to pur- chase such a number of articles miscalled consciences, even franklin's correspondence. 239 at the low rate apiece which is the utmost worth of most of them, upon any calculation of three years' chances of indem- nification, by obtaining some moderately-remunerated office, with the additional chances as to the duration of their occupan- cy. And by the way, is not this obvious view of the matter, more than an answer to all that sophistry and corruption can say for things as they are ? Can there be any more decided test of a bad or a good construction of political institutions, than that they appear framed expressly to promote corruption and venality, and to avail themselves of them, like our pre- sent system of representation ; or that they disappoint and dis- courage corruption, by being of a constitution the least capa- ble that human wisdom can contrive, of finding their advantage in that corruption ? The political portion (the larger portion) of this correspond- ence, will be a valuable addition to the mass of lessons and documents which might have been supposed long since suffi- cient to disenchant all thinking men of their awful reverence for state -mystery, and cabinet-wisdom and ministerial integri- ty, and senatorial independence. We would hope, in spite of all appearances, that the times may not be very far oflT, when the infatuation of accepting the will of the persons that happen to be in power, as the evidence of wisdom and right, will no longer bereave nations of their sense, and their peace, and the fi-uits of their industry and improvements, — no longer render worse than useless, for the public interests, — the very con- sciences of men whose conduct relative to their individual con- cerns bears a fair appearance of sound principle and under- standing. We will hope for a time when no secret history of important events will display the odious spectacle of a great nation's energies and resources, and the quiet of the world, surrendered without reserve, to the mercy, and that mercy " cruel," of such men as Franklin had to warn in vain of the consequences of their policy respecting America. The correspondence gives an exhibition of almost every thing that ought to enforce on a nation the duty of exercising a constitutional jealousy of the executive. English readers may here see how worthily were confided the public interest of tlieir forefathers, involving to an incalculable extent of their own. They may see how, while those forefathers looked on, many of them for a great while too infatuated with what they called loyalty to dare even a thought of disapprobation, those 240 franklin's correspondence. interests were sported with and sacrificed by men who cared not what they sacrificed, so long as their own pride, and resent- ment, and emolument, could stand exempted. They may see how fatally too late those forefathers were in discovering that their public managers had begun their career in the madness of presumption ; and that warning, and time, and disastrous experiments, and national suiiering, had done nothing towards curing it. They will see how, while a show of dignity, and a talk of justice, national honour, and so forth, were kept up before the people, there were no expedients and tricks too mean, no corruptions too gross, no cabals and compromises of disagreeing selfishness too degrading, to have their share in the state-machinery which was working behind this state-ex- hibition. What is the instruction resulting from all this, but the very reverse of what we have so often heard inculcated on the one hand by interested and corrupt advocates, and on the other by good men of the quietist school ? What should it be but that nations ought to maintain a systematic habitual jea- lousy and examination relative to the principles and schemes of their rulers ; that especially all movements towards a icar should excite a ten-fold vigilance of this distrust, it being al- ways a strong probability that the measure is wrong, but a perfect certainty that an infinity of delusions will be poured out on the people to persuade them that it is right. But to return to an honest politician. Great admiration is due to the firm, explicit, and manly tone, with which he meets the inquiries, the insidious propositions, or the hinted menaces, of the hostile government and its agents ; to the patience with which he encounters the same overtures, and attempted impo- sitions, in a succession of varied forms ; to the coolness and clearness with which he sometimes discusses, and the digni- fied contempt with which he sometimes spurns. Very many of the political letters afford examples ; we are particularly struck with one, (p. 250, 4to.) addressed from Paris to a -per- son who had written to him from Brussels, without a genuine name, and with other circumstances of mystery, suggesting also a mysterious mode, which the Doctor did not adopt, of transmitting a reply. The letter Avas designed to obtain Franklin's opinion of certain unofficially proposed terms of ac- commodation, and his answer shoAvs that he believed the wri- ter to be a person of more importance than the ordinary sort of agents that now and then made their attempts upon him. FRANKLIN S CORRESPONDENCE. 241 It is far too long for us to insert a fourth part of it ; but it is an example of vigorous thought, compressed composition, and high-toned feeling. We are tempted to quote some passages. It begins thus : " Sir, " I received your letter dated at Brussels the 16th past. [The 16th of June, 1778 ] My vanity might possibly be flattered by your expressions of compliment to my understanding, if your proposals did not more clearly manifest a mean opinion of it," " You conjure me in the name of the omniscient and just God before whom I must appear, and by my hopes of future fame, to consider if some expedient cannot be found to put a stop to the desolation of America, and prevent the miseries of a general war. As I am conscious of having taken every step in my power to prevent the breach, and no one to widen it, I can appear cheerfully before that God, fearing nothing from his justice in this particular, though I have much occasion for his mercy in many oth- ers. As to my future fame, I am content to rest it on my past and present conduct, without seeking an addition to it in the crooked, dark paths you propose to me, where I should most certainly lose it. This your solemn address would therefore have been more properly made lo your sovereign and his venal parliament. He and they who wickedly began and madly continue a war for the desolation of Ajnerica, are alone accountable for the consequences. ..." " You think we flatter ourselves and are deceived into an opinion that England must acknowledge our independency. We on the other hand think you flatter yourselves in imagining such an acknowledgment a vast boon which we strongly desire, and which you may gain some great ad- vantage by granting or withholding. We have never asked it of you. We only tell you that you can have no treaty with us but as an independent State ; and you may please yourselves and your children with the rattle of your right to govern us, as long as you have done with that of your King's being King of France, without giving us the least concern if you do not attempt to exercise it. That this pretended right is indisputable, as you say, we utterly deny. Your parliament never had a right to govern us, and your King has lorfeited it. But I thank you for letting me know a little of your mind, that even if the parliament should acknowledge our independency, the act would not be binding to posterity, and that your na- tion would resume and prosecute the claim as soon as they found it con- venient. We suspected before that you would not be actually bound by your conciliatory acts longer than till they had served their purpose of in- ducing us to disband our forces; but we were not certain that you were knaves by principle, and that we ought not to have the least confidence in your offers, promises, or treaties, though confirmed by parliament. . . ." In the concluding sentences, (injured in one instance by a bad pun,) he takes the whole advantage of being a republican and an American. *' This proposition of delivering ourselves bound and gagged, ready for 242 franklin's correspondence. hanging without even a right to complain, and without a friend to be found afterwards among all mankind, you would have U3 embrace upon the faith of an act of parliament ! An act of your parliament ! This demonstrates that you do not yet know us, and that you fancy we do not know you. But it is not merely this flimsy faith that we are to act upon ; you offer us hope, the hope of places, pensions, and peerage. Tiiese, judging from yourselves, you think are motives irresistible. This offer to corrupt us, sir, is with me your credential, and convinces me that you are not a pri- vate volunteer in your application. It bears the stamp of British Court in- trigue, and the signature of your King. But think for a moment in what light it must b3 viewed in America. Places, which cannot come among us, for you take care by a special article to keep them to yourselves. We must then pay the salaries in order to enrich ourselves with these places. But you will give us pensions ; probably to be paid too out of your expected American revenue ; and which none of us can accept without deserving and perhaps obtaining a suspension. Peerages ! alas ! sir, our long ob- servation of the vast servile majority of your peers, voting constantly for every measure proposed by a minister, however weak or wicked, leaves us small respect for them, and we consider it as a sort of tar-and -feather honour, or a mixture of foulness and folly, which every man among us who should accept from your King, would be obliged to renounce or exchange for that conferred by the mobs of their own country, or wear it with everlasting shame. I am, sir, your humble servant." His perfect superiority to all envy of this sort of honours, under any circumstances, is shown, not by laborious depre- ciation, but by the transient casual expressions of slight which give the more genuine indications of contempt^ — of that easy and true contempt which it costs a man no trouble to maintain. The only instance in which we recollect his taking pains about the matter, is in reference to that little whim of the transatlantic republicans, the order of the Cincinnati, which some of them wished to make an hereditary distinction, in humble imitation of the European institution of nobility. He felt it due to the character of their revolution and their republi- can polity, to set himself in earnest to explode, by ridicule and argument, this piece of folly. If for the honour of their own persons the aspirants liked such a bauble, even let them have it, he said, at whatever it was worth ; but he had no mercy on the absurdity of pretending to transmit down honorary dis- tinctions to persons who by the nature of the case cannot have earned them. It has been hinted already that, as a matter of general read- ing, the political portion of these letters will perhaps be thought too large. But it may be presumed that documents illustrating the American Revolution, may excite more in- terest now than they would have done between twenty and franklin's correspondence. 243 thirty years since. About that time the old world appeared to be on the eve of such a revolution in favour of liberty, as would have rendered, at least for a time, that of the Ameri- can colonies a comparatively inconsiderable event. The military process through which it had been accomplished, was already begun to be spoken of as "the little war;" and the republican confederation of a number of scantily in- habited farming districts, was ceasing to be an imposing spectacle, when European monarchies, of immense popula- tion, and ancient fame for literature, arts, arms, and royal and aristocratic magnificence, were seen melting and moulding, amid volcanic fires, into new forms, bearing a transient, in- deed, and dubious, but at first hopeful semblance of beauty and vigour. The long and tremendous tumult of all the moral elements, involving such a cost of every human interest, as could be repaid by no less a result, than a mighty change for the better of the whole political and social condition of Europe, has subsided in the consolidation of the very system by which its commencement was provoked, with the addition of an infinite account of depravity and poverty. But America, all this while, has been exulting in the consequences of her revolution, and still triumphs in freedom undiminished, in an administration of government of which it is not the grand business to squander or devour her resources, and in a pros- perity and power continually enlarging, with unlimited capa- bilities and prospects. Here then is the revolution that has succeeded, while all things else have failed : it eclipses, now, the importance of all the events by which its own importance appeared about to be eclipsed ; and the interest which it claims to excite, will be progressive with its magnificent con- sequences. The proprietor, therefore, of these papers, has been wise or fortunate in reserving them to become old in his possession. The most entertaining, however, and by no means an un- instructive division, of the letters, will be the first part, called " miscellaneous," and consisting chiefly of letters of friend- ship, abounding in tokens of benevolence, sparkling not un- frequently into satiric pleasantry, but of a bland good-natured kind, arising in the most easy natural manner, and thrown off with admirable simplicity and brevity of expression. There are short discussions relating to various arts and conveniences of life, plain instructions for persons deficient in cultivation, 244 franklin's correspondence. and the means for it ; condolences on the death of friends, and frequent references, in an advanced stage of the correspond- ence, to his old age, and approaching death. Moral princi- ples and questions are sometimes considered and simpliHed ; and American affairs are often brought in view, though not set forth in the diplomatic style. It is unnecessary to remark, that Franklin was not so much a man of books as of affairs ; but he was not the less for that a speculative man. Every concern became an intellectual subject to a mind so acutely and perpetually attentive to the relation of cause and effect. For enlargement of his sphere of speculation, his deficiency of literature, in the usual sense of the term, was excellently compensated by so wide an ac- quaintance with the world, and with distinguished individuals of all ranks, professions, and attainments. It may be, however, that a more bookish and contemplative employment of some portion of his life, would have left one deiiciency of his mental character less palpable. There ap- pears to have been but little in that character of the element of sublimity. We do not meet with many bright elevations of thought, or powerful enchanting impulses of sentiment, or brilliant transient glimpses of ideal worlds. Strong, inde- pendent, comprehensive, never-remitting intelligence, pro- ceeding on the plain ground of things, and acting in a manner always equal to, and never appearing at moments to surpass itself, constituted his mental power. In its operation it has no risings and fallings, no disturbance into eloquence or poetry, no cloudiness of smoke indeed, but no darting of flames. A consequence of this perfect uniformity is, that all subjects treated, appaar to be on a level, the loftiest and most insignificant being commented on in the same unalterable strain of a calm plain sense, which brings all things to its own standard, insomuch that a great subject shall sometimes seem to become less while it is elucidated, and less com- manding while it is enforced. In discoursing of serious sub- jects, Franklin imposes gravity on the reader, but does not excite solemnity, and on grand ones he never displays or in- spires enthusiasm. It is, however, curious to see such a man just now and then a little touched with romance : as, for instance, in the follow- ing letter to Dr. Priestley : — franklin's correspondence. 245 " I always rejoice to hear of your being still employed in experimental researches into nature, and of the success you meet with. The rapid pro- gress true science now makes, occasions my regretting sometimes that I was born so soon. It is impossible to imagine the height to which may be carried in a thousand years, the power of man over matter ; we may perhaps learn to deprive large masses of the gravity, and give them ab- solute levity for the sake of easy transport. Agriculture may diminish its labour and double its produce : all diseases may by sure means be pre. vented or cured, (not excepting even that of old age) and our lives lengthened at pleasure even beyond the antediluvian standard. <3 that moral science were in as fair a way of improvement, that men would cease to be wolves to one another, and that human beings would at length learn what they now improperly call humanity !" In a very friendly letter to Dr. Mather, of Boston, he men- tions a very simple cause as having, in early life, contributed to determine him to that course of practical utility which he pursued to the last. •' I received your kind letter with your excellent advice to the people of the United States. Such writings, though they may be lightly passed over by many readers, yet if ihey make a deep impression in one active mind of a hundred, the effects mav be considerable. Permit me to men- tion one little instance which, though it relates to myself, will not be quite imintercsting to you. When I was a boy, I met with a book entitled Essays 1o do Good, which I think was written by your father. It had been so little regarded by a former possessor, that several leaves of it were torn out ; but the remainder gave me such a turn of thinking as to have an influence on my conduct through life : for I have always set a greater value on the character of a doer of good, than on any other kind of repu- tation ; and if I have been, as you seem to think, a useful citizen, the public owes the advantage of it to that book. You mention your being in your seventy-eighth year : I am in my seventy-ninth year ; we are grown old together. It is now more than sixty years since I left Boston; but I remember well both your father and grandfather, having heard them both in the pulpit, and seen them in their houses. The last time 1 saw your father was in the beginning of 1724. He received me into his library, and on my taking leave, showed me a shorter way out of the house through a narrow passage, which was crossed by a beam over head. We were still talking as I withdrew, he accompanying me behind, and I turning partly townrds him, when he said hastily, " Stoop, stoop." I did not understand him till I felt my head hit against the beam. He was a man that never missed any occasion of giving instruction ; and upon this he said to me, you are young, and have the vjorld before you ; stoop as you go through it, and you will miss many hard thumps. The advice thus beat into my head, has frequently been of use to me, and I often think of it, when I see pride mortified, and misfortunes brought upon people by their carrying their heads too high." But the most remarkable letter in the volume, is one writ- ten in his eighty.fifth year, to Dr. Ezra Stiles, President of 246 franklin's correspondence. Yale College, who had in a very friendly and respectful man- ner solicited some information respecting the aged philoso- pher's opinion of the Christian religion. Franklin's reply to an inquiry which he says had never been made to him before, is written with kindness and seriousness, but nevertheless in terms not a little evasive. But perhaps it would in effect have as much explicitness as his venerable correspondent could wish, for it would too clearly inform the good man, as it does its present readers, that this philosopher, and patriot, and, as in many points of view he may most justly be regarded, philan- thropist, was content and prepared to venture into another world without any hold upon the Christian faith. In many former letters, as well as in this last, he constantly professes his firm belief in an Almighty Being, wise, and good, and exercising a providential government over the world ; and in a future state of conscious existence, rendered probable by the nature of the human soul, and by the analogies presented in the reno- vations and reproductions in other classes of being, and rendered necessary by the unsatisfactory state of allotment and retribution on earth. On the ground of such a faith, so sus- tained, he appears always to anticipate with complacency the appointed removal to another scene, confident that he should continue to experience in another life the goodness of that Being who had been so favourable to him in this, " though without the smallest conceit," he says, " of meriting such goodness." The merely philosophic language uniformly em- ployed in his repeated anticipations of an immortal life, taken together with two or three profane passages in these letters, (there are but few such passages*,) and with the manner in which he equivocates on the question respectfully pressed upon him by the worthy President of Yale College, respecting his opinion of Christ, leave no room to doubt that, whatever he did really think of the Divine Teacher, he substantially re- jected Christianity — that he refused to acknowledge it in any thing like the character of a peculiar economy for the illu- mination and redemption of a fallen and guilty race. Nothing, probably, that he believed, was believed on the authority of its declarations, and nothing that he assumed to hope after death, * One of the most prominent and offensive is in a very short letter (p. 115, 4to.) written when past eighty, on the occasion of the death of a person whom he calls " our poor friend Ben Kent." We were going to transcribe, — but it is better to leave such vile stuff where it is. 247 was expected on the ground of its redeeming efficacy and its promises. And this state of opinions it appears that he self- complacently maintained without variation, during the long course of his activities and speculations on the great scale ; for in this letter to Dr. Stiles, of the date of 1790, he enclosed, as expressive of his latest opinions, one written nearly forty years before, in answer to some religious admoni- tions addressed to him by George Whitfield. So that, throughout a period much surpassing the average duration of the life of man, spent in a vigorous and very diversified ex- ercise of an eminently acute and independent intellect, with all the lights of the world around him, he failed to attain the one grand simple apprehension how man is to be accepted with God. There is even cause to doubt whether he ever made the inquiry, with any real solicitude to meet impartially the claims of that religion which avows itself to be, on evi- dence, a declaration of the mind of the Almighty on the mo- mentous subject. On any question of physics, or mechanics, or policy, or temporal utility of any kind, or morals as de- tached from religion, he could bend the whole force of his spirit, and the result was often a gratifying proof of "the great- ness of that force ; but the religion of Christ it would appear that he could pass by with an easy assumption that whatever might be the truth concerning it, he could perfectly well do without it. To us this appears a mournful and awful specta- cle ; and the more so, from that entire unaffected tranquillity with which he regarded the whole concern in the conscious near approach of death. Some of the great Christian topics it was needless to busy himself about then, because he should soon learn the "truth with less trouble !" — We conclude by transcribing from the letter to Dr. Stiles the paragraph relating to the philosopher's religion. " Here is rny creed : I believe in one God, the creator of the universe. Tliat he governs it by his Providence. That he ought to be worshipped. That the most acceptable service we render to him is doing good to his other children. That the soul of man is immortal, and will be treated with justice in another life respecting its conduct in this. These I take to be the fundamental points in all sound religion, and I regard them as you do, in whatever sect I meet with them. As to Jesus of Nazareth, my opinion of whom you particularly desire, I think the system of morals and his religion as he left them to us, the best the world ever saw or is like to see, but I apprehend it has received various corrupting changes, and I have with most of the present dissenters in England, some doubts as to his divinity ; though it is a question I do not dogmatize upon, having 248 never studied it, and think it needless to busy myself with it now, when I expect soon an opportunity of knowing the truth with less trouble. I see no harm, however, in its bcinor believed, if that belief has the good consequence, as probably it has, of making his doctrines more respected and more observed, especially as I do not see that the Supreme takes it amiss by distinguishing the believers, in his government of the world, with any peculiar marks of his displeasure. I shail only add respecting my- self, that having experienced the goodness of that Being in conducting me prosperously through a long life, I have no doubt of its continuance in the next, though without the smallest conceit of meriting such goodness." DR. BEATTIE. 249 X. JAMES BEATTIE. An Account of the Life and Writings of James Beattie, LL.D., late Professor of Moral Philosophy and Logic in the Marisclial College and University of Aberdeen ; includ- ing many of his Original Letters, By Sir William Forbes, of Pitsligo, Bart. When a man of humble condition and education who has cultivated literature under the pressure of many disadvantages, and perhaps distresses, comes before the public with a work which has cost him great labour, costs the purchaser but a moderate price, and communicates very necessary, or at least very useful and seasonable information, he may justly claim for the faults of his book the very last degree of forbearance which criticism can exercise, without surrendering its essen- tial laws. But when a man of fortune, who had a liberal education, who has been intimate^with many of the most dis- tinguished individuals, both in literature and rank, for forty years, who would indignantly disown any wish to raise money on the grave of his friend, who knows that an ample memoir of that friend has already been given to the public, and who adopts the easiest of all possible modes of making up volumes, publishes a splendid work, he will naturally disdain to be un- der any obligation to the clemency of critics. We shall therefore feel perfectly at liberty to express our honest opinion on these volumes ; and laying out of the question all the ex- cellencies which the author doubtless possesses, we shall consider him simply in the character which he has assumed in appearing before the public. We cannot but earnestly wish that the present epidemical disease in literature, the custom of making very large books about individuals, may in due time find, like other diseases, some limit to its prevalence, and at length decline and dis- appear. What is to become of readers, if the exit of every 250 FORBEs's LIFE OF man of some literary eminence is thus to be followed by a long array of publications, beginning with duodecimos, ex- tending into octavos, and expanded at last into a battalion of magniticent quartos ? This is reviving to some purpose the The ban method of attacking in the form of a wedge ; and we do hope the curiosity, diligence, and patience of readers will at last be completely put to the rout. This swelling fungous kind of biography confounds all the right proportions in which the claims and the importance of individuals should be arranged, and exhibited to the attention of the public. When a private person, whose life was marked by few striking varieties, is thus brought forward in two volumes quarto, while many an individual of modern times, who influenced the fate of nations, has been confined to a sixth part of the compass, it reminds us too much of that political rule by which Old Sarum, consisting of one house, is represented by two illustrious senators, while many very populous towns are not represented at all. If a professor of a college is to lie thus magnificently in state, what must be done for such a man as Mr. Pitt or Mr. Fox ? And still more, what must be done after the exit of some persons who are at present acting their part in human affairs ? The French En- cyclopedic will be, in point of bulk, but a horn-book in com- paiis>n of the stupendous host of folios, which must come forth after the departure of Bonaparte and Talleyrand ; pro- vided, that is to say, that sufficient materials, in the way of paper, ink, &;c., can then be obtained wherewithal to furnish out this mighty blazon of monumental history. And by the way, the makers of paper will do well to take the hint from us, and have their warehouses ready for the event which will happen sooner or later in their favour, though to the con- fusion and dismay of the most courageous and indefatigable readers. As to reviewers, the most industrious and incor- ruptible of all the servants of the public, they will then have the plea of absolute necessity for resorting to the practice of which they have sometimes been most unrighteously accused, that of reviewing books without inspecting them. The method of constructing large biographical works out of an assemblage of letters, with here and there a page and paragraph between, for the purpose of connexion and ex- planation, has plenty of plausible recommendations. There is an appearance of great modesty ; the compiler makes no DR. BEATTIE. 251 claims to the honours of authorship ; all he is anxious for, is to display in the simplest manner, the merits, talents, and pur- suits of his friend. That friend is thus made to present him- self to us in his own person, and his familiar correspondence will disclose to us the internal qualities of the man incom- parably better, as it is so often repeated to us, than any formal development of a biographer. The series of such letters, continued through half the length of life or more, will show the gradual progress and improvement of the mind. If some of them are trivial or common, in subject or style, even the smallest things said and written by eminent persons have their value ; it is pleasing to observe how great minds sometimes unbend ; and consoling to see in how many re- spects they are like ourselves. These are recommendations proper to be mentioned to the public ; but there are others of which the biographer can silently take the advantage to him- self, besides that extreme facility of performance which we have hinted already. One of these is impunity. There is little to be attacked in such a book, except what its author has not written ; or if he is directly censured for introducing some of the things written by the person who is the subject of the book, the partiality of friendship is a plea always at hand, and a feeling always accounted amiable. Another is a fair opportunity for the biographer to introduce himself very often, and without the direct form of egotism ; since the probability is, that not a few of the letters were written to him, and con- tain of course, many very handsome things. His modesty professes to hesitate about their insertion ; but yet they must be inserted, because they show in so striking a light, the kind disposition of his friend. Such handsome things, we have no doubt, were amply de- served by Sir W. Forbes, and even those more than hand- some things which he inforn^s us he has omitted in printing the letters. The indications of a sincere aftection for Dr. Beattie, are very conspicuous ; and we attribute it to a real partiality of friendship, that he has made this work much larger than we think can be of service to the instruction of the public, or the memory of his friend. The memory of that friend was unquestionably too dear to him to have per- mitted the insertion of one letter or line, which he did not sincerely believe would give the same impression of the writer, which Sir William himself was happy to cherish. It is there- 252 FORBES'S LIFE OF fore unfortunate, that the reader should feel, at the close of the book, that he would have been more pleased with both Dr. Beattie and his biogropher, if it had come to a close much sooner. The parts written by Sir W. Forbes, are in a style, per- spicuous, correct, and classical ; generally relating however to particulars, which required no great effort of thought. Many of these particulars are most unnecessarily introduced, and lead into details which are extremely tiresome, not ex- cepting even the analysis of Dr. Beattie's writings. It had surely been enough to have stated in a few sentences, the objects of his several performances, and then, if the reader deemed those objects of importance, he would take an oppor- tunity of consulting the books themselves. The notes con- tain a large assemblage of biographical and genealogical records. When a new acquaintance of Dr. Beattie is men- tioned, it is deemed proper for us to be informed of his pa- rentage, his connexions, his residence, his othces, his accom- plishments. In several instances a letter of little interest is preceded by a long history of still less, for the purpose of making that letter intelligible, by detailing some transaction to which it relates ; as in that part of the book referring to the union of two colleges in Aberdeen. Sir William is sufB- ciently a citizen of the world, we have no doubt, to wish his book may be read in each part of the kingdom ; why was he not enough a citizen of the world, to be aware how small a portion of the kingdom can feel any concern in this piece of history ? If he thought all these matters would magnify the importance of his principal subject, he is so far mistaken, that the reader is tempted to quarrel with that subject, on account of this crowd of appendages. The reader feels in this case, just as Sir William would do, if some one of his friends of high rank, whom he would be very glad to receive in an easy quiet way, would never come to visit him for a day or two, without bringing also a large troop of footmen, postillions, cooks, nursery-maids, and other inhabitants of his house, kitchen, and stables. We will not suppose it was his formal purpose to make a very large book. Nor could it be his am- bition to display writing talents, as the subjects would have been unfortunately selected for such a purpose ; and indeed we do not accuse him of ostentation as an author. Perhaps it is no great vice if he exhibits a little of it as a man. But DR. BEATTIE. 253 we have felt a degree of surprise that he should not seem to be aware of the mipressioii which would be made on the minds of his readers, by his adding, at the end of almost every note relating to one or another distinguished personage of Dr. Beattie's acquaintance, "And I also had the honour of his friendship." This occurs so often, that we have felt that kind of irritation which is excited when a man, that we wish to respect, is for the tenth or twentieth time doing or repeat- ing a foolish thing in order to intimate his importance. We persuade ourselves that this feeling arises from our right per- ception of w hat would have preserved Sir William's dignity ; perhaps however we deceive ourselves, and the feeling springs from envy of his high fortune, for we doubt if we were ever summoned to wait on a man of such extensive and illustrious connexions before. Previously to the insertion of any of Dr. Beattie's letters, a succinct account is given of his life, from his birth, of humble, but very respectable parents, till his twenty-fifth year, when he was appointed professor of moral philosophy and logic, in Marischal college, after having passed through the offices of parish-clerk and schoolmaster in the neighbourhood of his native place, and assistant in a respectable school in Aberdeen. This rapid advancement, by means of merit alone, is in itself sufficient to evince both uncommon ability and industry. We are informed that the passion and the talent for poetry were very early awakened in his mind, and in one of his letters to a friend, in a later period of his life, he acknowledges that his "Minstrel" is substantially a de- scription of what had been his own mental character in his youth. A prematurity of faculties appears conspicuous through the whole course of his earlier life, and when he was fixed at Aberdeen, those faculties were extended to the ut- most, in the society of a number of distinguished men, such as Campbell, Reid, Gerard, Gregory, and many others, with whom he familiarly associated, and from that time maintained an intimate friendship as long as the respective parties lived. An entertaining account is given of these literary friends forming themselves into a society for philosophical discussion, to which the common people gave the denomination of the Wise Club, in which the first ideas were started of some of those theories which were afterwards unfolded at large, in books that have obtained a high rank in the philosophic 12 254 FoiiB|:s's life of school. It is pleasing to observe, that the friendship among: these scholars and philosophers was very cordial, and not withered bj that envy and jealousy which the philosophic character has often enough failed to preclude, when rival talents have created a comparison and balance of reputation. Dr. Beattie retained his station at Aberdeen all the rest of his life, which was diversified only by his family connexions and cares, his publications, his friendships, and his occa- sional visits to London. A piece of information is now and then interposed by the biographer ; but these circumstances are chiefly unfolded in Dr. Beattie's correspondence with Dr. Blacklock, Sir W. Forbes, Mr. Arbuthnot, Mrs. Montague, the Bishop of London, the Duchess of Gordon, and several other friends. From the time of Beattie's establishment at Aberdeen, till within a few years of the end of his life, a period of forty years, he prosecuted study and the business of authorship with inde- fatigable industry and ardour. And in passing along the series of letters, our admiration is repeatedly excited by the variety of attainments, the extent of accurate reading, and the quantity of composition, for which he was able to rescue time enough from his professional employments, wide correspond- ence, intercourse with society, and domestic sorrows. A more instructive example is not often displayed of what resolute application may accomplish, when supported by a very warm interest in the business in which it is exerted. But at the same time a warm passion for literature, especially when a man writes, as well as reads, is apt to produce a species of extravagance, which, to people who are not in the same em- ployment, appears excessively ludicrous. A cork-cutter, or a maker of nails, or pins, or pegs for shoes, who quietly betakes himself to his work every morning, and goes soberly through it as a matter of course, would be first surprised, and next diverted to laughter, to see the importance, and earnestness, and solemnity, put on by an author and a poet, while occupied about the making of a line, the adjusting of a syllable, the changing of an epithet, the measuring of dactyls, or the length- ening or shortening of a paragraph ; and by the self-com- placency, the air of high achievement, and the congratulations of scholars, Avhen he has performed this great duty well. Even the detail of the graver and more philosophic labours of writing cannot be listened to long, when the writers are to give the ©E. BEATTIE. 255 account of them, without the loss of gravity ; though it is true that the gravity which is lost in laughing, may be quickly resumed for censuring. The letters of authors, from Pope's time down to the pre- sent instance, betray them to this ridicule and this censure. There is no end of the amplifications and repetitions about my book, my poems, my ode, my epigram, my translations, my corrections, my new edition, my next production. — I have taken great pains to amend the harshness of the tenth or fifteenth line ; I have excluded one stanza, and inserted two ; I flatter myself that the objection which has been made to it by the public will now be obviated ; I have been particularly struck with a coincidence between a passage in my essay, and one in Mr. 's treatise ; I can prove that mine was not borrowed ; I have written twenty pages of a dissertation on the subject we were lately conversing upon ; you know I do not think highly of my own talents ; I am inclined to think this will be a decisive performance, however ; my last work is getting much into vogue, as I am informed. — I hear the critics are at work ; I defy them ; your approbation would sustain my self-complacency, if they were all to condemn me ; Mr. is very angry, but I think he will not attack ; the work has produced a great sensation ; I am told that Dr. E., and Bishop F., and Lord G. are delighted with it ; I have just received a letter from Lady H., who pays me such compli- ments as I will not repeat to you ; she tells me that Mr. J. is wonderfully pleased and is very anxious to see me, &;c. &c. If authors may be allowed to expatiate on these matters, and in this manner, in their communications with their inti- mate literary friends, the letters ought, for the sake of the respectability of the writers, to be confined to those friends alone. Should there be any exception, it would be in the instance where some important principle of criticism is dis- cussed in immediate connexion with any articles of the author's own performances, so that his remarks respecting his compo- sitions, shall become instructive lessons on the art of com- position in general. But this is rarely the case in those parts of the letters before us, which are occupied with a multitude of minutiae about the writer's own studies. We therefore think, that many of these letters convict Sir W. Forbes of utterly mistaking the proper method of recalling his departed friend, with dignity, into the public consideration. 256 FORBEs's LIFE OP The first publication of Dr. Beattie was a volume of juvenile poems, in a new edition of which he omitted several pieces which his biographer regrets to lose ; especially a long Ode to Peace, which is inserted in the appendix to the present work. We think that Dr. Beattie showed more discernment in wishing to let it sink in oblivion, than Sir William in fishing it up again. The term Chaos occurs in the first stanza, and would have been a singularly appropriate title for the whole ode. It is not a description of chaos, but the very thing itself; a mass of ill-defined and enormous images ; a confusion of crude elements, dashing, rumbling, howling, and fighting all in the dark. The "Minstrel" is the production of a maturer age, and will always be read with delight, by persons endowed with a taste for nature, with tenderness of feeling, and elevated imagination. The alleged deficiency of incident would hardly appear to us a fault, in any work so rich in refined sentiment and beautiful description. An ample portion of the first volume is occupied with the project, the completion, the publication, and the success, of the "Essay on Truth." This is no place for the examination of the principles of that celebrated book, which, beyond all doubt, was written with the worthiest intention, and was of considerable use at the time, in exposing some of the most obvious extravagances of the sceptical philosophy, which was carried to the very limit of sense by Mr. Hume, and pushed beyond it into the most ridiculous folly, by some of his weak admirers and wicked followers. The book will be an accept- able resting-place to those who are averse to the labour of abstract thinking, and an asylum to those who are terrified by the consequences sometimes seen to result from attempting to prosecute such thinking beyond the power and reach of the human faculties. But we cannot expect that philosophers will ever be satisfied with this doctrine of common sense. They will, we think justly, assert that there is no boundary which can fairly limit and close the investigation of truth on this side the region of metaphysics. The ultimate principles must be there, whether they can be found there or not ; and thither the investigation will absolutely go, in spite of every contrivance to satisfy and determine it at any nearer point. How far it shall go into that world of abstraction, before its progress shall be stopped by humility or despair, will depend DR. BEATTIE. 257 on the strength of a merely philosophic mind, and on the dis* cretion of a pious one. The author's expectations of the success of his essay were not sanguine, and therefore surprise heightened his satisfac- tion when it was received, if many of these letters do not exaggerate, with such delight, as if Christianity and true philosophy had been waiting, in the awful crisis of existence or extinction, for its appearance. It seems to have been wel- comed like a convoy of provisions in a famishing garrison, by many high characters in church and state, whose exultation would really seem to betray the impression which their talents had not prevented Mr. Hume from making on their fears. The most flattering attentions thickened on Dr. Beattie within the circle of his personal acquaintance ; and he received from Eng- land many letters abounding with expressions of admiration and offers of friendship, on the strength of which he was induced to make a visit to London. At this period of the history, he is pre- sented to us in a different point of view from that of the scholar, poet, and philosopher. We are fairly told, though with much care to qualify the homeliness of the confession, that it was needful to Dr. Beattie to eat, which we have often had occa- sion to be sorry that philosophers, including reviewers, should be under the necessity of doing. The means of subsistence for himself and family were confined to the small stipend of his professorship, and the emolument that might accrue from his publications ; of which he received a comfortable sample and assurance in the fifty guineas paid him for his "Essay on Truth," which had only cost him the labour of four years. His many generous and opulent friends in Scotland and Eng- land were aware of his circumstances, and sincerely regretted them. A comparatively small annual sum would have given a man of his moderate wants and habits, the feeling of inde- pendence ; and a strong and concurrent sentiment of anxiety was awakened, in the minds of a greater number of noblemen and gentlemen than we can charge our memories with, to find out any means of obtaining for him this advantage. They lamented the duty, imposed on them by their high rank, of expending so many thousands on their splendid establishments and their hounds ; while the illustrious defender of truth, and their dear friend, was in danger of something bordering on indigence. But notwithstanding these unavoidable neces- sities of their own condition, they would have been most 258 FORBES'S LIFE OF happy to have made some effort in his favour, had not a fatal obstacle stood in the way. That obstacle was delicacy; it might hurt his feelings to insinuate to him the offer of any thing which they themselves regarded with such a generous scorn as money. With sincere sorrow therefore, they were reduced to wait, and see what fortune might do for him. At last Mrs. Montague, much to her shame, violated this delicacy by informing him, that she would take upon herself to mend his condition, if a slight expectation which had begun to spring up from another quarter, should fail to be realized. This expectation was realized not long after, and his illustrious friends rejoiced in the double good fortune, that their delicacy was saved, and his purse was filled. Sir W. Forbes, one of those friends, and an opulent banker in Edinburgh, records this whole affair in the most honest simplicity of heart, just as we have done ourselves. This brings us, as we conceive, to the middle of our song. Now heavily comes on in clouds the day, The great, th' important day, big with the fate But it was a much better fate than that of our old friend Cato. After many preparatory solemnities. Dr. Beattie was intro- duced to their Majesties ; but a reverential awe forbids us to intrude our remarks on what passed in the royal sanctuary. We wait near the entrance till the bold adventurer returns, to display his acquisitions and his honours, a kind of spolia opima, similar to what Johnson, another great literary hero, had carried off sometime before, and often, as his historian tells, triumphantly exhibited to the wonder and envy of his nu- merous acquaintance. At Dr. Beattie 's return, however, we find him so beset with a crowd and mob of zealous friends, that we are glad to make our escape from the bustle, and can only say, that at length he went back to Scotland with an annuity of £200. Highly appreciating the royal bounty, he ever after- wards testified the liveliest gratitude ; and his attachment was naturally increased by the very flattering marks of friendship which he received from their Majesties on subsequent oc- casions. During this visit he was introduced to the distinguished persons whose letters are here intermixed with his own. Our remarks on the whole collection must be brief and general. Together with a great deal that ought to have been omitted, DR. BEATTIE. 25ft as neither having any intrinsic value, nor supplying any ad- ditional illustration of the Doctor's qualities, they contain much good sense, easy writing, and frank disclosure of character. There is also a respectable share of true criticism ; but we own there are not many passages that appear to us to reach the depths of either criticism or philosophy, v/hich indeed are the same. The variety of the descriptions generally bears the marks of the poet and the man of taste. The references to subjects of domestic tenderness present him in so amiable a light that we deeply sympathize with the melancholy which accompanied every recollection of the state of his family ; and it must have been inevitable to a man like him, to have that recol- lection almost continually in his mind. The direct allusions, however, are not often repeated, and with much propriety Sir William has no doubt omitted many paragraphs relating to the subject. Dr. Beattie's style is singularly free and perspicuous, and adapted in the highest degree to the purpose of familiar lecturing to his pupils ; but for an author, we should deem it something less than elegant, and something less than nervous. In early life he took great pains to imitate Addison, whose style he always recommended and admired. But Addison's style is not suffi- ciently close and firm for the use of a philosopher, and as to the exquisite shades of his colours, they can perhaps never be successfully imitated. We were rather surprised to find the enthusiastic admirer of Addison preferring the old Scotch ver- sion of the Psalms to every other; and the opinion of so respectable a judge put our national partialities in some degree of fear. But we soon recovered our complacency in our own venerable Sternhold and Hopkins, who, in point of harmony and elegance, richness and majesty, and all the other high attributes of poetry, have surely beaten their northern rivals. In many parts of the letters we are constrained to perceive a degree of egotism inconsistent with the dignity of a philoso- pher or a man. The writer seems unwilling to lose any op- portunity of recounting the attentions, the compliments, the tes- timonies of admiration, which he has received from individuals or the public. The complacency with which he expatiates on himself and his performances, is but imperfectly disguised by the occasional and too frequent professions of holding himself and those performances cheap. This is a very usual but un- successful expedient, with those who have reflection enough 260 FORBES'S LIFE OF to be sensible that they have rather too much ostentation, hut not resolution enough to restrain themselves from indulging in it. It will unluckily happen sometimes, that these professions of self-disesteem will be brought into direct contrast with cer- tain things that betray a very different feeling. There is an instance of this in the second volume, p. 173, where the ex- pression, " you have paid too much attention to my foolish re- marks," is printed in the same page with this other expression, " poor Mr. Locke." Another conspicuous feature of this correspondence, is the gross flattery interchanged between Dr. Beattie and his friends. The reader is sometimes tempted to suspect, that he has been called to be present at a farce where the principal persons are flattering for a wager. During the perusal we have been obliged again and again to endeavour to drive out of our ima- gination the idea of a meeting of friends in China, where the first mandarin bows to the floor, and then the second mandarin bows to the floor, and then the first mandarin bows again to the floor, and thus they go on till friendship is satisfied or pa- tience tired. In his letters to one individual, a Duchess, the Doctor felt it his duty to take notice of person as well as abili- ties and virtues. But we should conclude that all the other gentlemen of her acquaintance must have been very sparing of compliments to her beauty, if she could be gratified by such as those of the professor. If it is not gross flattery that abounds in these letters, we have the more cause to be sorry for having come into the world some years later than Dr. Beattie and Sir W. Forbes. There have been better times than the present, if during the main part of this correspondence, every gentleman was an accomplished scholar, every person of opulence and power was humble and charitable, and every prelate an apostle. Astraea must have left the earth much later than report has commonly given out. The letters of the Doctor's friends constitute the smaller, yet a considerable proportion of the series. Those of Mrs. Montague are greatly superior to the rest, and excel in some respects those of Dr. Beattie himself. The general praise of good language is due to the whole collection. It may appear a caprice of our taste, to dislike the frequent recurrence of the words credit and creditahlc. " Highly creditable to his under- standing and his heart," " does equal credit to his talents and DE. BEATTIE. 261 Lis character," &c., &;c., are phrases returning so often, that they become disagreeable intruders on the eye and the ear. The sameness of phrase is however strikingly relieved by nov- elty of application, in a letter of condolence from a learned pre- late to Dr. Beattie, after the death of his second son. Vol. II., p. 309. The mourning father is told that, " The faith, the piety, the fortitude displayed by so young a man, on so awful an oc- sion, do infinite credit to him." As if dying were a matter of exhibition to be performed handsomely to please the specta- tors. Among the sensible and entertaining pieces of criticism to be found in the Doctor's letters, we might refer to his observa- tions on the novel of Clarissa, Ossian's Poems, the Nouvelle Eloise, Metastasio, Tasso, Caesar's Commentaries, the diction of the Orientals, and the Henriade. In connexion with the subjects of criticism, are the curious remarks on the character of Petrarch, and the truly fantastic picture of Lord Monboddo. A selection of about one -third of the materials composing these volumes, would make a very interesting and instructive book. Though we have complained of the mass of extraneous mat- ter, yet some of the facts incidentally related, are such as ought not to have been lost. The account of the excellent lady, whose husband, with all his property, perished at sea, and who was niece to the once celebrated Mrs. Catharine Cock- burn, would be very interesting, were we not convinced, from the internal evidence, that it is most incorrectly stated. Accord- ing to this account she lived, till that late period when Mrs. Montague settled on her an annuity for the short remainder of her life, in great penury ; insomuch that it was a matter of won- der how she contrived to preserve a tolerable appearance in re- spect of clothing. Now this must be an utter mistake or misrep- resentation, for we are told that she was well-known to many persons of eminent rank, and in particular was highly esteem- ed by the Duchess of Gordon, the possessor, as we learn from Dr. Beattie, of every beneficent virtue, as well as every charm, under heaven. The transport of surprise and gratitude dis- played by the aged sufferer, on being informed what Mrs. Montague had done, and which the narrative of Dr. Beattie and Sir W. Forbes would really leave us to attribute to her having never experienced much bounty before, was owing un- questionably to a very difierent cause. It was her benevolent 12* 262 FOEBES'S LIFE OF joy that a part of the ample supplies which she had received from her former mmiificent patrons and patronesses, and espe- cially the Duchess, might now be applied to the support of other deserving persons in distress. While remarking on the error of the statement, it strikes us as equally singular and merito- rious, that zi-e, who were never honoured with a smile or a nod from a peer or peeress, — that we, in our obscure garrets, labouring at our occupation during the day by the few glimpses of light that can steal through windows almost stopped up with old hats and bits of board to keep out the rain, and during the night by the lustre of farthing candles, — should be more solici- tous about the reputation of people of high rank, than Sir W. Forbes, the intimate friend of so many of them, appears in this instance to have been. We hope that this our virtue, in de- fault of other recompense, will be its own reward ; and we trust it will be a pledge, that, whatever culpable dispositions may belong to reviewers, they feel no inclination to speak evil of dignities. We could have wished to entertain an unmingled respect for the moral habits and religious views of Dr. Beattie ; and it is an ungracious thing to detect any signs of a moral latitude inconsistent with the religion which he wished to defend. One of these signs is his passion for the theatre. Who would ever dream, on reading the following passage, that it could have been written by a zealous friend of the religion of Christ ] *' I rejoice to hear that Mr. Garrick is so well as to be able to appear in tragedy. It is in vain to indulge one's self in unavailing complaints, other, wise I could rail by the hour at Dame Fortune, for placing- me beyond the reach of that arch-magician, as Horace would have called him. I well remember, and I think I can never forget, how he once affected me in Macbeth, and made me almost throw myself over the front seat of the two- shilling gallery. I wish I had another opportunity of risking my neck and nerves in the same cause. To fall by the hands of Garrick and Shak- speare, would ennoble my memory to all generations. To be serious, if all actors were like this one, I do not think it would be possible for a person of sensibility to outlive the representation of Hamlet, Lear, or Macbeth ; which, by the by, seems to suggest a reason for that mixture of comedy and tragedy of which our great poet was so fond, and which the Frenchi- fied critics think such an intolerable outrage both against nature and de- cency. Against nature, it is no outrage at all ; the inferior officers of a court know very little of what passes among kings and statesmen ; and may be very merry, when their superiors are very sad ; and if so, the por- ter's soliloquy in Macbeth may be a very just imitation of nature. And I can never accuse of indency the man, who, by the introduction of a little unexpected merriment, saves me from a disordered head, or a broken DR. BEATTIE. 263 heart. If Shakspeare knew his own powers, he must have seen the ne- cessity of tempering' his tragic rage by a mixture of comic ridicule ; other- wise tliere was some danger of his running into greater excesses than deer- steahng, by sporting with the lives of all the people of taste in these realms. Other play-wrights must conduct their approaches to the human heart with the utmost circumspection, a single false step may make them lose a great deal of ground ; but Shakspeare made his way to it at once, and could make his audience burst tlieir sides this moment, and break their hearts the next. I have often seen Hamlet performed by the underlings of the theatre, but none of these seemed to understand what they were about. Hamlet's character, though perfectly natural, is so very uncommon, that few, even of our critics, can enter into it. Sorrow, indignation, revenge, and consciousness of his own irresolution, tear his heart ; the pecuHarity of his circumstances often obliges him to counterfeit madness, and the storm of passions within him often drives him to the verge of real madness. This produces a situation so interesting, and a conduct so complicated, as none but Shakspeare could have had the courage to describe, and none but Garrick will ever be able to exhibit. Excuse this rambling ; I know you like the subject ; and for my part I like it so much, that when I once get in, I am not willing to find my way out of it." — Vol. I. pp. 218 — 220. We may also be allowed to ask, how it consisted with that full approbation which he uniformly avowed of the established church of England, to spend the Sabbath in a convivial party with Sir J. Reynolds, Baretti, and other persons, some of whom would most likely have laughed at him, had he hinted any recollection of the duty of public worship ? This w^as not a singular ofience with him. Religious opinions, in the strict sense, are scarcely disclos- ed in any part of the work, except occasionally by implication, as in the following sentence : " The virtue of even the best man must, in order to appear meritorious at the great tribunal, have something added to it which man cannot bestow." We were sincerely grieved to meet with so grand a mistake of the nature of Christianity. On the whole, we fear Dr. Beattie conformed in his moral principles too much to the fashion of reputable men of the world, and in his religious ones too much to the fashion of scholars and philosophers. This fear was in no degree obviated, by our finding the first of his precepts to a young minister of the gospel to be exactly this, " Read the classics day and night." We are forcibly reminded, by con- trast, of the injunctions given to Timothy, by the prince of the apostles. We question, too, whether the Doctor, in another instance, acquitted himself very uprightly as a " soul-doctor," (for thus he terms himself;) we refer to his prescription for a noble 264 FORBES'S LIFE OF DR. BEATTIE. Duchess, whose name occurs very often within these pages. There was a period, we find, when that lady was disposed to solitude and reflection ; one of those awful periods at which the destiny of an individual seems oscillating in suspense, and a small influence of advice, or circumstance, has the power to decide it. ' How Dr. Beattie used this entrusted moment, may be seen from the following admonitions : •• Seasons of recollection may be useful ; birt when one begins to find pleasure in sig-hingover Young's ' Night Thoughts' in a corner, it is time to shut the book, and return to the company Such things may help to soften a rugged mind ; and I believe 1 might have been the better for them. But your Grace's heart is already ' too feelingly alive to each fine impulse ;' and, therefore, to you I would recommend gay thoughts, cheerful books, and sprightly company." — Vol. II. pp. 28, 29. We are doubtful which most to admire, the rigid friendship of the adviser, or the notorious docility of the pupil ; the degree in which they both exemplify the predominance of a devotional spirit, appears to be nearly equal. Here our remarks must be concluded. The closing part of Dr. Beattie's life is as affecting as any tragedy we ever read, and will appeal irresistibly to the sympathy of every reader who can reflect or feel. His health had been ruined by intense study, and the hopeless giief arising from the circumstance already mentioned. Under the loss of his nearest relative by what was far worse than her death, his eldest son, an admir- able youth, became the object of unbounded aflection. At the age of twenty -two he died. A few years after, his remaining son, not equally interesting with the other, but yet an excellent young man, died also. The afflicted parent manifested a re- signation to the divine will which cannot be surpassed. But nature sunk by degrees into a state, from which his friends could not but congratulate his deliverance by death. DEFECTIVE STANDARD OF MORALS. 265 XL FASHIONABLE LIFE. Tales of Fashionable Life. By Miss Edgeworth, Author of Practical Education, Belinda, &c. On the supposition, or the chance, that any small number of our readers may not have taken the trouble to acquaint themselves with the distinguishing qualities of the productions of a writer, who has already contributed the amount of more than twenty volumes to the otherwise scanty stock of our literature, — and, if we may judge from the short interval between the works in the latter part of the series, is likely at the very least, to double the number, — it may not be amiss to set down a very few ob- servations, suggested chiefly by the perusal of one portion of her performances, though it belongs by its form to a depart- ment over which we do not pretend any right of habitual cen- sorship. It is evident this writer has a much higher object than merely to amuse. Being very seriously of opinion that man- kind want mending, and that she is in possession of one of the most efficacious arts for such a purpose, she has set about the operation in good earnest. But when any machine, material or moral, is wrong, there are a few very obvious prerequisites to the attempt to set it right. The person that undertakes it should know what the machine was designed for ; should per- ceive exactly what part of its present action is defective or mischievous ; should discern the cause of this disordered ef- fect ; and, for the choice of the implements and method of cor- rection, should have the certainty of the adept, instead of the guesses of the tampering experimenter, or the downright har- dihood of ignorant presumption. When the disordered subject to be operated on is a thing of no less importance than human nature, it should seem that these prerequisites are peculiarly indispensable ; and the existence ought to be inferrible from 266 EDGEWORTH S TALES. the operator's boldness, if we see him putting to the work so confident a hand as that of our author. A hand more confi- dent, apparently, has very seldom been applied to the business of moral correction ; and that business is prosecuted in a man- ner so little implying, on the part of our author, any acknow- ledgment that she is working on a subordinate ground, and according to the lowest class of the principles of moral disci- pline, — and therefore so little hinting even the existence of any more elevated and authoritative principles, — that she is placed within the cognizance of a much graver sort of criticism than would at first view appear applicable to a writer of tales. She virtually takes her rank among the teachers who profess to exhibit the comprehensive theory of duty and happiness. She would be considered as undertaking the treatment of what is the most serious and lamentable, as w^ell as what is most light and ridiculous, in human perversity ; and according to a method which at all events cannot be exceeded in soundness^ however it may prove in point of efiicacy. Now when we advert to the prerequisites for such an under- taking, we cannot repress the suspicion that our author is un- qualified for it. It is a grand point of incompetency if she is totally ignorant what the human race exists for. And there appears nothing in the present, or such other of her works as we have happened to look into, to prevent the surmise, that this question would completely baffle her. Reduce her to say what human creatures were made for, and there would be an end of her volubility. Whether our species were intended as an exhibition for the amusement of some superior, invisible, and malignant intelligences ; or were sent here to expiate the crimes of some pre-existent state ; or were made for the pur- pose, as some philosophers will have it and phrase it, of devel- oping the facilities of the earth, that is to say, managing its veg- etable produce, extracting the wealth of its mines, and the like ; or were merely a contrivance for giving to a certain number of atoms the privilege of being, for a few years, the constitu- ent particles of warm upright living figures ; — whether they are appointed to any future state of sentiment or rational ex- istence ; — whether, if so, it is to be one fixed state, or a series of transmigrations ; a higher or lower state than the present ; a state of retribution, or bearing no relation to moral qualities ; — whether there be any Supreme Power, that presides over the succession and condition of the race, and will see to their DEFECTIVE STANDARD OF MORALS. 267 ultimate destination, — or, in short, whether there be any de- sign, contrivance, or intelligent destination in the whole aflair, or the tact be not rather, that the species, with all its present circumstances, and whatever is to become of it hereafter, is the production and sport of chance, — all these questions are probably undecided in the mind of our ingenious moralist. And how can she be qualified to conduct the discipline of a kind of beings of the nature and relations of which she is so profoundly ignorant ? If it were not a serious thing on account of its presumption, would it not be an incomparably ludicrous one on account of its absurdity, that a popular instructor should be most busily enforcing a set of principles of action — not as confessedly superficial and occasional, and merely subservient to a specific purpose, but as fundamental and comprehensive — while that instructor does not know whether the creatures, whose characters are attempted to be formed on those princi- ples, are bound or not by the laws of a Supreme Governor, nor whether they are to be affected by the right or wrong of moral principles for only a few times twelve months, or to all eterni- ty ? — Here an admirer of Miss Edge worth's moral philosophy might be expected to say, " But why may not our professor be allowed to set these considerations out of the question ; since many things in the theory of morals are very clear and very im- portant independently of them ? Integrity, prudence, industry, generosity, and good manners, can be shown to be vitally con- nected with our immediate interests, and powerfully enforced on that ground, whether there be or be not a Supreme Gov- ernor and Judge, and a future life ; and why may not our in- structor hold this ground, exempt from the interference of the- ology ] What we see we know : we can actually survey the whole scope of what you call the presejit life of human crea- tures, and can discern how its happiness is afl'ected by the vir- tues and vices which our professor so forcibly illustrates : and why may it not be a very useful employment to teach the art of happiness thus fa?; whatever may ultimately be found to be the truth or error of the speculations on invisible beings and future existences ?" To this the obvious reply would be, first — in terms of identi- cal import with those we have already used — that the ingenious preceptress does not give her pupils the slightest word of warn- ing, that it is possible their moral interests may be of an extent infinitely beyond anything she takes into account : that if the 268 edgeworth's tales. case is so, her philosophy, however useful to a certain length, in a particular way, cannot but be infinitely inadequate as a disciplinary provision for their entire interests ; and that, there- fore, in consideration of such a possibility, it is their serious duty to inquire hoAV much more it may be indispensable to learn, than she ever professes to teach them. She does not tell them, and would deem it excessively officious and fanati- cal in any one that should do it for her, that if there be any truth — nay, if there be the bare 'possihility of truth — in what religionists believe and teach — a philosopher like her cannot be admitted as competent to contribute to the happiness of mankind, in a much higher capacity than the persons that make clothes and furnish houses. She may not, in so many words, assert it would be idle or delusive to think of proposing any superior and more remotely prospective system of moral principles : but all appearances are carefully kept up to the point of implying as much ; and we apprehend she would be diverted, or would be fretted, just as the mood of her mind hap- pened at the moment to be, to hear a sensible person, after reading her volumes, say, — " very just, very instructive, on a narrow and vulgar ground of moral calculation ; it is well fit- ted to make me a reputable sort of a man, and not altogether useless, during a few changes of the moon : if I were sure of ending after a few of those changes, in nothing but a clod, I do not know that I should want anything beyond the lessons of this philosopher's school : but while I believe there is even a chance of a higher destiny, it is an obvious dictate of com- mon sense, that it cannot be safe, and that it would be degrad- ing, to attempt to satisfy myself with a little low scheme of morality, adapted to nothing in existence beyond the mere con- venience of some score or two of years, more or less." Our frst censure is, then, that, setting up for a moral guide, our au- thor does not pointedly state to her followers, that as it is but a very short stage she can pretend to conduct them, they had need — if they suspect they shall be obliged to go further — ^to be looking out, even in the very beginning of this short stage in which she accompanies them, for other guides to undertake for their safety in the remoter region. She presents herself with the air and tone of a person ^vho would sneer or spurn at the apprehensive insinuated inquiry, whether any change or addition of guides might eventually become necessary. But, secondly, our author's moral system — on the hypothe- DEFECTIVE STANDARD OF MORALS. 269 sis of the truth, or possible truth, of revelation — is not only infinitely deticient, as being calculated to subserve the inter- ests of the human creatures only to so very short a distance, while yet it carefully keeps out of sight all that may be be- yond ; it is also — still on the same hypothesis — perniciously erroneous as far as it goes. For it teaches virtue on princi- ples on which virtue itself will not be approved by the Su- preme Governor ; and it avowedly encourages some disposi- tions, and directly or by implication tolerates others, which in the judgment of that Governor are absolutely vicious. As to the unsound quality of the virtue here taught, it would be quite enough to observe, that it bears no reference whatever to the M'ill and laws of a superior Being. It is careless, whether there is such a Being, — whether, if there be, men are accountable to him, or not, — whether he has appointed laws, — whether he can enforce them, — whether he can punish the refusal to obey them. In short, it is a virtue that would not he j)ractised for his sale ; which is to be practised solely under the influence of other considerations ; and which would be, at the dictate of those considerations, varied to any ex- tent from any standard alleged to bear his authority. It is really superfluous to say that, on the religious hypothesis, such a virtue is utterly spurious, and partakes radically of the worst principles of vice. It is, besides, unstable in all its laws, as being founded on a combination of principles unde- fined, arbitrary, capricious, and sometimes incompatible. — Pride, honour, generous impulse, calculation of temporal ad- vantage and custom of the country, are convened along with we know not how many other grave authorities, as the com- ponents of Miss Edgeworth's moral government — the Am- phictyons of her legislative assembly. These authorities be- ing themselves subject, singly or collectively, to no one par- amount authority, may vary Avithout end in their compromise with one another, and in their enactment of laAvs ; so that by the time JMiss Edgeworth comes to write her last volume in the concluding year of her life, she may chance to find it necessary — in maintaining a faithful adherence to them through all their caprices — to give the name of virtues to sundry things she now calls vices, and vice versa. There can be no decisive casuistry on the ground of such a system ; and it would be easy to imagine situations in which the ques- tion of duty would, even under the present state of that 270 edgeworth's tales. moral legislation which she enjoins us to revere, put her to as complete a nonplus as the question, " What was man made for]" — She is, however, dexterous enough, in general, to avoid such situations. It must be acknowledged, too, that perhaps the greater part of the moral practice which she sanctions, is, taken merely as practice, disconnected from all consideration of motives and opinions, substantially the same that the soundest moralist must inculcate, — unless his lectures could be allowed to be silent on the topics of justice in the transactions of business, the advantages of cultivating a habit of general kindness and liberality, exertions for amending the condition of the poor, patient iirmness in the prosecution of good designs, with various other things of a character equally unequivocal. But there are some parts of her prac- tical exhibitions unmarked with any note of disapprobation, where a Christian moralist would apply the most decided cen- sure. She shows, for instance, a very great degree of toler- ance for the dissipation of the wealthy classes, if it only stop short of utter frivolity or profligacy, and of ruinous expense. All the virtue she demands of them may easily comport with a prodigious quantity of fashion, and folly, and splendour, and profuseness. They may be allowed to whirl in amusements till they are dead sick, and then have recourse to a little sober useful goodness to recover themselves. They are in- deed advised to cultivate their minds ; but, as it should seem, for the purpose, mainly, of giving dignity to their rank, and zest and sparkle to the conversations of their idle and elegant parties. They are recommended to become the promoters of useful schemes in their neighbourhoods, and the patrons of the poor ; but it does not appear that this philanthropy is required to be carried the length of costing any serious per- centage on their incomes. The grand and ultimate object of all the intellectual and moral exertions to which our author is trying to coax and prompt them, is, confessedly, — self-com- placency ; and it is evident that, while surrounded incessantly with frivolous and selfish society to compare themselves with, they may assume this self-complacency on the strength of very middling attainments in wisdom and beneficence. Another gross fault (on the supposition, still, that religion may chance to be more than an idle fancy) is our author's toler- ance of profaneness. As to some of the instances of Avhat every pious man would regard as profane expressions, either DEFECTIVE STANDARD OF MORALS. 271 absolutely or by the connexion in which they are put, she will say, perhaps, that they are introduced merely as a lan- guage appropriate to the characters ; and that those charac- ters were never meant for patterns of excellence. This plea is of little validity for any narrator but the historian of real facts, who has but a partial option as to what he shall relate. In a merely literary court, indeed, it might go some length in defence of a fictitious writer ; but let religion be introduced among the judges in such a court, and the decision would be, that minute truth of fictitious representation involves no moral benefit adequate to compensate the mischief of familiarizing the reader's mind to language which associates the most solemn ideas with the most trifling or detestable. But this happens, in the present instance, to be a needless argument ; for the broadest and vilest piece of profaneness comes out in one of what are intended as the finest moments, of one of what are intended as the finest characters, in all these volumes. The character, — a spirited, generous, clever fellow, evidently a high favourite of our author, — is young Beaumont, in the tale entitled " 3IancBuvringj^^ in the third volume ; the moment is when he is exulting (p. 78) at the news of a great naval victory, in which his most esteemed friend is supposed to have had a share. We will only add, in order to get to the end of this homily of criticism, that our author's estimate of the evil of vice in general, excepting such vices as are glaringly marked with meanness or cruelty, appears to be exceedingly light in com- parison with that which is taught in the school of revelation. And, consistently with this, the sentiments of penitential grief which she attributes to one of her principal characters. Lord Glenthorn, whom she reforms from a very great degree of profligacy, are wonderfully superficial and transient : nay, he is even made, in the commencement of his reformation, to reckon up the virtues of his past worthless and vicious life, with a self-complacency which far over-balanced his self- reproaches. And indeed those self-reproaches, when they were felt, had but extremely little of the quality of what, in Christian language, is meant by repentance : they are made to have expressed themselves much more in the manner of mortified pride. And this, again, is in perfect consistency with the motives to virtue on which the chief reliance appears to be placed throughout these volumes : for the most powerful 272 EDGEWORTn's TALES. of those motives is pride. To mancEuvre this passion in every mode which ingenuity can suggest ; to ply it with every va- riety of stimuhis, and contrive that at each step of vice some- thing shall happen to mortify it, — ^if possible, according to the regular and natural course of cause and effect, if not, by some extraordinary occurrence, taking place at the will of the writer, — and that each step of virtue shall be attended by some circumstance signally gratifying to it, — this is the grand moral machinery of our moralist and reformer. And indeed Avhat else could she do, or what better, after she had resolved that no part of her apparatus should be put in action by " the powers of the world to come ]" For as to that intrinsic beauty of virtue which philosophers have pretended to descry and adore, this philosopher knew right well how likely it was that such a vision should disclose itself, with all its mystical fas- cinations, to the frequenters of ball-rooms and card-tables, of galas and operas, of gambling-houses and brothels. Thus denied, by the quality of the subjects she has to w^ork upon, the assistance of all that has been boasted by sages as the most refined and elevated in philosophy, — and by the limits of her creed, probably, as well as the disposition of her taste, the assistance of those principles professing to come from heaven, and which, whencesoever they have come, have formed the best and sublimest human characters that ever appeared on earth, — our moralist would be an object of much commiseration, if she did not manifest the most entire self-complacency. Yet it is but justice to say, that she does not attribute any miraculous power to those sordid moral prin- ciples, on the sole operation of which she is content to rest her hopes of human improvement. For on Lord Glenthorn, the hero of the longest and most interesting of these tales, she represents this operation as totally inefficacious till aided by the discovery that he is no Lord ; having been substituted in his infoncy for the true infant peer by Ellinor O'Donoghoe, the inhabitant of a dirty mud cabin, his mother, and that peer's nurse. And the subject w^hich is thus made to illustrate the inefficacy is, notwithstanding, represented as naturally endowed with very favourable dispositions and very good tal- ents. In the stories of " Almeria " and " Manceuvring,^^ the utmost powers of the reforming discipline are honestly re- presented as fairly baffled, from beginning to end, the cul- prits adhering to their faults and follies with inviolable jfidelity, 273 -—leaving our moral legislator no means of vindicating the merits of her system, but to show that the pride, and other inglorious principles, by the operation of which a reform of conduct was to have been effected, if they cannot amend the subjects of her discipline, can at least make them wretched. And so she leaves them, with as much indifference appar- ently as that with which a veteran sexton comes away from filling up the grave of one of his neighbours. She does not even, as far as appears, wish to turn them over to methodism, notwithstanding that this has the repute of sometimes working very strange transformations, and might as well have been mentioned as a last expedient worth the trying, in some of those obstinate desperate cases in which all the preparations from the great laboratory at Edgeworthstown, have been em- ployed in vain. Perhaps, however, our author would think such a remedy, even in its utmost success, worse than the disease. Yet it would be a little curious to observe what she really woiiJd think and say at witnessing an instance in which a person, who had long pursued a foolish or profligate course in easy defiance of all such correctives as constitute her boasted discipline, being, at length, powerfully arrested by the thought of a judgment to come, — should forswear, at once, all his inveterate trifling or deeper immoralities, and adopt, and prosecute to his last hour, and with the highest delight, a far more arduous plan of virtue than any that she has dared to recommend or delineate. There have been very many such instances ; and it would be extremely amusing — if some ideas too serious for amusement were not involved — on citing to her some induljitable example of this kind, to compel her to answer the plain question, — " Is this a good thing — ^yea or no ?" It was almost solely for the purpose of making a few re- marks on the moral tendency of our author's voluminous pro- ductions, that we have noticed the work of which we have transcribed the title ; and we need say very few words re- specting the other qualities of her books. For predominant good sense, knowledge of the world, discrimination of cha- racter, truth in the delineation of manners, and spirited dia- logue, it is hardly possible to praise them too much. Most of her characters are formed from the most genuine and ordinary materials of human nature, — with very little admixture of any thing derived from heaven, or the garden of Eden, or the mag- S74 EDGEWORTH S TALES. nificent part of the regions of poetry. There is rarely any thing to awaken for one moment the enthusiasm of an aspir- ing spirit, delighted to contemplate, and ardent to resemble, a model of ideal excellence. Indeed, a higher order of charac- ters would in a great measure have precluded an exercise of her talents in which she evidently delights, and in which she very highly excels — that is, the analyzing of the mixed motives by which persons are often governed, while they are giving themselves credit for being actuated by one simple and per- fectly laudable motive : the detecting of all the artifices of dis- simulation, and the illustration of all the modes in which sellishness pervades human society. Scarcely has Swift him- self evinced a keener scent in pursuit of this sort of game ; a sort of game which, we readily acknowledge it is, with cer- tain benevolent limitations, very fair and useiul to hunt. And we must acknowledge too, that our author, while passing shrewd, is by no means cynical. She is very expert at con- triving situations for bringing out all the qualities of her per- sonages, for contrasting those personages with one another, for creating excellent amusement by their mutual reaction, and for rewarding or punishing their merits or faults. She ap- pears intimately acquainted with the prevailing notions, pre- judices, and habits, of the different ranks and classes of society. She can imitate, very satirically, the peculiar diction and slang of each ; and has contrived, but indeed it needed very little contrivance, to make the fashionable dialect of the upper ranks sound exceedingly silly. As far as she has had opportunities for observation, she has caught a very discrimi- native idea of national characters : that of the Irish is delin- eated with incomparable accuracy and spirit. It may be added, that our author, possessing a great deal of general knowledge, finds many lucky opportunities for producing it, in short arguments and happy allusions. LIFE OF BLAIR. 275 XII. HUGHBLAIR. An Account of the Life and Writings of Hitgh Blair, D.D,, F.R.S.E., one of the Ministers of the High Churchy and Professor of Rhetoric and Belles Lettres in the University of Edinburgh. By John Hill, LL.D., F.R.S.E., Profes- sor of Humanity in the University. There appears to be some cause for apprehension, lest the extravagant admiration once lavished on Dr. Blair should de- cline, by degrees, into a neglect that will withhold even com- mon justice. No productions so celebrated at first, as his ser- mons, have perhaps ever come in so short a time to be so nearly forgotten. Even before the conclusion of the series, the public enthusiasm and avidity had begun to languish, and the last volume seemed only announced in order to attend the funeral of its predecessors. The once delighted readers ex- cused the change of their taste by pretending, and perhaps believing, that a great disparity was observable betw^een the two prior volumes and those M^hich followed them. The alleged inferiority might possibly exist in a certain degree ; but the altered feeling Avas in a much greater degree owing to the recovery of sober sense, from the temporary inebria- tion of novelty and fashion ; and the recovery was accompa- nied by a measure of that mortification, which seeks to be con- soled by prompting a man to revenge himself on what has be- trayed him into the folly. As a critical writer, however. Dr. Blair has suffered much less from the lapse of years. His lectures have found their place and established their character among a highly respect- able rank of books, and will always be esteemed valuable as an exercise of correct taste, and an accumulation of good sense, on the various branches of the art of speaking and writing. It was not absolutely necessary they should bear the 276 LIFE OF BLAIR. marks of genius, it was not indispensable that they should be richly ornamented ; but yet we can by no means agree with this biographer, that ornament would have been out of place, and that the dry style which prevails throughout the lectures is the perfection of excellence in writings on criticism. It has been often enough repeated, that such a bare thin style is the proper one for scientitic disquisitions, of which the object is pure truth, and the instrument pure intellect : but, in general criticism, so much is to be done through the interven- tion of taste and imagination, that these faculties have a very great right to receive some tribute, of their own proper kind, from a writer who wishes to establish himself in their peculiar province. And the writings of Dryden, Addison, and John- son, will amply show what graces may be imparted to critical subjects by a tine imagination, without in the least preventing or perplexing the due exercise of the reader's understanding. We are not so absurd as to reproach Dr. Blair for not having a fine imagination ; but we must censure his panegyrist for attempting to turn this want into a merit. Philosophical crit- icism, indeed, like that of Lord Karnes and Dr. Campbell, which attempts to discover the abstract principles, rather than to illustrate the specific rules, of excellence in the fine arts, — and between the object of which, and of Dr. Blair's criticism, there is nearly the same difference as between the office of an anatomist who dissects, or a chemist who decomposes beautiful forms, and an artist who looks at and delineates them, — may do well to adhere to a plainer language ; b\it the biographer has judiciously withdrawn all claims, in behalf of Dr. Blair, to the character of a philosophical critic. He has acknowledged and even exposed the slightness of the Profes- sor's observations on the formation of language. He has not, however, said one word of the irreligious inconsistency and folly of professing a zealous adherence to revelation, and at the same time, labouring to deduce the very existence of lan- guage, in a very slow progress, from inarticulate noises, the grand original element of speech, as it seems, among the primeval gentlefolk, at the time when they went on all-four, and grubbed up roots, and picked up acorns. Our readers will remember the happy ridicule of a part of this theory, in one of Cowper's letters, in which he humorously teaches one of these clever savages to make the sentence, " Oh, give me apple." They may find the system ably and argumentatively CHARACTERISTICS OF HIS SERMOXS. 277 exploded in Rousseau's " Discourse on the Inequality of Man- kind." While this part of the lectures is given up to deserved neglect, we think the ^vork will, on the whole, always main- tain its character, as a comprehensive body of sensible criti- cism, and of very valuable directions in the art of writing. We agree with this biographer, in admiring especially the lec- tures on the subject of style. But it is rather on the unrivalled excellence of the Sermons that Dr. Hill seems inclined to found the assurance of Dr. Blair's celebrity in future times. In order to persuade our- selves into the same opinion, we have been reading some of the most noted of those performances. And they possess some obvious merits, of which no reader can be insensible. The first is, perhaps, that they are not too long. It is not im- pertinent to specify the first, because we can put it to the con- sciences of our readers, whether, in opening a volume of ser- mons, their first point of inspection relative to any one which they are inclined to choose for its text or title, is not to ascer- tain the length. The next recommendation of the Doctor's sermons, is a very suitable, though scarcely ever striking, in- troduction, which leads directly to the business, and opens into a very plain and lucid distribution of the subject. Another is a correct and perspicuous language ; and it is to be added, that the ideas are almost always strictly pertinent to the sub- ject. This, however, forms but a very small part of the ap- plause which was bestowed on these sermons during the transient day of their fame. They were then considered by many as examples of true eloquence ; a distinction never per- haps attributed, in any other instance, to performances marked by such palpable deficiencies and faults. In the first place, with respect to the language, though the selection of words is proper enough, the arrangement of them in the sentence is often in the utmost degree stiff and artifi- cial. It is hardly possible to depart further from any resem- blance to what is called a living, or spoken style, which is the proper diction at all events for popular addresses, if not for all the departments of prose composition. Instead of the thought throwing itself into words, by a free, instantaneous, and almost unconscious action, and passing off in that easy form, it is pretty apparent there was a good deal of handicraft em- ployed in getting ready proper cases and trusses, of various but carefully measured lengths and figures, to put the thoughts 13 278 LIFE OF BLAIK. into, as they came out, in very slow succession, each of them cooled and stiffened to numbness in waiting so long to be dressed. Take, for example, such sentences as these : " Great has been the corruption of the world in every age. Sufficient ground there is for the complaints made by serious observers, at all times, of abounding iniquity and folly." " For rarely, or never, is old age contemned, unless when, by vice or folly, it renders itself contemptible." " Vain, nay often dangerous, were youthful enterprises, if not conducted by aged prudence." " If, dead to these calls, you already languish in slothful inaction," &c. " Smiling very often is the aspect, and smooth are the words of those who inwardly are the most ready to think evil of others." " Exempt, on the one hand, from the dark jealousy of a suspicious mind, it is no less removed, on the other, from that easy credulity which," &c. "Formidable, I admit, this may justly render it to them who have no inward fund," &c. " Though such em- ployments of fancy come not under the same description with those which are plainly criminal, yet wholly unblameable they seldom are." " With less external majesty it was attended, but is, on that account, the more wonderful, that under an ap- pearance so simple, such great events were covered." There is also a perpetual recurrence of a form of the sen- tence, which might be occasionally graceful, or tolerable, when very sparingly adopted, but is extremely unpleasing when it comes often ; we mean that construction in which the qualhy or condition of the agent or subject is expressed first, and the agent or subject itself is put to bring up the latter clause. For instance, " Pampered by continual indulgence, all our pas- sions will become mutinous and headstrong." " Practised in the ways of men, they are apt to be suspicious of design and fraud," &c, "Injured or oppressed by the world, he looks up to a judge who will vindicate his cause." In the second place, there is no texture in the composition. The sentences appear often like a series of little independent propositions, each satisfied with its own distinct meaning, and capable of being placed in a different part of the train, without injury to any mutual connexion, or ultimate purpose, of the thoughts. The ideas r'elate to the subject generally, Avithout specifically relating to one another. They all, if we may so speak, gravitate to one centre, but have no mutual attraction among themselves. The mind must often dismiss CHARACTERISTICS OF HIS SER3iONS. 279 entirehj the idea in one sentence, in order to proceed to that in the next ; instead of feeling that the second, though dis- tinct, yet necessarily retains the first still in mind, and partly derives its force from it ; and that they both contribute, in connexion with several more sentences, to form a grand com- plex scheme of thought, each of them producing a tar greater effect, as a part of the combination, than it would have done as a little thought standing alone. The consequence of this defect is, that the emphasis of the sentiment and the crisis or conclusion of the argument comes nowhere ; since it cannot be in any single insulated thought, and there is not mutual dependence and co-operation enough to produce any com- bined result. Nothing is proved, nothing is enforced, nothing is taught, by a mere accumulation of self-evident propositions, most of which are necessarily trite, and some of which, when they are so many, must be trivial. With a few exceptions, this appears to us to be the character of these sermons. The sermon, perhaps, most deserving to be excepted, is that " On the Importance of Religious Knowledge to Mankind," which exhibits a respectable degree of concatenation of thought, and deduction of argument. It would seem as if Dr. Blair had been a little aware of this defect, as there is an occa- sional appearance of remedial contrivance ; he has some- times inserted the logical signs ^br and since, when the con- nexion or dependence is really so very slight or unimportant that they might nearly as well be left out. If, in the next place, we were to remark on the figures in- troduced in the course of these sermons, we presume we should have every reader's concurrence that they are, for the most part, singularly trite ; so much so, that the volumes might be taken, more properly than any other modern book that we know, as comprising the whole common-places of imagery. A considerable portion of the produce of imagina- tion was deemed an indispensable ingredient of eloquence, and the quota was therefore to be had in any way and of any kind. But the guilt of plagiarism was effectually avoided, by taking a portion of what society had long agreed to consider as made common and free to all. When occasionally there occurs a simile or metaphor of the writer's own production, it is adjusted with an artificial nicety, bearing a little resem- blance to the labour and finish we sometimes see bestowed on the tricking out of an only child. It should, at the same 280 LIFE OF BLAIE. time, be allowed, that the consistency of the figures, whether common or unusual, is in general accurately preserved. The reader will be taught, however, not to reckon on this as a certainty. We have just opened on the following sentence : " Death is the gate which, at the same time that it closes on this world, opens into eternity." (Sermon on Death.) We cannot comprehend the construction and movement of such a gate, unless it is like that which we sometimes see in place of a stile, playing loose in a space between two posts ; and we can hardly think so humble an object could be in the author's mind, while thinking of the passage to another world. With respect to the general power of thinking displayed in these sermons, we apprehend that discerning readers are coming fast toward a uniformity of opinion. They will all cheerfully agree that the author carries good sense along with him, wherever he goes ; that he keeps his subjects distinct ; that he never wanders from the one in hand ; that he presents concisely very many important lessons of sound morality ; and that in doing this he displays an uncommon knowledge of the more obvious qualities of human nature. He is never trifling nor fantastic ; every page is sober, and pertinent to the subject ; and resolute labour has prevented him from ever falling in a mortifying degree below the level of his best style of performance. He is seldom below a respectable medi- ocrity, but, we are forced to admit, that he very rarely rises above it. After reading five or six sermons, we become as- sured that we most perfectly see the whole compass and reach of his powers, and that, if there were twenty volumes, we might read on through the whole, without ever coming to a bold conception, or a profound investigation, or a burst of genuine enthusiasm. There is not in the train of thought a succession of eminences and depressions, rising towards sub- limity, and descending into familiarity. There are no pecu- liarly striking short passages where the mind wishes to stop awhile, to indulge its delight, if it were not irresistibly car- ried forward by the rapidity of the thought. There are none of those happy reflections back on a thought just departing which seem to give it a second and a stronger significance, in addition to that which it had most obviously presented. Though the mind does not proceed with any eagerness to what is to come, it is seldom inclined to revert to what is gone CHARACTERISTICS OF HIS SERMONS. 281 by ; and any contrivance in the composition to tempt it to look back with lingering partiality to the receding ideas, is forborne by the writer ; quite judiciously, for the temptation would fail. A reflective reader will perceive his mind fixed in a won- derful sameness of feeling throughout a whole volume : it is hardly relieved a moment, by surprise, delight, or labour, and at length becomes very tiresome ; perhaps a little analogous to the sensations of a Hindoo while fulfilling his vow, to re- main in one certain posture for a month. A sedate formality of manner is invariably kept up through a thousand pages, without the smallest danger of ever luxuriating into a beauti- ful irregularity. We never find ourselves in the midst of any thing that reminds us of nature, except by that orderly stiff- ness which she forswears ; or of freedom, except by being compelled to go in the measured paces of a dull procession. If we manfully persist in reading on, we at length feel a tor- por invading our faculties, we become apprehensive that some w^izard is about turning us into stones, and we can break the spell only by shutting the book. Having shut the book, we feel that w^e have acquired no definable addition to our ideas ; we have little more than the consciousness of having passed along through a very regular series of sentences and unex- ceptionable propositions ; much in the same manner as, per- haps, at another hour of the same day, we have the con- sciousness or remembrance of having just passed along by a very regular painted palisade, no one bar of wdiich particu- larly fixed our attention, and the whole of which we shall soon forget that we have ever seen. The last fault that we shall allege, is some defect on the ground of religion ; not a deficiency of general seriousness, nor an infrequency of reference to the most solemn subjects, nor an omission of stating sometimes, in explicit terms, the leading principles of the theory of the Christian redemption. But we repeatedly find cause to complain that, in other parts of the sermon, he appears to forget these statements, and ad- vances propositions which, unless the reader shall combine with them modifications which the author has not suggested, must contradict the principles. On occasions, he clearly de- duces from the death and atonement of Christ the hopes of futurity, and consolations against the fear of death ; and then, at other times, he seems most cautious to avoid this grand 282 * LIFE OF BLAIE. topic, when adverting to the approach of death, and the feel- ings of that season ; and seems to rest all the consolations on the review of a virtuous life. We have sometimes to charge him also with a certain adulteration of the Christian moral principles, by the admixture of a portion of the worldly spirit. As a friend to Christianity, he wished her to be a little less harsh and peculiar than in her earlier days, and to show that she had not lived so long in the genteelest world in the crea- tion, without learning politeness. Especially it was neces- sary for her to exercise due complaisance when she attended him^ if she felt any concern about his reputation, as a com- panion of the fashionable, the sceptical, the learned, and the affluent, and a preacher to the most splendid congregation in the whole country. It would seem that she meekly took these delicate hints, and adopted a language Avhich no gentleman could be ashamed to repeat, or offended to hear. The ser- mons abound with specimens of this improved dialect, but we cannot be supposed to have room here for quotations ; we will only transcribe a single short sentence from the Sermon on Death : " Wherever religion, virtue, or true honour call him forth to danger, life ought to be hazarded without fear." Now what is the meaning of the word " honour," evidently here employed to denote something distinct from virtue, and there- fore not cognizable by the laws of morality ? Does the reverend orator mean, that to gain fame or glory, as it is called, or to avert the imputation or suspicion of cowardice, or to maintain some trivial punctilio of precedence or arrogant demand of pride, commonly called a point of honour, between individuals or nations, or to abet, as a matter of course, any cause rendered honourable by being adopted by the higher classes of mankind, — a Christian ought to hazard his life ? — Taken as the ground of the most awful duty to which a human being can be called, and yet thus distinguished from religion and morality, what the term means can be nothing good. The preacher did not, perhaps, exactly know what he intended it to mean ; but it was a term in high vogue, and therefore well adapted to be put along with religion and virtue to qualify their uncouthness. It was no mean proof of ad- dress to have made these two surly puritans accept their sparkish companion. If this passage were one among only a few specimens of a dubious language, it would be scandal- ous in us to quote it in this particular manner ; but as there CHARACTERISTICS OF HIS SERMONS. 283 are very many phrases cast after a similar model, we have a a right to cite it, as an instance of that tincture of the un- sound maxims of the world, which we have asserted to be often perceptible in these sermons. This might be all in its place in the sermons of the despicable Yorick ; but it is dis- gusting to hear a very grave divine blending, with Christian, exhortations, the loathsome slang of duelling lieutenants, of gamblers, of scoffers at religion, of consequential fools who believe their own reputation the most important thing on earth, and indeed that the earth has nothing else to attend to, and of men whose rant about perhaps the glory of dying for their country, is mixed with insults to the Almighty, and im- precations of perdition on their souls. This doubtful and accommodating quality was one of the chief causes, we apprehend, of the first extraordinary popu- larity of these sermons. A great many people of gayety, rank, and fashion, have occasionally a feeling that a little easy quantity of religion would be a good thing ; because it is too true, after all, that we cannot be staying in this world always, and when one goes out of it, why, there may be some hardish matters to settle in the other place. The prayer- book of a Sunday is a good deal to be sure toward making all safe, but then it is really so tiresome ; for penance it is very well, but to say one likes it, one cannot for the life of one. If there were some tolerable religious thing that one could read now and then without trouble, and think it about half as pleasant as a game of cards, it would be comfortable. One should not be so frightened about what we must all come to some time. — Now nothing could have been more to the purpose than these sermons ; they were welcomed as the very thing. They were unquestionably about religion, and grave enough in all conscience ; yet they were elegant ; they were so easy to comprehend throughout, that the mind was never detained a moment to think ; they were undefiled by methodisra ; they but little obtruded peculiar doctrinal no- tions ; they applied very much to high life, and the author was evidently a gentleman; the book could be discussed as a matter of taste, and its being seen in the parlour excited no surmise that any one in the house had been lately converted. Above all, it was most perfectly free from that disagreeable and mischievous property attributed to the eloquence of Peri- cles, that it " left stings behind." 284 LIFE OF BLAIR* With these recommendations, aided by the author's repu* tation as an elegant critic, and by his acquaintance with per- sons of the highest note, the book became fashionable ; it was circulated that Lord Mansfield had read some of the sermons to their Majesties ; peers and peeresses without number were cited, as having read and admired ; till at last it was almost a mark of vulgarity not to have read them, and many a lie was told to escape this imputation, by persons who had not yet en- joyed the advantage. Grave elderly ministers of much severer religious views than Dr. Blair, were, in sincere benevolence, glad that a work had appeared, which gave a chance for re- ligion to make itself heard among the dissipated and the great, to whom ordinary sermons, and less polished treatises of piety, could never find access. Dainty young sprigs of the- ology, together with divers hopeful young men and maidens, were rejoiced to find that Christian tnith could be attired in a much nicer garb than that in which it was exhibited in Bever- idge, or in the Morning Exercises at Cripplegate. If the huzzas attending the triumphal entry of these sermons had not been quite so loud, the present silence concerning them might not have appeared quite so profound. And if there had been a little more vigour in the thought, and any thing like nature and ease in the language, they might have emerged again into a respectable and permanent share of pub- lic esteem. But, as the case stands, we think they are gone or going irrevocably to the vault of the Capulets. Such a deficiency of ratiocination, combined with such a total want of original conception, is in any book incompatible with its staying long in the land of the living. And, as to the style, also, of these performances, there were not wanting, even in the hey-day and riot of their popularity, some doctors, cunning in such matters, who thought the dead monotony of the ex- pression symptomatic of a disease that must end fatally. We should apologize to our readers for having gone on thus far with our remarks, without coming to the work which has given the occasion for introducing them. This volume has disappointed our expectation of finding a particular account of the life of Dr. Blair, enlivened with anecdotes illustrative of his character. Nearly half of it is occupied not in criticizing, but actually in epitomizing, the Doctor's writings, a labour of which it is impossible to com- prehend the necessity or use, except to make up a handsome- CHARACTERISTICS OF HIS SERMONS. 285 looking volume. Several of the most noted of the sermons are individually dissected, in a tedious manner, and compared with several of the sermons on the same subjects, in the vol- umes of some of the celebrated French preachers, but with- out any critical remarks of consequence. The other half of the book does relate mainly to the man himself, but is Avrit- ten much more in the manner of a formal academical eulogy, than of any thing like a lively and simple memoir. It is not florid, but it is as set and artificial as the composition of Dr. Blair himself; and indeed seems a very good imitation, or, at least, resemblance. Except in the acknowledgment of one or two slight weaknesses, as we are taught to deem them, in the Doctor's character, it is a piece of laboured and unvaried pane- gyric, carried on from page to page, with a gravity which be- comes at length perfectly ludicrous. Hardly one circum- stance is told in the language of simple narrative ; every sentence is set to the task of applause. Even Dr. Blair him- self, whose vanity was extreme, would have been almost satisfied, if such an exhibition of his qualities and talents had been written in time to have been placed in his view. To avoid several pages of extracts, we must remark, that Dr. Blair was something of a beau, and very fond of novel reading. Every reader will be surprised and provoked to find so very small a share of personal history. It is well known that we are not in general to look for many incidents and ad- ventures in the life of a scholar and clergyman : but we should have supposed that a period of eighty-three years might have furnished more matters of fact, than what could be comprised in a quarter of that number of pages. Those which are here afforded, consist of little beside the notice and dates of the two or three more obscure preferments of Dr. Blair, on his road to what is descril)ed the summit of ecclesiastical success and honour, the High Church of Edinburgh ; his appointment as Professor of Belles Lettres ; his failure of being placed in the situation of Principal of the University of Edinburgh, M'hich he expected to receive from the pure gratitude and ad- miration of his country, without any solicitation ; and, the important circumstance of preaching his last sermon. This circumstance, will be henceforAvard inserted, Ave trust, Avith its precise date, in all chronicles of the memorable things of past times ; for it is enlarged on here, as if it had been one of the most momentous events of the century. He died De- 13* 286 LIFE OF BLAIR. cember 27th, 1800, in the eighty-third year of his age, and the fifty-ninth of his ministry. The Doctor's successful progress through life was on the whole adapted to gratify, one should think almost to satiety, that love of fame which his biographer declares, in so many words, to have been his ruling passion ; nor had the passion which. Dr. Hill does not say, was second in command, the love of money, any great cause to complain. We sincerely wish to persuade ourselves that, with all his labour of encomium, this Dr. Hill has done less than justice to his subject. For if we are to take his representation as ac- curate and complete, we have the melancholy spectacle of a preacher of religion, whose grand and uniform object in all his labours was advancement in the world. This is clearly the only view in which his admiring friend contemplates those labours. The preacher's success is constantly dwelt on with delight ; but this success always refers to himself, and his own worldly interests, not to any religious influence exerted on the minds of his inferior, and afterwards, his splendid, auditories. His evangelical office is regarded as merely a professional thing, in which it was his happiness to surpass his competi- tors, to attain the highest reputation, to be placed in a con- spicuous station, to obtain a comparative affluence, to be most sumptuously flattered by the great, and to be the intimate friend of Hume, Smith, Home, Ferguson, and Robertson, There is hardly a word that attributes to the admired preacher any concern about promoting the Christian cause, the king- dom of Christ, or the conversion of wicked men, — in short, any one of those sublime objects for which alone the first magnanimous promulgators of Christianity preached, and laboured, and suflered. It is easy to see that, though Dr. Blair's reputed eloquence had been made the means of im- parting the light, and sanctity, and felicity, of religion, to ten thousand poor wicked peasants, yet if he had not sought and acquired high distinction in polished society, his learned biographer would have been utterly disinclined to celebrate him, as deeming him either a grovelling spirit, incapable of aiming at a high object, or the victim of malignant stars that forbade him to attain it. We could make plenty of citations to acquit ourselves of injustice in this representation : there arc many passages of a quality similar to the following : — *' Hie Lordsliip," (Chief Baron Orde,) " in hie official capacity, was a CHARACTERISTICS OF HIS SERMONS. 287 regular hearer of the Doctor's sermons, while his court sat, and there was no one better qualified to judge of the preacher's merit. This merit, too, was never more conspicuous than when it was honoured with the appro- bation of the venerable Judge. Dr. Blair's literary reputation was there thoroughly established. And the unwearied labour he underwent in his closet, while composing his sermons, was repaid by the admhation of a discerning audience." — P. 187. The Doctor is commonly reputed to have had a tolerably sufficient attachment to pelf. He might have higher motives for clinging so fast to the patronage of Lord Melville, but it is irksome to hear of his being " so much indebted to that pa- tron's munificence," with the addition of the fulsome cant that, " every favour which he received (from this patron) was multa dantis cum laude, and did honour to the hand that be- stowed it. This patron is presumed to have been at the bot- tom of the pension of £200 granted from the public treasury. In reading so many things a-bout patronage, and munifi- cence, and protection, and advancement, and success, it can- not fail to occur to any reader of sense to ask, with a senti- ment very indignant in one reference, or very compassionate in the other — If all this was necessary to Dr. Blair, with a very small family, and with all the internal means attributed to him of advancing his interests, what is to become of ever so many hundred hapless clergymen, in Scotland and else- where, who have large families, slender livings, and no General Frazers, Chief Barons, and Lord Melvilles to " pro- tect " them, no means of getting into the High Church of Ed- inburgh, no chance of attracting the notice of Royalty, and a pension of £200, and no hope of collecting tribute by means of a literary reputation "extending beyond the bounds of the British empire ?" 288 RITCHIE S LIFE OF HUME. XIIL DAVID HUME Account of the Life and Writings of David Hume, Esq. By Thomas Edwakd Ritchie. This is by no means so ample a memoir as the number of pages would seem to indicate. The last eighty pages are occupied with Hume's publication in French, relative to the affair Avith Rousseau ; a translation of this pamphlet is in- serted in the narrative, accompanied by several additional let- ters on the same business, and engrossing more than a hun- dred pages ; and about one hundred and thirty pages are filled with criticism on Hume's writings, eight pages that were printed in the first edition of his " Essays," but in the later ones omitted by the author, and a critique on Wilkie's " Epi- goniad," sent by Hume to the " Critical Review." Much less than half the book, therefore, is occupied with what is strictly biographical, even if we include a considerable num- ber of his letters to some of his distinguished friends, espe- cially Dr. Robertson. In so much of the volume as we owe to the pen of Mr. Ritchie, we do not find occasion for any great measure of either praise or blame. It is written with per- spicuity, in a style not clumsy, but not remarkable for ele- gance. The detail of the iew events of Hume's life would be sufficiently orderly, if there appeared less eagerness to seize and dilate every circumstance that can be introduced as an episode. A character of sense and independence is visible throughout ; and the present is one of the very few biogra- phers who are free from the weakness of enthusiastically ad- miring, or the h} pocrisy of affecting so to admire, the mixed and imperfect subject of their pages. If he could have brought himself to the obsequiousness of promising to laud his subject up to the pitch of eulogy which would have gratified the deli- cate cars of Hume's living relations, he might have been ena- RITCHIE S LIFE OF HUME. 289 bled to supply a great deficiency of information respecting the early years and habits of the philosopher ; but we are com- pelled to approve the independent conduct described in the note at page 4. ♦* In the hope of being enabled to fill up any chasm in this narrative, I applied to a near relation of Mr. Hume, and was told, that if the work was to advance his fame, and a copy of the manuscript furnished to the family, the information wanted would, perhaps, be supplied. With such condi- tions I refused compliance, choosing rather to remain satisfied with the little I had otherwise obtained, than to fetter my sentiments, and subject myself to so laborious a task, in return for what was probably of little im- portance." In the narrative part, great use is necessarily made of Hume's own memoir, called " My Own Life," with the addi- tion of Dr. Smith's details of the circumstances which preced- ed the exit. This is followed by a general estimate of Hume, as a metaphysician, a moralist, a writer on general policy, and a historian. It is a brief review of all his writings, and evinces a good share of acuteness and knowledge. The last eighteen pages of this review are filled with a curious collec- tion of sentences from the " History of England," as they stand corrected in the later editions, compared with the same sentences of the first edition, which are placed in an opposite column, with here and there a suggestion from Mr. Ritchie of still further corrections, wanted in some of these sentences. It would not seem that Mr. Hume's composition can pretend to high merit on the ground of correctness. It is not the biographer's fault that Hume's life furnishes but a singularly meagre and uninteresting detail. It is cu- rious to think how many thousands of his contemporaries whose names are forgotten, would have supplied each a far more animated and entertaining narrative. The story of ma- ny a common soldier or sailor, many a highwayman, many a gipsy, many a deserted child, and many a beggar, would have kept awake the attention which is much inclined to slumber over an account of this celebrated philosopher. — He was born at Edinburgh in ITll. There was some undefined quantity of nobility in the blood of his ancestors on both sides, and therefore we suppose in his own, of which he is said to have been always extremely vain. We are told, "the juvenile years of Hume were not marked by any thing which can at- tract our notice. His father died while our historian was an 2 90 infant, and left the care of him, his elder brother Joseph, and sister Catharine, to their mother, who, although in the bloom of life, devoted herself to the education of her children with laudable assiduity." He went to school and to college, was designed by his friends for the law, but was often guilty of sli- ly stealing from the lectures of his venerable tutors, Voet and Vinnius, into the much more dashing company of Cicero and Virgil. These gentlemen had certainly taken care to make their own fortunes, in their day ; but their harangues and hexameters were of so little service to that of their admirer, which had no broader basis than the patrimony of a Scottish younger brother, that he determined to enter on some com- mercial pursuit. He therefore left the citizens of Rome, and went to try his skill among those of Bristol ; but finding him- self after a few months, totally unequal to the bustle incident to a mercantile situation, he abandoned the attempt, and went to France. Thence he returned to London in 1737, and, in the following year, published his " Treatise of Human Na- ture." Under the profession of shoAving what qualifications are re- quisite for the satisfactory performance of such a work as this pretends to be, Mr. Ritchie has given a sketch of the history of philosophy, or rather a catalogue of philosophers, from Pla- to to Hume. But we do not exactly comprehend the design oi this, unless he means to be understood, that to be able to in- dite a philosophical treatise on human nature, the writer must have studied all that has ever been written, by all the philo- sophers of ancient and modern times. We could certainly wish that Hume had deemed this an indispensable prerequi- site to the privilege of writing and vending his own sceptical cogitations ; but it is too evident that none of the infidel phi- losophers have ever had the conscience to acknowledge the obligation of this preliminary duty. This enumeration of dis- tinguished names ends with a real curiosity, a list of about a sixth part, as the author believes, of " the commentators and scholiasts on Aristotle's philosophical works," which accumu- lates the titles of books containing, in all, a quanity of writing which would have amounted to several hundred quarto vo- lumes. It is well known, from Hume's own acknowledgment, that ihis his first performance was utterly neglected by the public. In making the acknowledgment, he praises the equanimity RITCHIE S LIFE OF HUME. 291 which he maintained on the occasion, and the facility with which his cheerful and sanguine temper returned to the habit of animation and hope. Mr. Ritchie has in his text consented to say the same thing, but has subjoined a note which gives an- other representation of the philosopher's patience and tranquil- lity. *' In the « London Review,' Vol. V. p. 280, (anno 1777,) edited by Dr. Kenrick, there is a note on this passage in our author's biograpliical nar- rative, rather inimical to the amenity of disposition claimed by him. The reviewer says, — ' so sanguine, that it does not appear our author had ac- quired, at tliis period of his life, that command over his passions of which he afterwards makes his boast. His disappointment at the public recep- tion of his ' Essay on Human Nature,' had indeed a violent effect on his passions in a particular instance; it not having dropped so dead.horn from the press, but that it was severely handled by the reviewers of those times, in a publication entitled. The Works of the Learned ; a circumstance which so highly provoked our young philosopher, that he flew in a violent rage to demand satisfaction of Jacob Robinson, the publisher, whom he kept, during the paroxysm of his anger at the sword's point, trembling be- hind the counter, lest a period should be put to the life of a sober critic, by a raving philosopher.' " The repugnance of mankind to receive instruction should not deter an enlightened and benevolent man who may have failed in the first effort, from soliciting their attention again, and holding up salutary truths afresh to their view. Mr. Hume displayed in a high degree this generous perseverance. Having endeavoured to explain to an ungrateful and indocile nation, that there is a wonderflil difference between impres- sions and ideas ; that there is no such connexion between causes and effects, as to support any argument in defence of religion or for the being of a God ; that no man can admit the truth of the Christian religion but by a miracle taking place in his mind at every moment ; that the Deity, if there be any such thing, is just so great as his actual visible works indicate, and no greater ; together with various other precious and pi- ous doctrines ; it had been a desertion of the great cause of truth and utility to have let these discoveries sink in silence, merely because the public had paid but little attention to them on their first or second promulgation. They might be receiv- ed again with the same indifference ; but whether men would hear or whether they would forbear, the philosopher was re- solved the truth should be testified to them once more. After a few years, the substance of the " Treatise on Human Na- 292 tiire " was new-modelled and republished, with greater matu- rity of reasoning, in his " Inquiry concerning the Human Un- derstanding," and his " Inquiry concerning the Principles of Morals." These works, however, experienced the same neg- lect as the first. The grief of the disinterested reformer of the judgments and morals of men may well be imagined to have been extreme, at this repeated proof of their perverse- ness and hardness of heart ; a grief so purely benevolent, that it could be but imperfectly consoled by the reflection, that he had at least performed his own part, and acquitted himself of all the guilt. In regard to such a case, one is anxious to be- lieve, if one could, that really virtue is its own reward. If it be not so, there could be few spectacles more pitiable than that of a philosophical philanthropist, like Mr. Hume, toiling without any success as to the immediate object, and without any hope of a life after death to reward him amidst a happy rest from his labours. His generous distress was not, however, doomed to be altogether without mitigation. About the same period of his life at which the two " Inquiries " ineffectually tried to obtain attention, he published some of his " Essays," which, finding a more favourable reception, relieved in some measure the forlornness of his literary prospects, and gave a fresh stimulus to that indefatigable application to study, which even his disappointments had scarcely been sufficient to relax. There are various expressions in this and other parts of the volume, pretty plainly indicating Mr. Ritchie's own disposi- tions towards religion. His condemnation of these proceed- ings against infidelity does not appear to arise, in any degree, from a concern for the cause of religion, which he might think this an injudicious and injurious mode of defending, but from a contempt of the zeal which could think it worth while to take any interest about religion at all, or in any way to make a strenuous effort in its defence. Nor is it apparently his anx- iety for the endangered liberty of the press, that prompts the indignation, but really a friendly sympathy Avith the cause of deism, and with Hume considered in the character of its advo- cate and apostle, to whose writings possibly the biographer feels indebted and grateful for some part of his freedom from prejudice and superstition. But, while we cannot entertain the smallest respect for the motive of our author's censure of these proceedings, we disap- prove, as much as he can do, the exertion of temporal force, Ritchie's life of hume. 293 whether in an ecclesiastical or purely secular form, or any proceedings tending to this exertion, against the propagators ot* erroneous speculations. We disapprove it for the obvious reasons which have been repeated innumerable times. 1. The exertion of force for the suppression or punishment of error, proceeds on a principle which is itself the most impi- ous of all errors ; it assumes the infallibility of the power that makes it. 2. Though the poAver, whether an individual or a corpora- tion of persons, exercising such authority, icere an infallible judge of truth, there can be no proof derived from the Christian institutes, that the Governor of the world has invested the temporal authority with any right of interference or punish- ment, one step beyond the offences which immediately violate the good order of the body politic. But the most absolute proof from this source is required, since nothing can be more dan- gerous and wicked, than to hazard an encroachment on the peculiar and exclusive province of the divine jurisdiction. 3. As this exercise of power is not authorized by Christian- ity, so neither can it be justified by any practical experience of its being adapted to produce its intended effect. The ex- perience of ages testifies its inefficacy. The reaction of the human mind, against what has been felt as persecution, has commonly produced a more obstinate adherence to the obnox- ious opinions, Avhich have thenceforth been propagated Avith more daring zeal, or with more sedulous cunning, so that their extermination could be efiected only by exterminating their believers. 4. If this power is to be exercised at all, there are no defin- able limits to its exercise, since there can be no indisputable rules for deciding what error is too small, or what punishment is too great. It will be impossible to ascertain the propor- tions of turpitude and pernicious tendency in the various forms and degrees of error ; and among the adherents to any given system of opinions, there will not be Avanting some Avho can foresee the most dreadful consequences necessarily resulting from the rejection of even the minutest of its articles, and Avho therefore, if iuA^ested Avith poAver, and unrestrained by policy, Avould enact fines, imprisonment, exile, or death, against the slightest deviation from the appointed creed. 5. If Ave could even admit the possibility of such an exer- cise of human poAver being just in the abstract, it is impossi- 294 Ritchie's life of hume. ble to find or imagine any man, or corporation of men, so sul3- limely virtuous as to exercise it with an exclusive disinterest- ed regard to its object. In all cases that ever yet occurred, worldly advantage, or the spirit of party, or some other mean principle, has mingled in those proceedings of temporal pow- er, against heretics and unbelievers, which have been profes- sedly dictated by a pure love of truth. Lastly, it seems no less than a virtual rejection of religion, to admit that its evidence is not such as to support it, without the assistance of a provision to inflict temporal pains and pe- nalties on its adversaries and deserters. In these observations we have used the word temporal power, notwithstanding that the proceedings meditated against Hume were of an ecclesiastical nature. It is scarcely necessary to observe, that wherever the church is formally supported as a corporate body by the authority, and as the constituent part, of the state, it has the power of the state in all its institutions and proceedings, and can either inflict punishment by a process of its own, or consign the offender over to the civil magistrate. If the excommunication which would have followed the success of the proposed measure against Hume andKames, had amount- ed to no more than purely an ecclesiastical anathema, the ex- pression merely of the opinion of the clerical body, they would have laughed at the church and all its assemblies and debates ; but as the case stood, they both felt no little anxiety ; for, as Mr. Ritchie observes, " when their adversaries were armed with a sentence of excommunication, they had it in their power to institute a criminal process in the ordinary courts of justice. Similar measures of severity had not unfrequently been resorted to in England, where Woolston had not only been exalted to the pillory, but bore on his person manifest evidence of the humane and tolerant spirit of a national clergy." (P. 70). All men of liberal minds rejoice that these methods of refuting and restraining infidelity have long since become obsolete. For some years past our government and clergy have had the wis- dom to consign the question, in all its parts, to the pure juris- diction of reason ; and the writings of our Christian advocates have shown how safely the sacred cause may be left \vithout any other aid, except the influence of Heaven. Reviewing the actions of past ages, we may exult in it as a grand attainment of the human mind, and a noble distinction of the present times, that men are become persuaded religion possesses Ritchie's life of hume. 295 within itself the means of its triumph, and is of too lofty a spirit to accept any obligations from magistrates, pillories, and pri- sons. These discussions in the ecclesiastical courts somewhat con- tributed to bring into notice the portion of the " History of England" which Hume published about this time. For a num- ber of years, however, the sale was slow, and the slender share of reputation most mortifying to his ruling passion. With the exception of two or three tracts, he had not even the consola- tion of exciting literary hostility, M^hich would have been be- yond all comparison more gratifying to him than this silent and inglorious toleration. He pretends indeed, in his memoir of his own life, that some parts of the history did excite a violent clamour ; but this story seems to have been of the same accu- racy as that of the redoubtable Falstaft', when he swore he had been set upon by some fifty ruffians at least ; for the biographer, *' after a diligent search into the literary histories of that period, has been unable to discover any of that outcry which assailed the sensitive ears of Mr. Hume. In later times, indeed, his accuracy, impartiality, and political tenets have been attacked, and with justice, but without any clamour, and seldom with illiberality." P. 106. Many pages are occupied with a history of the successive literary societies in Scotland, the Rankenian Club, the Poker Club, the Select Society, the Philosophical Society, and the Royal Society of Edinburgh, of several of which Hume was a member, together with the most eminent of his contempora- ries. It is justly asserted that these associations greatly con- tributed, beside their effect on the individuals composing them, to promote in Scotland a literary taste, a refinement of compo- sition, and a bold and comprehensive speculation. A kind of amicable rivalry in historical composition, con- firmed the habits of intimate communication between Hume and Robertson ; the greater number of the letters of Hume which are published, or rather re-published in this volume, (for many of them have been printed before,) are addressed to his brother historian. Both these and his other letters are in general excellent specimens of an easy diction, unaffected good sense, politeness, and sometimes delicate pleasantry. Hume enjoyed the high advantage over his accomplished friend, of residing, at several times, a number of years in France and Italy, as well as of spending considerable portions 296 Ritchie's life op hume. of time in the English metropolis. From this citizenship of the world, he necessarily acquired a considerable degree of freedom from local prejudices, tastes, and dialect, an ampler collection of facts for an inductive estimate of human nature, and a richer store of images, supplied by so many views of nature and art, for giving life, colour, and variety, to the pic- tures and narrations of history. And yet it is almost wonder- ful that, in point of fact, he so little, after all, excelled in these respects his untravelled rival. If it be admitted that Hume has the advantage in shrewdness of minute discrimination, yet we believe it is felt by sensible readers, that Robertson is quite as much a master of general principles, that he gives a still greater prominence to important facts, and that, in the art of infusing into the scenes a moral interest, which shall command the passions, he far surpasses his frigid contemporary ; in short, that history, under the management of Robertson, is less a scene of the dead, than under that of Hume. The style also of the former is almost as exempt from nationality of phrase as that of the latter. In quality of Secretary to the British ambassador, Hume visited Vienna and Turin, and about the age of fifty was em- ployed as charge d'affaires at Paris. It was at this time that he became involved in the well-known aftair with Rousseau, which has more of the character of an adventure than any other circumstance of his life, and of which the story and documents, in French and English, fill almost half the present volume. Our philosopher invited Rousseau to take refuge in England, from the danger which threatened him in France on account of his Emilius, which had given oftence to the Ecclesiastical order. Rousseau availed himself of the invitation ; and Hume really appears to have taken extraordinary pains, with extraor- dinary patience, to place him in an agreeable situation, which w^as at last etlected in Derbyshire. For a short time, the ex- pressions of gratitude and admiration were raised to a style of fulsome excess. But very soon the morbid mind of Rousseau began to conceive dark suspicions, that his pretended benefac- tor was only a wicked and traitorous agent of that grand con- spiracy, which it was now most evident that all mankind had taken the trouble to enter into, against his peace, his fame, and even his personal safety. The circumstances which excited the suspicion, and soon confirmed it into an invincible persua- sion, were more trivial than even those from which dramatists Ritchie's life of hume. 297 have represented the commencement and progress of mistaken jealousy. A more amusing- exhibition was perhaps never made, of the servility of a strong understanding to a wretched temperament, than that afibrded by a number of letters of Rousseau, and especially by one of great length, describing the whole progress of his feelings, and replete with virulence, eloquence, and perverse ingenuity. The reader at this time may be entertained l)y the quarrel without caring which of them was in the wrong, though his censure will inevitably fall on the citizen of Geneva. The dispute was well worth perus- ing, for the sake of the contrast between the men ; for the w^orld will probably never see again such an instance of the two extremes of the philosophic character brought in contact. We could amuse ourselves by compounding, in imagination, these two elements in equal proportions, or with various de- grees of the predominance of either. It may be worth while for any one who proposes to set up for a philosopher, to do this, in order to tind the standard to which it may be prudent to conform himself. About an equal mixture of them would make a man whom all would be constrained to admire ; but no mixture would constitute one whom a good man could ap- prove or revere. Even if the history of the w^orld did not sup- ply a far nobler class of human beings, to be placed in con- trast with such as the persons in question, or as any imagina- ble combination of the two characters, it would still be evident, that men most religiously devoted to the pursuit of fame, that is, idolatry of self, devoid of any pure, unmingled wish to do good, and neglectful or contemptuous of the authority of the Supreme Spirit, are creatures of a very degraded order, mere terrcB JiUi, notwithstanding the sagacity which can illustrate the records of time, or unfold the nature of man, notwithstand- ing the originality which can invent new systems, or the elo- quence which can adorn them. The account of the closing part of Hume's life has long been very w^ell known to the public ; but we are inclined to print it once more, as exhibiting what would probably be ad- mitted, and even cited, by infidels, as an example of the noblest and most magnanimous deportment in the prospect of death, that it is possible for any of their class to maintain ; an example indeed which very few of them ever, in their serious moments, dare promise themselves to equal, though they may, like Mr. Ritchie, deem it in the highest degree enviable. It 298 may be taken as quite their apostolic specimen, standing par- allel in their history to the instance of St. Paul in the records of the Christians, " I have fought a good fight," &c. Mr. Hume had visited Bath, but was returning to Scotland, under an increase of his fatal malady. At this period, however, •' His cheerfulness never forsook him. He wrote letters to his literary friends, mforming them of his intention to be at Edinburgh on a certain day, and inviting them to dine with him on the day following. It was a kind of farewell dinner : and among those who came to partake of the hospitality uf the dying historian, were Lord Elibank, Dr. Smith, Dr. Blair, Dr. Black, Professor Ferguson, and John Home. " At his return to Edinburgh, Mr. Hume, though extremely debilitated by disease, went abroad at times in a sedan chair, and called on his friends ; but his ghastly looks intimated the rapid approach of death. He diverted himself with correcting his works for a new editi(m, with reading books of amusement, with the conversation of his friends, and sometimes in the evening with a party at his favourite game of whist. His faceti- ousness led him to indulge occasionally in the bagatelle. Among other verbal legacies, in making which he amused himself, the f(jllowmg whim- sical one has been related. The author of Douglas is said to have a mor- tal aversion to port wine, and to have had frequent disputes with the his- torian about the manner of spelling his name. Both these circumstances were often the subject of Mr. Hume's raillery ; and he verbally bequeath- ed to the poet a quantity of port wine, on condition that he should always drink a bottle at a sitting, and give a receipt for it under the signature of John Hume. " Dr. Smith has recorded an instance of Mr. Hume's sportive disposi- tion ; and it also shows the placidity of his mind, notwithstanding the prospect of speedy dissolution. Colonel Edmonstone came to take leave of him ; and, on his way heme, he could not forbear writing Hume a let- ter, bidding him once more an eternal adieu, and applying to him the French verses in which the Abbe Chaulieu, in expectation of his own death, laments his approaching separation from his friend the Marquis de la Fare. Dr. Smith happened to enter the room while Mr. Hume was reading the letter ; and in the course of the conversation it gave rise to, Mr. Hume expressed the satisfaction he had in leaving his friends, and his brother's family in particular, in prosperous circumstances. This, he said, he felt so sensibly, that when he was reading, a few days before, Lucian's Dialogues of the Dead, he could not, among all the excuses which are alleged to Charon for not entermg readily into his boat, find one that fitted him. He had no house to finish ; he had no daughter to provide for ; he had no enemies upon whom he wished to revenge him- self. ' I could not well imagine,' said he, ' what excuse I could make to Charon, in order to obtain a little delay. I have done every thing of consequence which I ever meant to do. I could at no time expect to leave my relations and friends in a better situation than that in which I am now likely to leave them ; I therefore have all reason to die con- tented.' " ' He then diverted himself,' continues Dr. Smith, ♦ with inventing several jocular excuses, which he supposed he might make to Charon, and 299 in imagining the very surly answers which it might suit the character of Charon to return to them,' ' Upon further consideration,' said he, ' I thought I might say to him, Good Charon, I have been correcting my works for a new edition. Allow me a little time, that I may see how the public receives the alterations. But Charon would answer. When you see the effect of these, you will be for making other alterations. There will be no end of such excuses ; so, honest friend, please step into the boat. But I might still urge, Have a little patience, good Charon : I have been endeavouring to open the eyes of the public. If I live a few 3^ears longer, I may have the satisfaction of seeing the downfall of some of the prevailing systems of superstition. But Charon would then lose all temper and decency : You loitering rogue, that will not happen these many hundred years. Do you fancy I will grant you a lease for so long a term ? Get into the boat this instant, you lazy, loitering rogue.' " The hour of his departure had now arrived. His decline being grad- ual, he was, in his last moments, perfectly sensible, and free from pain. He showed not the slightest indication of impatience or fretfulness, but conversed with the people around him in a tone of mildness and affec- tion; and his whole conduct evinced a happy composure of mind. On Sunday, the 25th of August, 1776, about four o'clock in the afternoon, this great and amiable man expired." — Pp. 298 — 301. On this most remarkable exhibition we think there was room for the biographer to have made several observations — First, supposing a certainty of the final cessation of con- scious existence at death, this indifference to lif ', if it was not affected (which indeed we suspect it to have been in part) was an absurd undervaluation of a possession which almost all rational creatures, that have not been extremely miserable, have held most dear, and which is in its own nature most pre- cious. To be a conscious agent, exerting a rich combination of wonderful faculties, to feel an infinite variety of pleasurable sensations and emotions, to contemplate all nature, to extend an intellectual presence to indefinite ages of the past and future, to possess a perennial spring of ideas, to run infinite lengths of inquiry, with the delight of exercise and fleetness, even when not with the satisfaction of full attainment, and to be a lord over inanimate matter, compelling it to an action and a use altogether foreign to its nature, — to be all this, is a state so stupendously different from that of being simply a piece of clay, that to be quite easy and complacent in the immediate prospect of passing from the one to the other, is a total inver- sion of all reasonable estimates of things ; it is a renunciation, we do not say of sound philosophy, but of common sense. The certainty that the loss will not be felt after it has taken place, will but little soothe a man of unperverted mind in considering what it is that he is going to lose. 300 eitchie's life of hume. 2. The jocularity of the philosopher was contrary to good taste. Supposing that the expected loss were not^ according to a grand law ot" nature, a cause for melancholy and despera- tion, but that the contentment were rational ; yet the ap- proaching transformation was at all events to be regarded as a very grave and very strange event, and therefore jocularity was totally incongruous with the anticipation of such an event : a grave and solemn feeling was the only one that could be in unison with the contemplation of such a change. There was, in this instance, the same incongruity which we should impute to a writer who should mingle butibonery in a solemn crisis of the drama, or with the most momentous event of a history. To be in harmony with his situation, in his own view of that situation, the expressions of the dying philosopher were re- quired to be dignified ; and if they were in any degree vivacious, the vivacity ought to have been rendered graceful by Ijeing ac- companied with the noblest effort of the intellect of which the efforts were going to cease for ever. The low vivacity of which %ve have been reading, seems but like the quickening corruption of a mind whose faculty of perception is putrefying and dis- solving even before the body. It is true that good men, of a high order, have been known to utter pleasantries in their last hours. But these have been pleasantries of a fine ethereal quality, the scintillations of animated hope, the high pulsa- tions of mental health, the involuntary movements of a spirit feeling itself free even in the grasp of death, the natural springs and boundings of faculties on the point of obtaining a still much greater and a boundless liberty. These had no resem- blance to the low and laboured jokes of our philosopher ; jokes so laboured as to give strong cause for suspicion, after all, that they were of the same nature, and for the same purpose, as the expedient of a boy on passing through some gloomy place in the night, who whistles to lessen his fear, or to per- suade his companion that he does not feel it. 3. Such a manner of meeting death was inconsistent with the scepticism, to which Hume was always found to avow his adherence. For that scepticism necessarily acknowledged a possibility and a chance that the religion which he had scorned, might, notwithstanding, be found true, and might, in the mo- ment after his death, glare upon him with all its terrors. But how dreadful to a reflecting mind would have been the smallest chance of meeting such a vision ! Yet the philosopher could ^^ Ritchie's life of hume. 301 be cracking his heavy jokes, and Dr. Smith could be much diverted at the sport. 4. To a man who solemnly believes the truth of revelation, and therefore the threatenings of divine vengeance against the despisers of it, this scene will present as mournful a spectacle as perhaps the sun ever shone upon. We have beheld a man of great talents and invincible perseverance, entering on his career with the profession of an impartial inquiry after truth, met at every stage and step by the evidences and expostula- tions of religion and the claims of his Creator, but devoting his labours to the pursuit of fame and the promotion of impiety, at length acquiring and accomplishing, as he declared himself, all he had intended and desired, and descending toward the close of life amidst tranquillity, widely-extending reputation, and the homage of the great and the learned. We behold him appointed soon to appear before that Judge to whom he had never alluded but with malice or contempt ; yet preserving to appearance an entire self-complacency, idly jesting about his approaching dissolution, and mingling with the insane sport his references to the fall of " superstition," a term of which the meaning is hardly ever dubious when expressed by such men. We behold him at last carried off, and we seem to hear, the following moment, from the darkness in which he vanishes, the shriek of surprise and terror, and the overpowering accents of the messenger of vengeance. On the whole globe there pro- bably was not acting, at the time, so mournful a tragedy as that of which the friends of Hume were the spectators, without being aware that it was any tragedy at all. If that barbarous old Charon would have permitted a cen- tury or two more of life, it is probable that Hume would have been severely mortified in viewing the effect of his writings against "superstition," an effect so much less than his vanity no doubt secretly anticipated. Indeed, his strictly philoso- phical works seem likely to fall into utter neglect. The biographer justly observes, that, though very acute, they are not very lucid or systematic in point of reasoning ; and they have none of that eloquence, which sometimes continues to interest the general reader in works that are becoming super- annuated in the schools of philosophy. Many of his shorter essays will always be read with much advantage ; but his History, we need not say, is the basis of his permanent re- putation ; and it will perpetuate the moral, as well as the 14 302 Ritchie's life of hume. intellectual cast of his mind ; it will show a man indiflerent to the welfare of mankind, contemptuous of the sublime feel- ings of moral and religious heroism, incapable himself of all grand and afiecting sentiments, and constantly cherishing a consummate arrogance, though often under the semblance and language of philosophic moderation. THE PHILOSOPHY OF NATURE. 303 XIV. PHILOSOPHY OF NATURE, The Philosophy of Nature ; or, the Infiuemce of Scenery on the Mind and Heart, It may be asserted that there is a relation between the human mind and the whole known creation : in other words, that there are some principles of correspondence in the con- stitution of the mind, and in the constitutions of all known created things, such as some modes of inspiration, in conse- quence of which, those things are adapted to produce some efiect on the mind when they are presented to it, whether through the medium of the senses, or in any more immediately intellectual manner. It may be added, perhaps, that if the condition of the mind were absolutely and perfectly good, this effect would always be beneficial. As the mind must, in all periods and regions of its exist- ence, receive its happiness from causes exterior to itself, and as it is probable the one Supreme Cause of that happiness, the Deity, will make a very great part of the happiness which human spirits are to receive from him, come to them through the medium of his works, it is a matter of inexpressible ex- ultation, that those works are so stupendous in multiplicity and magnitude ; that they are, indeed, for all practical pur- poses, infinite. It is with a triumphant emotion, that an aspiring spirit, assured of living for ever, trusting in the divine mercythat it shall be happy in that eternity of life, and certain that its happiness must arise from the impressions made on it by surrounding existences, — it is with an emphatic emotion of triumph that such a spirit considers the vastness of the universe, as progressively demonstrated to us by the advances of science, and as attempted to be realized by an earnest, a delightful, but still an overwhelmed effort of imagination. For it regards the infinity of things as the scene of its indefatigable 304 THE PHILOSOPHY OF NATURE. and everlasting activity, in which it shall find that millions of contemplated manifestations of beauty and sublimity are but preparing it to advance to new visions, with perceptions for ever becoming more vivid, and delight for ever growing more intense. A spirit of this order will regard the ample display of beauty and magnificence made even to the inhabitants of this globe, as forming a kind of introductory stage for the indulgence and exercise of curiosity and admiration ; and as adapted, in com- bination with the objects of religious faith, to operate on the conformation and habitudes of the mind with an influence not less salutary than pleasing. This admirer of the Creator's works will, indeed, be sometimes compelled to regret the feebleness of the senses by means of which the soul is reduced to receive its perceptions of creation ; will sometimes be tempted to deplore the inferiority of the terrestrial region itself to such worlds as he can easily imagine to exist ; and will much oftener lament, that even of this sublunary scene, he is by many causes, confined to contemplate, immediately with his own faculties of perception, an extremely diminutive portion, and perhaps of an immensely inferior character, in point of beauty and sublimity, to many other portions of it ; yet he will, nevertheless, be arrested and delighted by many phenomena ; will often lose himself in inquisition and wonder ; and, on the whole, will be sensible that nature greatly affects the habitual state of his mind. Such a description is applicable, however, to a very small number, comparatively, of the human race. This captivation of nature is felt by extremely few but highly cultivated minds, and, indeed, by the smaller proportion only even of them. Here and there, a rare individual who has received from nature an extraordinary measure of imagination and sensibility, feels the enchanting inflfuence in the early years of life, antecedent to the high cultivation of the faculties ; and onward through life, though the full means and advantages of that discipline should never be enjoyed. But it is notorious that the gener- ality of men are exempt. Savages are quite insensible to the beautiful or the awful aspect of the scenes in which they are pursuing their occupations of hunting, fishing, and war. They would stand without emotion on the precipice from which they Avould look down on the cataract of Niagara. Nor, per- haps, would the half-civilized Canadian hunter be betrayed, in THE PHILOSOPHY OF NATURE. 305 the same situation, into any great excess of solemnity or en- thusiasm. We remember the perfect sobriety of prose with which an American man of the woods, who was even capable of writing a book, Patrick Gass, has described or mentioned the great falls of the Missouri. The same want of what may be called poetical feeling, regarding the sublimities of scenery, is apparent in all the uncultivated and slightly cultivated na- tions, from the savage up to the confines of the civilized state ; in the South Americans, the Tartars, the Laplanders, the Nor- wegians, and even the Icelanders, — excepting that some among these North European nations associate certain mys- terious ideas of reverence and fear with their great mountains. We are not aware, that even in the inhabitants of Switzer- land, an admiration of its grand scenery constitutes any mate- rial part of that passion for their country for which they are so celebrated. We need not say a word of the mass of the population of those regions, which combine the beauties of nature with the striking remains of the Grecian and Roman taste and magniticence. If we come, at last, to what assumes, and, indeed, we believe justly assumes, to be the most cultiva- ted people on earth, we doubt whether ^ve can make any striking improvement of the representation, as to the inspiring and elevating influence of nature, and the number and enthu- siasm of her pupils. Of the several divisions of our terri- tory and people, the country and posterity of Ossian have as- sumed greatly the highest character for influences exerted by the scenery and felt by the people. We have read, in close succession. Dr. Johnson's account of the region and the race, and Mrs. Grant's : a conjunction and comparison which re- minded us of the description given by travellers of the flowery tracts immediately on the edge of the eternal ice on the lower declivities of the Alps. It would be delightful to receive Mrs. Grant's representation as the correct one ; and, therefore, we endeavour, with all our might, to believe in it ; nevertheless, we are visited by strong surmises of iminten- tional poetry in the lady's very interesting memorials of a na- tional character, which, she confesses, is fast approaching to extinction. While we can conceive, and indeed admit, that there was in the character of the Highlanders, before the breaking up of their ancient social economy, something more imaginative, more perceptive of the gloomy sublimity of their scenery, more responsive, by solemn and elevated sentiments, 306 THE PHILOSOPHY OF NATURE. to its aspects, than was perhaps ever to be found in any other uncultivated tribe inhabiting a similar region, it would yet be absurd to set substantially aside, in favour of this one race, the general law, that unexpanded faculties, undisciplined taste, scantiness of associated ideas, want of the means of judging of objects by comparison ; — in one word, that ignorance must inevitably preclude, in a great degree, that kind of sensibility and reflection by which the mind has its perception of the fair, the marvellous, and the sublime in nature. And, doubt- less, the contemplative enthusiasm indulged on the mountains, among the rocks, by the torrents and cataracts, and on the sea shore, was confined to the few spirits of the family or the kindred of genius, while the great majority could behold such objects with only a little less temperance of emotion than the ordinary tone of sentiment among other rustic portions of man- kind. Assuredly it was not every Highlander that gave out emanations of poetry while passing under impending preci- pices, or standing on the summits of mountains. If we descend from that legendary, visionary, and almost vanished race, to the uncultivated population of England, Wales, and Ireland, there will need no other experiment than that of a short sojourn in Cumberland, in Carnarvonshire, or near the lakes of Killarney, to estimate the influence of natural beauty and grandeur on the generality of the people placed under their habitual operation. And we apprehend that the investigator will be utterly disappointed if he expects to find any mental modification, corresponding to the noble- ness of the scenes. He will find that the main proportion of their habitual spectators are not either consciously or uncon- sciously the subjects of their power. Not unconsciously ; they have not acquired insensibly a richer imagination ; they have not a more vivid sensibility to the sublime and beautiful generally, as elements in the constitution of the natural and moral world, and as displayed in literature and the arts. Not consciously : they are not haunted by the images of the grand peculiarities of the scene around them ; their minds are not arrested and thrown into trains of thought by their aspect ; they can pass long spaces of time without even distinctly re- cognizing them as objects to be thought of when they are seen, and still longer spaces without employing any of their leisure in visiting the spots (perhaps not far oft") which are the most striking in themselves, or which afford the most commanding THE PHILOSOPHY OF NATURE. 307 views of the wonders of the region. And if sometimes a party of pleasure is made up for such a visit, it is very com- monly seen that the graces or the majesty of nature engage but very little of their attention, and that they scarcely at all, unless perhaps by augmented hilarity, affect the tone of their feelings. The looks, sometimes thrown vaguely over the scene, are evidently not such as to bring the soul in contact with it : '* There is no speculation in those eyes. " The lively talk about indifferent subjects, the freaks and frolic, the good or bad cheer, the little diverting or vexatious inci- dents, shall so besport away the hours and faculties, that the whole expedition might appear to have been planned as an in- sult on the goddess (that has had so many pretended worship- pers, and so few true ones) Nature, in the way of practically telling her how little all her fine things are good for. Among a multitude of flights of rhapsody in the work that has led us into these observations, there is one in glorification of Snowdon, in which, after a great deal of probably real, and certainly reasonable enthusiasm, with an addition of what we suspect to be rhetorical affectation, it is asserted, without the compliment of looking round in anticipation of any body's scepticism, that " No one ever mounted this towering emi- nence but he became a wiser and a better man." And several particulars are specified, in which it is assumed as in- fallible, that this transforming energy must evince itself on a summit, which, it seems, is high enough to attract the influ- ences of a heaven superior to that of the lightnings. This bold position imports at the very least, and as the minor part of the fact which it asserts, that every one who beholds what may be seen from that eminence, is profoundly affected by the magnificent vision. Now, we happen to have had plentiful evidence on the spot, that a number of human beings may look from that sublime position, on all that it commands, by the light of the rising sun, and be little more impressed and de- tained by the view than they would in standing to contem- plate, on the busy day, the market place of any large town, and very much less than in surveying that area when filled with the exhibitions of a fair. As the rule must be, that the subsequent effects on the mind can only be in proportion to the force of the impression, it is not worth while to waste even a guess on the probable improvement in goodness, wis- 308 THE PHILOSOPHY OF NATFEE. dom, or taste, derived by these spectators from a scene to which these islands, perhaps, do net aff3rd an equal. It is to the uncultivated portion of a nation which, never- theless, accounts itself collectively more cultivated than all others, that we have mainly limited these observations. But whoever has had many opportunities of observing, with respect to the point in question, the much smaller portion that may make pretensions to be distinguished as cultivated, m ill have to testify that a real, thoughtful perception, and a genuine, ardent admiration, of the beautiful and sublime of nature, are among the very rarest endowments or acquirements of ed- ucated and well informed persons. His deposition will un- questionably be, that but very few among the elegant and polished part of the community, very few among the studious and learned, very few of those who are occupied in the higher professions, are intent observers of the material world, with the direct thought of its being the very basis and archetype of whatever we can know of the fair, the harmonious, and the grand ; with a direct wish and study, therefore, to have the economy of the mind, as to taste and imagination, and partly as to intellect itself, formed and modilied in accordance to it ; and with a feeling that there is, through all nature, some mys- terious element like soul, which comes, with a deep signifi- cance, to mingle itself with their own conscious being. Nevertheless, there is a proportion of cultivated minds, (and we must reckon, inclusively or additionally, an extremely few spirits but slightly cultivated in a strictly literary sense, yet strongly instinct with genius) that find, in the wide field of nature, something indefinitely more than a mere indifferent ground on which to prosecute the journey and accomplish the ordinary business of life. They find it a scene marked all over Avith mystical figures, the prints and traces, as it were, of the frequentation and agency of superior spirits. They find it sometimes concentrating their faculties to curious and minute inspection, sometimes dilating them to the expansion of vast and magnificent forms ; sometimes beguiling them out of all precise recognition of material realities, whether small or great, into visionary musings, and habitually and in all ways conveying into the mind, trains and masses of ideas of an order not to be acquired in the schools, and exerting a modi- fying and assimilating influence on the whole mental economy. Now a clear intellectual illustration of all this might fairly THE PHILOSOPHY OF NATURE. 309 assume the title of " The Philosophy of Nature." Such a work would not, perhaps, have been required to commence with the very elements of the philosophy of the mind, or an abstruse investigation into the principles of sublimity and beauty. It might, perhaps, not improperly begin with infer- ences from the striking and obvious fact, repeatedly dwelt on by philosophers and poets, that in the constitution of the mate- rial world, the Creator's intentions were much beyond a pro- vision for mere necessity and plain utility, in the strict sense of those terms ; that it was determined there should be, in the mundane economy for man, something besides the means of physical well-being, something besides moral order, and even religious truth : that the system was made to include a mar- vellous provision for taste and imagination, and for an infinity of pleasing emotions excited through the medium of these faculties. The comprehensive inference, capable of being established in several forms and illustrations, is plainly this, that the human mind should not be insensible to this signally remarkable part of the divine economy, but should be both passively and actively responsive to it. A rapid general view might then be taken of the actual state of the human mind, past and present, as to its modes and degrees of sensibility to this grand circumstance in the Creator's work. It might be shown in what manner this sensibility has appeared to manifest itself in various nations, in the character of their philosophy and their superstitions, of their poetry and other fine arts. Such a survey would contribute to ascertain the influence of civilization in bring- ing this otherwise nearly dormant sensibility into an effective state. And it would, alas ! too opprobriously show how easily this fine faculty may be perverted into superstition and idolatry. There would sometimes occur, during this review, the very remarkable fact of this sensibility's acquiring, when converted into superstition, tenfold the poignancy it ever had before ; tril^es of human beings, who would have been but feebly impressed by the beauty and grandeur of nature in itself, or as a work of God, being enthusiastic for that beauty and sublimity just when, and so far as, profaned into the ma- terials of a false religion. Thus men obtained something like the accomplishment of the expectation of our first pa- rents, a more vivid perception, by means of their sin, of what was fair and sublime. 14* 310 THE PHILOSOPHY OF NATURE. The supposed work might inquire what class of the beau- ties, that may be comprehended within the wide term " scenery," may have had the greatest power over susceptible minds. And it might be shown how the different orders of genius are attracted and modified respectively by those dif- ferent classes of nature's exhibitions. It would be a matter of very great interest to determine, under what conditions this influence of nature, where it does actually operate on the taste and imagination, shall also be salutary in a moral respect. It has been a favourite doctrine with many men of sensibility and genius, that these captiva- tions of nature are absolutely and almost necessarily condu- cive to the moral rectitude of the mind ; that they uncondi- tionally tend to purify, to harmonize, and to exalt, the prin- ciples and the affections. If the maintainers of this opinion, so kind to our nature, had not examined the human mind enough to know, from its very constitution, that in some modes and degrees of its depravity, it not only may fail to be cor- rected by the perception of these charms of nature, but may receive their influence so that it shall augment the depravity, — it is strange that their faith was not shaken by the no- torious fact, that many fine geniuses of the very class most alive to the beauty and sublimity of nature, poets and painters, have been among the most profligate of men ; — not to notice that the inhabitants of some of the most paradisaical and romantic sections of the earth, are among the most basely corrupt of the whole human race. Let any man recollect what he has read and heard of the inhabitants of the most exquisite countries on the Mediterranean. Another object of the supposed inquiry, would be to deter- mine what mode of training from childhood, ^vhat kind of locality for residence, what studies and occupations, would most effectually dispose and gratify a mind possessed of the requisite native sensibility, for feeling these finer influences of the material world. It would also be a very capital object to teach the art and habit of ohsermng the scenery of nature ; — an instruction which might, with the greatest propriety, be accompanied by an emphatical censure of the careless stu- pidity of the man who can, for half a century, carry about the world a soul, accommodated with the organs of sight and hearing, and scarcely twenty times in that whole lapse of duration, fix an intense, examining, prolonged attention, on THE PHILOSOPHY OF NATURE. 311 any of the innumerable displays exhibited in the elegance and grandeur of the creation. It would be a gratifying and an easy part of the undertak- ing to show, chiefly by means of well-selected examples, the vast advantage to eloquence, and indeed to all serious, moral, and religious instruction, — derivable in the form of striking analogies, happy illustrations, and a diction full of colour and and life, — from having the prodigious world without the mind, brought, in its representative imagery, to be an ideal world, almost as rich, within it. In the last place, it would be proper, in some part of such a work, to caution men of genius, who both perceive the palpa- ble material beauty and grandeur of the creation, and feel, in the contemplation, the influence as of some more refined and ideal element, far beyond the perception of the senses, against sufl^ering themselves to be deluded into a notion that this ab- stracted and elevated mode of feeling is something so analo- gous to religion as to render it of less importance to attain that distinct and diviner sentiment. The fine enthusiasm of this feeling made some ancient, and has made some modern philosophers, content with acknowledging, as supreme in the universe, some kind of all-pervading spirit less than a real in- telligence. And among certain modern poets, we have heard of a mystical spiritualization of the earth and the heavens, which, under the denomination of physiojMihy, was to be re- garded as the most refined mode of religion, and peculiarly adapted to the most subtile and purified human spirits, though it was less than an acknowledgment of absolute intelligence in the object adored ! — It is not, however, against this that, we particularly mean the caution ; but against the delusion, in minds firmly believing in a God, of the self-flattery that being exceedingly enchanted and elevated in contemplating his works, must of itself necessarily be, in effect, identical with devotion towards Him. These paragraphs may serve as a slight rudimental sug- gestion of the topics of an investigation which, in proper hands, might be interesting and valuable ; — most eminently so, if it were possible to compel to such a task, for instance, one genius that, more than any other, has sojourned on that fi'ontier, where the material and the ideal worlds join and combine their elements ; that has seen those elements, as it were, mutually interfused, in a state of assmiilation more in- 312 THE PHILOSOPHY OF NATURE. timate than mere analogy. It may not have been with a very sanguine hope of finding such a service performed that we took up the present work ; we did, however, reckon on a cer- tain measure of systematic and continuous investigation ; but we soon perceived that the lively author was not at all enamoured of regular and hard labour. We found he had been injudicious rather than intentionally deceptive, in the choice of a title of so grave and high import. His work was designed for a discursive and amusing miscellany, rather than an elaborate disquisition : and if some title, indicative of this, had been adopted, instead of the term of large profession and assumption, " Philosophy," the reader might have had no great cause to complain ; for it contains, though in the most dissipated and desultory form it is possible to conceive, a great number of sprightly sentiments, with a multitude of slight notices of facts, places, and remarkable persons ; and the whole is decorated with a liberal sprinkling of classical quotation. The writer is e\'idently a man of cultivated taste, of very extensive reading, and of active, buoyant fancy. We only regret that he should never have cared to know there are such things as order in thinking, and method in com- position. He introduces himself in an unassuming, ingenuous, and, therefore, conciliatory manner. " The following pages are the result of hours stolen fronn an applica- tion to higher interests, and from the severity of graver subjects. — They were written in the privacy of retirement, among scenes worthy the pen of Virgil, and the pencil of Lorraine: — Scenes, which afford perpetual subjects for meditation to all those who take a melancholy pleasure in contrasting the dignified simplicity of nature, with the vanity, ignorance, and presumption of man. " ' There is no one,' says one of the best and soundest moralists of our age, ' there is no one, however limited his powers, Avho ought not to be actuated by a desire of leaving something behind him which should operate as an evidence that he once existed ' — During those hours of peaceful enjoyment, in which these pages were composed, such was the ambition by which the writer was animated Upon revising what he has written, however, and comparing it with those ideas of excellence, which, in no very courteous language, whisper a knowledge of what abler pens than his would have written, on a subject so well selected for eliciting all the best energies of genius, he is awed from any expectation of an honour- able distinction ; and nothing supplies the place of those golden dreams which once delighted him, but tlie satisfaction of having passed, happily and innocently, hours which would otherwise have been listless, usciess, and unnumbered." THE PHILOSOPHY OF NATURE. 313 We do not well comprehend why, unless the author suffer- ed some physical disability for roving, his hours should ne- cessarily have been listless, in such scenes, though he had not been stimulated by this ambition, and animated by these golden dreams. Are, then, the charms of nature so pas- sionately and poetically chanted through several hundred pages, in truth, after all, so feeble, that even their " fond en- thusiast " would soon cease to feel their power, were they not so fortunate as to become the accessories of his vanity or ambition ? When we see the pupil and devotee of nature, apparently insensible that he is wandering or that he is fixed to the spot ; when we perceive his eye sometimes arrested and fixed in its gaze, as if by some enchantment, and some- times in a "fine frenzy rolling;" when we are fearing and avoiding to disturb him by a movement or a word, as we should a person engaged in an act of religious worship ; when we are envying the rapture with which he contemplates the beauty of the groves, and listens to their music, or be- holds the torrent, the mountain, or the vast landscape ; — what! are we soon to find out that the vital sentiment, the pre- dominant idea in all this enthusiasm, has been no other than the anticipation of the praise to be got by a fine printed de- scription of these objects, and of the tasteful delirium into which they have rapt him ? — And then as to what the quoted and approved " moralist " says ; — doubtless every man should endeavour to do so much good, that some part or trace of it will necessarily stay behind him, when he quits the world : but if it is meant that the actuating motive in such exertion ought to be ambition to secure a monument to his fame, Ave think it must have been a lying oracle that this so excellent a moralist had consulted. But it will seem trifling to have noticed these matters in the introduction, when the reader finds that the whole work swarms with all the peccadilloes with which carelessness, versatile fancy, random wildness of declamation, and a mo- rality without a sufficiently fixed standard, could furnish it. No critic can attempt the book in the ordinary methods of the profession. It is perfectly without plan in either fact or pretension. It has no divisions, except that all the paragraphs are distinguished by Roman numerals, to the amount of be- tween four and five hundred. In some places there is a small degree of sequence and relation among half a dozen of these 314 THE PHILOSOPHY OF NATURE. neighbour paragraphs : but, taking the whole work together, we think it would be possible, without impairing the book in point of regular connexion, to put the series in twenty very different orders of succession. And yet, from whatever cause, we think we have never had a feeling so tolerant for so un- pardonable a contempt of arrangement. For one thing, the subject itself is rich and attractive, whether exhibited in order or confusion : and indeed our author would plead, if called rigorously to account, that he has, in this disorder, imitated nature herself, who throws her multitudinous pro- ductions in the most promiscuous manner over the terrestrial scene. He is, besides, we think, in a very considerable de- gree, a real enthusiast for nature ; and therefore he gains a good deal of that favour which is always attracted by what appear to be genuine avowals of passion for a deserving ob- ject : — at the same time there is not a little of what we must regard as very extravagant, and suspect of being downright extravagance prepense. The principal thing, however, that prevents the reader's weariness, and beguiles the critic's anger, is, that this extensive tract of utter confusion is not a mere rhapsody of sentiment : it is crowded with brief refer- ences to matters of fact which are well worth knowing. The excursive manner in which the author pursues his general object, carries him and his readers into every part of the globe ; and though this " racing and chasing " would be un- necessary and undesirable, and we might endure to be kept much more still, if we were in the company of a veritable philosopher, it must be confessed that the lively talk of our author does better as the accompaniment of these excursions, than it would without them. We are entertained with the transient views of grand natural objects, of the present or ancient state of places memorable in history, of the peculiar aspects of various picturesque regions, or of the monumental relics that give occasion to recall to memory the great human actors or thinkers of past times. We have, besides, ani- mated characters and eulogiums of the most distinguished poets of nature, and notices of the most celebrated landscape painters. The width of the author's excursions comprehends almost all that is the most remarkable in the natural scenery of the whole earth. His reading of books of travels must have been prodigious ; and with the finest of what we may call the home THE PHILOSOPHY OF NATURE. 315 scenery, he appears to be personally familiar. The grand transient phenomena of the elements do not escape his atten- tion in his range. He sometimes speculates very briefly on their causes, in a way rather to show that he has read the con- jectures and theories on the subject, than that he has scientifi- cally studied them. He greatly prefers, and indeed is justified by the design of his work in preferring, moral and sentimental descants to any thing approaching to strictly philosophical dis- quisition. He has reflections and emotions to express at every place and on everj subject ; and considering the un- laboured, uninvestiofatinoj strain of thouo^ht and feeling which he revels in, we almost wonder there is not a greater degree of sameness. By the plan of his work, he crowds the dominion of Nature wdth even more than honestly belongs to her, for in rambling among the riches of the physical region, he is continually find- ing matters of literature and art thrown in his way ; and in fantastic, sudden, and endless changes, he sports the charac- ter of critic or historian, mingled with that of antiquary, vir- tuoso, or ranting enthusiast. Sometimes he will be a sober geographer, then he is called upon to estimate the respective merits of the orders of architecture ; next it is violets and roses, and birds of paradise, and music, and beauty, and all for love ; immediately at hand, however, are battles, and thun- ders, and whirlwinds, and inundations, and earthquakes, and volcanic fires ; next in adventure in the regions of Aurora Bo- realis, and thence a desperate plunge to the bottom of the ocean ; but quickly emerging, this volatile and wayward spirit probably goes to study philosophy and poetry in India. — No transitions of gay, and rapid, and brilliant confusion that any reader can have previously imagined, will be found, when he comes to the book itself, to have been too fantastic an antici- pation of its character. There is frequently a considerable intermingling of appa- rently devotional sentiment : it will not be wondered at if this sentiment has too little of the definite character of religious faith ; and if there are many heedless expressions, assump- tions, and implications, not very compatible with a cautiously strict adherence to the oracles of revelation, though doubtless clear of any intentional discordance with them. The general spirit of the work is rather too much like a worship alternate- ly of nature itself, and of the God of nature, as divested of any 316 THE PHILOSOPHY OF NATURE. other character in which the inhabitants of this world have to contemplate him. There is much amiable moral sentiment in the work. The author is a zealous inculcator of peace, and all the principles and duties of justice and charitj. He has also the Greek and Roman spirit of liberty. • CARR's stranger in IRELAND. 317 XV. IRELAND The Stranger in Ireland^ or a- Tour in the Southern and West- ern Parts of that Country^ in the Year 1805. By John Carr, Esq. Mr. Carr is a traveller whom any sensible observer would like to accompany a tew hundred miles. He possesses, in perfection, one qualiiication, for which many men who have more curiosity than spirit or address, will envy him, and very justly envy him ; a happy mixture of confidence, adroitness, and insinuation. By means of this he obtains access to every place and every person without the smallest difficulty. The moment he arrives at any place as a perfect stranger, he seems to inform himself of everything which it would be desirable to inspect, and the next moment he is introduced to the object of curiosity as readily as if he had lived on the spot twenty years, and knew every person there. He enters with equal ease the peasant's cabin, the country ale-house, the city-hotel, and the splendid mansion of nobility. No apprehensive awkwardness detains him at the gate of a great man's house, hesitating some minutes betbre he ventures to ring the bell, as many a poor scholar, or rustic man of taste, and even many a philosopher would do, while he tried to inspirit himself by recollecting the maxims of Epictetus, or the noble sentiments of modern doc- tors on the subject of the equality of mankind. He presents himself with an air perfectly unembarrassed, and the "pam- pered menial" skips along the hall to announce he has, no doubt, some old familiar acquaintance of my lord. If, on the introduction, my lord should amidst his complaisance, show any little degree of grave doubtful inquisitiveness, Mr. Carr advances with such a frank and gallant air, that formal cere- mony is ashamed to stay in the room, and quickly takes itself off. 318 carr's stranger in Ireland. The travelling vehicles in some parts of Ireland are justly described as miserable conveyances, and there is many a wor- thy English gentleman that would deny himself the sight of the most beautiful scenes, if he must visit them under the pains and penalties of being jammed, and rattled, and tossed, and stared at, in a jingle, a noddy, or a jaunting car. Our author, though no stranger to the luxury of easy or splendid carriages, was capable of very properly despising a temporary inconve- nience, if any gratification of his taste for the beautiful or the sublime was to be obtained by enduring it. And though a connoisseur in matters of good living, and especially an excel- lent judge of wines, he could make himself very easy and pleasant over the most homely viands, in those wild situations, where it would have been absurd to complain that the host- ess had not studied any large volume on the art of cookery, and had not a larder or cellar ample enough to turn such study to any great practical account. With the exception of a few such slight inconveniences, no traveller ever went on under a more continual sunshine of good fortune than Mr. Carr, ac- cording to his lively narrative. The " Green Island" seems to have arrayed itself in all its beauties to receive him, and the utmost politeness of its inhabitants met him at every stage. Nor did these gratifying circumstances fail to produce the due effect on the traveller, whose good-humour would appear to have been but very few times interrupted. This good-hu- mour sparkles out in a continual series of light pleasantries ; and though we would not harshly censure the gayety which an extensive view of an unhappy nation did not repress, yet we cannot help thinking that a philanthropy of the most elevated kind would occasionally have been pensive, where Mr. Carr is very sprightly, and that a refined love of justice would have been severe and indignant, in a few instances in which he is extremely tolerant. Mr. Carr's intellectual qualifications are well adapted to that kind of travelling which the present volume exhibits. He does not survey a country with a view to form or illustrate moral or political theories, or to select the physical subjects of scientific investigation. It is not in the particular character of naturalist, virtuoso, antiquarian, or statesman, that he travels, nor exactly in the character of philosopher, but simply in that of a man of sense and taste, who wishes fairly to see and hear whatever is most deserving of attention, and to write a spirit- CAEr's stranger in IRELAND. 319 ed description and narration of what he happens to observe. We certainly could have wished, on some occasions, a little more grave research, at the same time that we deprecate that pedantry which cannot make a remark without extending it into a dissertation. It is with a very ill will, we own, that we accompany a traveller, who regularly at every town he comes to, or at every old heap of stones near the road, plants himself in form to make a long speech. Mr. Carr generally seizes with quickness and accuracy the characteristic peculiar- ities of the people, and of local situations, while he passes from place to place with a celerity which gives us the idea of scampering. In the preface, and in several other parts of the book, he takes pains to apprise the reader, that none of his observa- tions on the state of Ireland are to be construed as referring to political questions, or as intimating any kind of opinion on the causes of the late melancholy events in that country. Proba- bly this is a well-judged forbearance, in a work like the pre- sent. But we earnestly wish some liberal Englishman, who has been long conversant with mankind and with the specula- tions relating to their interests, who is equally free from su- perstitious veneration for old practices and from a rage for novelty and hazardous experiments, who is pure from the in- fection of party interest, and dares to arraign indifferently any party or every party at the bar of absolute justice, would tra- verse Ireland expressly with a view to form a comprehensive estimate of the moral and political condition and wants of the people ; and then present to the public the assemblage of facts, together with the observations which he had been most prompted to make, while those facts were before him. The first chapter narrates the journey from London, (as it should seem) to the entrance of the bay of Dublin, and it makes us perfectly acquainted Avith the dispositions of the traveller. Our readers never met with a more gay and ani- mated gentleman in their lives. He never lets himself be long disconcerted by untoward circumstances. If for a mo- ment his indignation is excited by " those detestable corrupt harpies called custom-house officers," he almost immediately forgets them. And even the pains of sympathy, which he sometimes feels, do not become troublesome to the reader, by producing long sentimental declamations. The tragical ob- jects which occasionally interrupt the course of his pleasantry, 320 carr's stranger in Ireland. do not in the least haunt him afterwards. Though decorous- ly serious, or at least demure, in the house of mourning, he can laugh, dance, and sing, as soon as he has quitted it. Tiie first chapter is marked by almost all the characteris- tics which distinguish Mr. Carr's manner of writing travels. The descriptions are quick, clear, and lively. He marks so well the prominent circumstances of each situation or society, that he really makes his reader his companion : and this we deem very high praise. At the same time we are disposed to complain, that ho rather too often introduces from his memory, at the suggestion of some very slight association of thought, stories which might quite as well have been put in any other part of the book, or in no part of it. These may sometimes be curious in themselves, like the circumstance of Mr. Bol- ton's wager in Paris, (p. 6,) and might do very well to keep up the chat with his associates in the coach ; but the reader of a costly book of travels will not be so patient. He wants in- formation strictly relating to the place which the traveller has thought it worth while to visit and describe, and can find mis- cellaneous anecdotes at any time, in any old volume of a mag- azine. We might complain too, that our author's lavish eulo- giums of all the people of rank that happen to be civil to him, have sometimes made us a little splenetic. We certainly are pleased with his good fortune in meeting so luckily with my Lady Tuite, &c. 6lc. ; and with his pat)ietic gratitude for slices of broiled mutton (especially as it was Welch mutton,) most seasonably given him when he was nearly famished in the packet ; but when we are told he made on the instant a solemn vow, that all his readers should be informed of this most rare bounty, we cannot but wish his conscience had per- mitted him to break it. We have a better opinion of Mr. Carr, than to think if Pat M'Cann, or Judith M'Nabb, or some such responsible personage, had divided the little stock of pro- visions with him, he would not have been grateful ; but we greatly doubt whether he would have been so eloquent. Now and then we meet with matters so trivial, that we are sorry a man of sense should have condescended to record them ; for instance, the story about the boots, page 24. No- thing can tend more effectually to bring the writing of travels into contempt, than to occupy splendid quarto pages with in- cidents, which a company of louts at a pot-house must be re- duced to a very great scarcity of subjects, before any of them CARR*S STRANGER IN IRELAND. 321 would think it worth while to mention. Our author is so de- termined from the outset, to have something fimny, every few pages at least, that he m ill pick up the slightest facts or the slenderest ^vitticisms for that purpose, rather than go soberly on his journey. About every mile post he stops to laugh, and insists that his readers shall join him, wh^er they can or not. Sometimes, indeed, we readil}^ perform our part of this cere- mony ; as when he mentions, page 31, that " the secretary of a celebrated English agricultural society, received orders from its committee, to procure several copies of Mr. and Miss Edge worth's Essay on Irish Bulls, upon the first appearance of that admirable bock, for the use of the members in their labours for improving the breed of cattle." After escaping from what he calls oddly enough, "that con- summation of human misery, a cabin after a short voyage," he reaches Dublin, and frisks round a considertible part of the city before dinner, admiring, as every stranger will admire, several of the streets and squares, which are allowed to be among the noblest in Europe. His extensive previous travels enabled him to form a comparative judgment with great ad- vantage. But these proud exhibitions of wealth and taste cease to please a humane traveller, as soon as he beholds the hideous contrast between them and the dwellings and entire condition of the poor. It is melancholy to see in the imme- diate neighbourhood of all this splendour, the ample proofs how little the prosperous and powerful part of mankind care for the miserable. We do not pretend to believe that the re- sources of the rich, and the power of the state, could banish poverty, and the whole of its attendant and consequent evils, from a great city ; but it is impossible to see such sinks of filth, such a multitude of wretched, ragged, and half-famished creatures, crowded into alleys and cellars, and such a pro- digious number of mendicants, without pronouncing the severest condemnation on the idle and luxurious opulence, and the strange state policy, which can preserve, year after year, a cool indifference to all this misery. Mr. Carr visited the beautiful scenes in the county of Wicklow, and we should have thought meanly of his taste, if he had adopted, in describing them, a language of less animated admiration. We should have required this language from a man the most parsimonious of strong epithets ; but from our author we have a special claim to emphatical terms superla- 32*2 lively magnified, when speaking of grand subjects, because he sometimes applies emphatical terms, especially the word in- finite, to very little ones. We have hinted before that bril- liant expressions are elicited from him with wonderful facility and copiousness, whenever he comes within the precincts or the apartments of al|(Opulent villa. In page 200, he describes a visit to such a villa, the lady of which patronizes a school of industry for girls. This school it seems is in its nature a losing concern, and costs her some inconsiderable sum every year. In the contemplation of this generosity, Mr. Carr is so affected, that his thoughts are transported for once to the joys of heaven, as the unquestionable reversion awaiting such transcendent goodness. We were half inclined to take ex- ception to this language, as somewhat too strong for the oc- casion ; but we stood corrected for this feeling, on reading the paragraphg^immediately following, -which describe a mag- nificent and most extravagantly expensive luxury in the ap- pendages of this mansion. That after such a consumption of money, any small sum should have been reserA^ed for a school of industry, and that amidst such a " voluptuous" paradise, there should have been any recollection of so humble a con- cern, appeared to us an excess of bounty and condescension, which Mr. Carr's panegyric had too feebly applauded. But though the traveller's amiable propensity to celebrate good actions becomes peculiarly strong in the congenial neigh- bourhood of rank and elegance, it would be unjust to deny that he is capable of discerning excellence in subordinate stations of life. A little earlier in his book he gives an ex- ample, whicli we will transcribe, and we cannot help it if any reader should deem this a specimen of much more rare and costly virtue, than that which we have joined the author in ad- miring. " The following little anecdote will prove that magnanimity is also an inmate of an Irish cabin. During the march of a regiment, the Honour- able Captain P , who had the command of the artillery baggage, ob- serving that one of the peasants, whose car and horse had been pressed for the regiment, did not drive as fast as he ought, went up to him and struck him ; the poor fellow shrugged up his shoulders, and observed there was no occasion for a blow, and immediately quickened the pace of his animal. Some time afterwards, the artillery officer having been out shooting all the morning, entered a cabin for the purpose of resting himself, when he found the very peasant whom he had struck, at dinner with his wife and family : the man, who was very large and powerfully made, and whose abode was solitary, might have taken fatal revenge upon the officer, in- CAER's stranger in IRELAND. 323 stead of which, immediately'recogiiiziiig him, he chose the best potato out of his bowl, and presenting it to his guest, said, ' There, your honour, obhge me by tasting a potato, and I hope it is a good one, but you should not have struck me ; a blow is hard to bear.' " — Pp. 150, 151. By means of a wide diversity of narrative and anecdote, Mr. Carr furnishes a striking picture of the Irish character, as it appears in the lower ranks throughout the middle and southern parts of the country. His manner of exhibiting the national character, by means of a great assortment of well- chosen facts, and short conversations, gives a much more lively representation than any formal philosophic work, com- posed chiefly of general observations. At the same time, it will not be unjust to remark, that only a very small portion of toil and reflection is necessary for executing such a work. Writing travelling memoranda was a pleasant employment of many intervals and evenings, which would otherwise have been unoccupied and tedious ; and, to form a volume, the au- thor had not much more to do than to revise these memoranda, and add certain extracts from old and new books, with a few calculations and general statements. The book is such an enu- meration of particulars, and series of short sketches, as a philosopher would wish to obtain in order to deduce, by ab- stracting the essence of the whole mixture, a comprehensive character of the people and the country. It is like an irregu- lar heap of materials which the artist must melt together, in order to cast one complete and well-proportioned figure. It will be obvious to the readers of this volume, that the Irish people have a national character widely difl^erent from that of the English. And it will be the utmost want of can- dour, we think, to deny that they are equal to any nation on the earth, in point of both physical and intellectual capability, A liberal system of government, and a high state of mental cultivation, would make them the Athenians of the British empire. By what mystery of iniquity, or infatuation of policy, has it come to pass, that they have been doomed to unalter- able ignorance, poverty, and misery, and reminded one age after another of their dependence on a protestant power, sometimes by disdainful neglect, and sometimes by the inflic- tion of plagues. The temper of our traveller is totally the re- verse of any thing like querulousness or faction ; but he oc- casionally avows, both in sorrow and in anger, the irresistible impression made, by what he witnessed, on an honest, and we 324 carr's stranger in Ireland. believe we may say, generous mind. He clearly sees that the lower order of the people, whatever might be their dis- position, have in the present state of things absolutely no power to redeem themselves from their deplorable degrada- tion. Without some great, and as yet unattempted, and per- haps unprojected, plan for the relief of their pressing phy- sical wants, they may remain another century in a situation, which a Christian and a philanthropist cannot contemplate without a grief approaching to horror. Their popery and their vice will be alleged against them ; if the punishment is to be that they shall be left in that condition wherein they will inevitably continue popish and vicious still, their fate is in- deed mournful ; vengeance could hardly prompt a severer re- tribution. Mr. Carr approves of the Union, and faintly ex- presses his hope that great benefits may yet result from it ; but plainly acknowledges that a very different system of prac- tical administration must be adopted, before Ireland can have any material cause to be grateful for this important measure. It is a particular excellence of the book before us, that the diversified facts are so well exhibited, as to enable the reader to delineate for himself, without any further assistance of the author, the principal features of the Irish character ; insomuch that were he to visit Ireland, he would find that the previous reading of the book had made him completely at home in that country. The author however \vas willing to give a short ab- stract of his scattered estimates of Irish qualities, in the fol- lowing summary. Allow ing that the national character does really comprise these properties, we must however think that impartial justice would more strongly have marked some of the vices, which considerably shade this constellation of fine qualities. " With few materials for ingenuity to work with, the peasantry of Ireland are most ingenious, and with adequate inducements, laboriously indefatigable : they possess, in general, personal beauty and vigour of frame ; they abound with wit and sensibility, though all the avenues to useful knowledge are closed against them ; they are capable of forgiving in- juries, and are generous even to fheir oppressors ; tbey are sensible of superior merit, and submissive to it ; tliey display natural urbanity in rags and penury, are cordially hospitable, ardent for information, social in their habits, kind in their disposition, in gayety of heart and genuine humour unrivalled, even in their superstition presenting a union of pleasantry and tenderness ; warm and constant in their attachments, faithful and incorruptible in their engagements, innocent, with the power of sensual enjoyment perpetually within their reach ; observant of sexual modesty, CARR S STRANGER IX IRELAND. 325 though crowded within the narrow Hmits of a cabin ; strangers to a crimo which reddens the cheek of manhood vvitli horror; tenacious of respect; acutely sensible of, and easily won by kindness. Such is the peasantry of Ireland ; I appeal not to the affections or the humanity, but to the justice of every one to whom chance may direct these pages, whether men so constituted present no character which a wise government can mould to the great purpose of augmenting the prosperity of the country, and the happiness of society. Well might Lord Chesterfield, when Lord Lieu- tenant of Ireland, exclaim, ' God has done every thing for this country, man nothing.' "—Pp. 292. 293. The author gives plenty of specimens of the ignorance, the fanaticism, the legends, and the superstition, of the lowest rank of the people ; and while we read them, we are indig- nant at the insinuation which occurs, we think more than once, against the wisdom or necessity o? ^ proselyting spirit on the part of the protestants. The view of such a state of the human mind ought to incite all pious protestants to move heaven and earth, if it were possible, to annihilate that mon- ster of error and corruption which produces and sanctions, and w^ill perpetuate in every country where it continues to prevail, that degradation of which the ignorant Irish are an example. But we cannot help perceiving, in several passages of the present volume, that our sprightly traveller is disposed to re- gard Revelation itself as rather a light matter ; we cannot wonder, therefore, at his being unconscious how important is the difference between an erroneous faith and worship, and the true. One of these passages is in page 33: "In God's name, let the Peruvians derive themselves from the sun ; let the Chinese boast of the existence of their empire eight thousand years before the creation of the world, according to our calculation," &c. If a man really holds the opinion im- plied in such expressions as these, (the palpable profaneness of which, too, deserves the severest condemnation,) we ought not to be surprised, that in the same volume or chapter the re- claiming of bogs is represented as an object to be strenuously promoted, and the reclaiming of miserable papists as an ob- ject for which it betrays some defect of judgment to show any great degree of zeal. Yet, on recollection, we do a little w^onder that Mr. Carr, though he should set aside all consider- ations of purely religious advantage, here or hereafter, should not see the importance, in relation to political economy, of the lower order being raised to that decent state of intellectual and moral improvement which there is not the smallest chance of 15 326 carr's stranger in Ireland. their attaining while under the influence of a superstition which governs them by besotting them. While, however, we condemn such indifference, especially when indiiierence af- fects the character of superior wisdom, we equally condemn all corrupt and all violent methods of advancing the protestant cause. It is not by tempting the conscience of the papist with a pitiful sum of money, nor by forcibly interrupting the follies of his public worship, nor by making him, for the sake of his religion, the subject of continual derision, nor by unne- cessarily excluding him from any advantage, that we could wish to see genuine Christianity aided, in its warfare against that wretched paganism, into which what was once religion is found degenerated, among all very ignorant papists in every country. We cannot but regret that both the civil and eccle- siastical rulers of Ireland should have been, for the most part, unacquainted with all apostolical methods of attempting the conversion of the catholics. And it is melancholy that the generality of the ostensible ministers of religion at present in that country, should be so very little either disposed or quali- fied to promote this great work. We happen to know, that there are some brilliant exceptions to this remark ; the lustre of whose character, if it cannot prevail to any distance, yet defines and exposes the obscurity which surrounds them. Our traveller was attentive to collect any kind of useM or amusing information, respecting the several places which he visited, and respecting the country at large. He is of opinion, that Ireland is of a temperature probably more mild and equal than that of any other country. Its unrivalled verdure is owing to its western position, where its hills are the first inter- ruption to the clouds of the Atlantic, in consequence of which the proportion of rainy w eather is much greater than in Eng- land. We presume this circumstance would render it, with the advantage of an equal cultivation, more richly productive of almost all the most valuable kinds of vegetables ; and Arthur Young, we recollect, has given it as his opinion, that the soil of Ireland is more fertile, acre against acre, than that of this country. The agriculture is described as considerably pro- gressive on the whole, in spite even of the singularly hapless condition of multitudes of its most valuable labourers. One of the most curious and interesting parts of the book is the account of the interior of the Irish bogs. In digging to a great depth in one of them, there were found three prostrate GARR's stranger in IRELAND. 327 woods, one below another, and separated by successive deep strata of earth. Mr. Carr refers the investigation of these tacts to more philosophic men, apparently afraid of the gravity of such inquiries ; and lest even his momentary descent into the abyss of a bog-pit should have, on him or his readers, any such eftect as that of the cave of Trophonius, he inspirits him- self and them with a good story of an " embalmed cobbler," once found, with all his implements about him, in one of these places. Just in this manner a bog-digger takes his glass of whiskey before he begins. In the narration of the hasty visit to so enchanting a place as the lakes of Killarney, we were vexed that any of the pages should be occupied about such-a-one, Esq., and a second Esquire, and a third, and so on. It lessens the charm of the description, in the same manner as the crowded quarter- sessions in the town spoiled in a degree the pleasure of being in the place itself. We could also have well spared the foolish lines ofSAvift, called "A Gentle Echo on Women." We are, on the contrary, delighted with the little anecdote of the hunts- man, who set free a poor fawn which he had caught, because the dam followed him with tones of distress. Things like this are in harmony with the exquisite and tranquil beauty of the scene. As travellers cannot relate all the incidents they witness or hear of in each place which they visit, it would be the part of a judicious artist to select those which most harmonize with the character of the situation. Mr. Carr wants a good deal of improvement in this point. Not that we could have the conscience to require him to sup- press all the humorous anecdotes which he hears, but we really wish that, if he should ever visit another place like Killarney, he will make such a choice of facts and anecdotes, out of the whole mass which comes before him, as to aid the emotions of sublimity and beauty which are peculiarly appropriate to the place, and which the actual observer would be ashamed of himself if he did not feel as the prevailing state of his mind, while he remained amidst this magnificence of nature. We must not, however, forbear to add, that Mr. Carr does give a very pleasing account of this noble scene, notwithstanding the spirit and tone of the description are so unfortunately in- terrupted, when any jokes or ludicrous incidents, those literary wild-fowl in the pursuit of which our traveller is an incom- parable sportsman, happen to fly across his view. 328 carr's stranger in Ireland. He went to Limerick and Cork, which he describes suffi- ciently in detail. The shocking accounts of the house of industry at Limerick, and of the house of industry and the old gaol at Cork, will sting the principal inhabitants, we hope, through very shame, to the adoption of some more humane, more decent, and more useful regulations. On reaching Kil- kenny he found "quite a jubilee bustle in the streets." The sacred flame of charity was glowing throughout all the town. It was understood that numbers of human beings were " sink- ing under want and misery ; " and a great company of gentle- men, and other people, were convened to make a noble effort of pure Christian munilicence. And in what manner, courteous reader, should you suppose the resources were to be supplied for executing the pious design? The money was obtained by means of theatricals, which are performed during one month every year, with an incalculable mischief, beyond all doubt, to the morals of the young people. The balance, after de- ducting the expenses attending the performance, is reckoned at about 200Z. This, as we should infer, from another item in the account, is not a fourth part of the whole sum paid for entrance into the theatre ; but how much of even this smaller sum would have been contributed for the charity, if it had not been extracted by means of this vain and noxious amusement ? Mr. Carr seems to have visited Ireland in the capacity of character-painter to the principal inhabitants. And as the other class of artists, portrait-painters, are said to keep a num. ber of Venuses, Adonises, Apollos, &;c. within sight while at their work, so we cannot be so simple as not to suspect that this moral painter has played off the same device on those who sat, and on us who are called to inspect and admire. He meets with a certain General here, at Kilkenny, whose generous patriotism may challenge the whole empire to pro- duce an equal. In this one instance, however, Mr. Carr does not attempt to put the trick upon us ; and we are thankful to him for his honesty. He might have observed a discreet si- lence as to the particular proof of this unrivalled generosity, and then we should have supposed this patriotism displayed itself in ; nay, should have very deeply pondered all the forms in which it could have been displayed, and tried to as- certain which is the most generous and useful. Has he built a hospital for the lame or blind ? Has he remitted his poor tenants half their rents on account of a severe season ] Has CAER's stranger in IRELAND. 329 he helped a great many little farmers to cultivate pieces of waste land? Or perhaps he has established large schools for the decent education of the brats of the wild Irish. No, he has done something much nobler : he has made, each year, a large volunteer subscription, towards defraying the expense of carrying on the war. Cunning Mr. Painter ! always per- form in this manner ; and we shall not be tempted to the sin of reviling you for having taken us in. Our readers have often heard of the late Dean Kirwan, long celebrated for his charity sermons ; and if eloquence be rightly defined the art of persuading, it would appear that he must have been one of the greatest orators of modern times ; for the sums collected after his sermons, amounted in all, as we are informed by Mr. Carr, to nearly sixty thousand pounds. For purposes of mischief we have often enough had occasion to see that a mere second-rate eloquence is sufficient to obtain immensely greater sums ; and we have observed human na- ture too long to wonder at the fact ; but that a sum like the one here specified should be granted to the pleadings of charity, does excite our wonder we own, and also our curiosity to know the exact nature of the eloquence which had so great an efiect. Mr. Carr has given several pages of spe- cimens, which he obtained with difficulty fi*om a reverend admirer of the Dean, who had taken them down in short-hand. But whether it be, that the writer gave a cast of expression of his own to the sentences of the speaker, or whether there was a defect of taste in selecting them, or whether they were accompanied and enforced by unequal graces of delivery, or whether the great law of attraction exists in less force be- tween money and its owners in Ireland than in other countries, or whatever other cause, of w^hich we are not aware, con- tributed its influence, we acknowledge that we have some difficulty to comprehend, how a kind of oratory so very dis- similar to the noblest models of eloquence could produce the splendid result. These specimens too much remind us of the worst literary qualities of French oratory. The language has an artificial pomp, which is carried on, if we may so express it, at a certain uniform height above the thought, on all occa- sions ; like the gaudy canopy of some effi;minate oriental, which is still supported over him, with invariable and tiresome ceremony, whether he proceeds or stops, sleeps or wakes, rides or condescends to step on the ground. The images seem rather to be sought than to spring in the mind sponta- 330 cahr's stranger i^ Ireland. neously, and to be chosen rather for their splendour than their appropriateness. And the train of thinking appears to have little of that distinct succession of ideas, and that logical articu- lation, which are requisite to impress sound conviction on the understanding. We fear, however, that we begin to descry one capital cause of the Dean's success, in something else than the literary merits of his oratory : and our readers will hardly avoid the same surmise when they read the following passage. Expressing his reverence for the man, " however he may differ in speculative opinions," who relieves the wretched, &c. &c., he proceeds : " Should such a man be ill- fated, here or hereafter, may his fate be light ! Should he transgress, may his transgressions be unrecorded ! Or if the page of his great account be stained with the weakness of human nature, or the misfortune of error, may the tears of the widow and the orphan, the tears of the wretched he has re- lieved, efface the too rigid and unfriendly characters, and blot out the guilt and remembrance of them for ever ! " Now if an admired preacher, after a pathetic address to the passions of a numerous and wealthy auditory, many of whom had never accurately studied the doctrines of Christianity, co?/M have the courage to proceed forward, and declare to them, in the name of heaven, that their pecuniary liberality to the claims of dis- tress in general, and especially to the case of distress imme- diately before them, would secure them, notwithstanding their past and future unrepented and unrelinquished sins, from all danger of divine condemnation ; intimating, also, that, on the extreme and improbable supposition that they should be con- signed to the region of punishment, it would prove so light an affair as to be rather a little misfortune than an awful calamity, he might certainly persuade them to an ample contribution. But that an enlightened minister of a protestant church could have the courage to declare or even insinuate the pernicious sentiment, awakens our utmost astonishment. We think there can be no doubt that a certain proportion of the money col- lected after the address, in which such a passage as this was seriously uttered, would be paid literally as the atonement for the past crimes, and as the price of an extended license to repeat them with impunity. If the whole of the oration was powerfully persuasive, we cannot fail to attribute a large share of the success to that particular part, so soothing to appre- hension, and so flattering to ignorance and corruption. In returning towards Dublin, our author made a visit to CARr's stranger in IRELAND. 331 the house of Mr. Grattan ; and he might well feel himself flattered by the welcome, and the polite attention, which he experienced there, and gratified by the mental luxuries which, we may believe, scarcely another house could have supplied. We should have been glad to receive some more particular in- formation about this distinguished orator, than the assurance merely of his being a polite and hospita?3le man, an elegant scholar, and respectable in domestic relations. We should have been glad to hear something of his studies, his personal habits, his style of talking, or the manner in which he ap- pears to meet advancing age. Yet we acknowledge it is a difficult matter for a transient visitor, who is received on terms of fonnal politeness, to acquire much knowledge on some of these particulars, and a matter of some delicacy to publish what he might acquire. A number of pages are occupied with passages from Mr. Grattan's speeches ; some of which extracts, we believe, were supplied to Mr. Carr from memor}'', and therefore are probably given imperfectly. On the whole, however, these passages tend to confirm the general idea entertained of Mr. Grattan's eloquence, as dis- tinguished by fire, sublimity, and an immense reach of thought. A following chapter is chiefly composed of similar extracts from Mr. Curran's speeches ; in most of which the conceptions are expressed with more lucidness and precision than in the passages from Grattan. These specimens did not surprise, though they delighted us. We have long con- sidered this distinguished counsellor as possessed of a higher genius than anj^ one in his profession within the British em- pire. — The most obvious difference between these two great orators is, that Curran is more versatile, rising often to sub- limity, and often descending to pleasantry, and even drollery ; whereas Grattan is always grave and austere. Thej'" both possess that order of intellectual powers, of which the limits cannot be assigned. No conception could be so brilliant or original, that we should confidently pronounce that neither of these men could have uttered it. We regret to imagine how many admirable thoughts, which such men must have ex- pressed in the lapse of many years, have been unrecorded, and are lost for ever. We think of these with the same feel- ings, with which we have often read of the beautiful or sub- lime occasional phenomena of nature, in past times, or remote regions, which amazed and delighted the beholders, but which we were destined never to see. 332 Cottle's fall of camsijia. XVL EPIC POETRY. The Fall of Cam'bria, a Poem. By Joseph Cottle* Our times are unfavourable, to the last degree, to the writers of that kind of poetry commonly called epic ; a denomination about which there has been, among critics, avast deal of su- perstition^ — a denomination as fairly applicable, for what any of them can show to the contrary, to any poetical narration of the great military transactions that have decided the destiny of a state, as to the Iliad — a denomination, therefore, which might with perfect propriety have appeared in the title-page of this work, had the author deemed it worth while to be tena- cious of so trifling a point of rank. The present times, we observe, are unfavourable, because a great part of the im- pressive power of the heroic poem obviously depends on the contrast between such transactions as it narrates, and the or- dinary course of human events. We have very naturally been accustomed to calculate the effect of this sort of poem, on an assumption that the fall of great states and monarchs, the extinction and creation of imperial dynasties, the exploits of great heroes, and such conflicts of armies as transfer whole nations to a new dominion, are things of so rare oc- currence as to be of themselves adapted to take possession of the utmost faculty of attention and wonder, and therefore to need nothing but the eloquence of poetry to give them an overpowering magnificence. In their plainest mode of re- presentation they must rise before our view, it is presumed, with somewhat of the aspect of sublime mountains ; the effect of their appearing in poetry will be as when those mountains are seen in the state of volcanoes. But this high advantage of the epic poem — its having the province of cele- brating a class of events which, in even the humblest style of recital, would be exceedingly striking to the imagination — EPIC POETRY. 33^ is, along with so many other high and prescriptive things, totally abolished in the present age. The fall of monarchs, the end of a royal race, the catastrophe of empires — what solemn phrases these used to be in the lessons of moralists, and the declamations of orators ! How many pensive and awful reflections were they expected to awaken ! To what a remote, and loftj^, and tragical order of ideas were we sup- posed to be aspiring M'hen we uttered them ! But the time is at length come for such ambitious phrases to express but the ordinary events taking place within our sight. We are now become accustomed to reckon with great confidence, at the beginning of the year, that if we live to the end of it, we shall outlive some one or other ancient kingdom that is co- existing with us on the first of January. We take not the smallest credit for any unusual foresight in the prognostica- tion ; and when the event accordingly takes place, it seems so much a matter of course that it should have happened, that it is not till after a considerable interval of reflection that the mind admits any very grave impression of its importance. The impression is not so much made by the event itself di- rectly, as by our reflective wonder that it has impressed us so little. But both our direct and our reflective ideas of the magnitude of such an event are soon swept away by that in- cessant rapid progress of revolution, which is overturning another and still another throne ; destroying the boundaries of states ; either reducing those states to the condition of pro- vinces of one vast rapacious empire, or supplanting their an- cient institutions by new forms and names of government, and consigning the hereditary monarchs and their courts to obscu- rity and captivity, or driving them to the extremities and islands of Europe, or even to the other hemisphere. In this career of revolution, war has unfolded all its splendid and terrible forms, in such a crowded succession of enterprises and battles, with every imaginable circumstance of valour, skill, and destruction, that its grandest exhibitions are be- come familiar to us, almost to insipidity. We read or talk, over our wine or our coffee, of some great battle that has recently decided the fate of a kingdom, with an emotion nearly as transient as of an old bridge carried away in our neigh- bourhood by a flood, or a tree overthrown by the wind or struck with lightning. It is, even after every allowance for the natural effect of iteration and familiarity, perfectly aston- 15* 334 COTTLE S FALL OF CAMBRIA. ishing to observe what a degree of indifference has come to prevail in the general mind, at the view of events the most awful in their immediate exhibition, and the most portentous as to their consequences. Now it is very evident that this state of the public mind must be unfriendly in the extreme, as we began by asserting, to the labours and hopes of epic poets. It is the chief object of their unfortunate task to excite the sentiments of awe and astonishment by the representation of events, for the most part, of greatly inferior magnitude to those (of the very same class) which are just sutficing to keep up our newspapers and annual registers to the competent pitch for amusing us. It is true that the poets, by going back several ages for their sub- jects, have the advantage of exhibiting their heroes and great transactions with that venerable aspect of antiquity which is strangely imposing to the imagination ; but this is more than counterbalanced in favour of the newspapers by the moment- ous and direct relation of the present events to our own in- terests. The facts, too, of the epic narrative, instead of occupying the mind so as to withdraw its attention from the present events, have a quite contrary operation, tending rather to reflect its thoughts back to these nearer and greater objects. And this reflected attention involves comparison ; which we shall be sure to make with a considerable degree of disposi- tion to find the transactions of our own more magnificent than those of former ages. We shall thus be made to contemplate with more attention, and, through a kind of reacting pride, with more admiration, the events of the last year or month, in consequence of the poet's challenging us with a pompous display of the battles and revolutions of remote periods ; so that not only we are likely to behave ill to contemporary epic poets, but even Homer himself has need of all the sanctity of antiquity, and all the surrounding throngs of devotees of every time and nation, to protect him against the pert profaneness with which we might be tempted to ask, " Where are all your conflicts on the Phrygian plain, and what is the fall of Troy, compared with what is taking place in our times about once every six months 1" The author, then, of the " Fall of Cam- bria " will not be surprised to find himself partaking in some measure the misfortune which a revolutionary period has brought on poets, by rendering what were once accounted the most inspiring subjects, vulgar and almost insipid. EPIC POETRY. 335 If this diminution of the interest of heroic poetry had taken place from any other cause, it would not perhaps have been regretted by a Christian moralist, who feels it quite time that the characters and actions which are so pernicious in fact, should cease to be attractive in description. The moral effect of exhibiting martial excellence in an attractive form would be very equivocal, even in a case with the best imaginable 'conditions. Some of these conditions would be, that the con- test should bear the clear evidence of perfect justice on the one side, and therefore iniquity on the other ; that the de- fenders of the just cause should fight purely from the love of justice, not from military glory, as it is called ; that the chiefs among these defenders should have so much general virtue, that their valour in a just cause should not be the means of seducing us into a partiality for some vice in another part of the character ; and that the perhaps equally valiant combat- ants on the side of injustice should be so represented as to become, by means of the other parts of their characters, or from the fact of their being on the side of injustice, so decid- edly the objects of antipathy, that their bravery, however splendid, should conduce nothing towards conciliating us to the bad men, and the bad cause. It is doubtful whether a careful observance of all these conditions, in a poem which should describe with the most animated eloquence (as it might, without violating these conditions) the most brilliant achieve^, ments of war, would be enough to prevent those achieve- ments, so described, from exciting a feeling of more compla- cency towards the work of destruction than ought ever to be entertained towards it — than it would be strictly moral to en- tertain towards it even in a case in which it should be attend- ed with all conceivable circumstances of justice. But if the moral influence on the reader's mind, from a grand poetical celebration cf heroes and heroic exploits, with even perfect justice on their side, a celebration, too, conducted with a strict regard to all the other conditions above suggested, would be at the best equivocal, it is quite needless to ask, what must naturally be the influence on his mind from the celebra. tion of such wars as have actually made the grandest figure in poetry — which poetry has, at the same time, violated all the conditions on which it might be just barely pardonable to display any, even the most righteous war, in attractive cq« lours. S36 Cottle's fall of Cambria. From the general character of Mr. Cottle's writing, we should conclude with confidence, that no poet ever had a high- er respect for the purest principles of morality. There is strong evidence of this in the present performance. But the subject, like almost all such subjects, involved difficulties which no dex- terity could overcome. Was the subjugation of Wales by Ed- ward the First a just or an unjust achievement 1 If a just one, then our feelings are engaged pointedly against justice by our* sympathetic interest in the heroic and amiable character of the Welsh Prince Llewellyn, and some of his associates, and the patriotic and enthusiastic energy of the people. If it was unjust— if it was an enterprise of wicked ambition in the mon- arch, and wicked loyalty in his chiefs — then is it an immoral lenity that we are tempted to exercise towards these workers of iniquity, by the magnanimity and generosity which the poet frequently makes them display. It is true, he has made some of the English leaders very detestable characters ; but still, the characters of the men and the enterprise are not so man- aged on the whole as to inspire such an entire detestation of the undertaking throughout, as we ought to feel if it was an iniquitous undertaking. Perhaps indeed the poet felt, and per- haps justly felt, that it would be accounted an unpardona- ble ^aolation of courtesy and patriotism, to offer to Eng- lish readers a work which, in celebrating a great national achievement, should represent our own country as atrociously in the wrong. But it is a striking disadvantage in the choice of a subject, that either justice must be compromised on the one hand, or a sentiment so invincible, and accounted so vir- tuous, as patriotism, systematically affi-onted on the other. We speak on the supposition of the English being, in the instance in question, completely in the wrong. — It is another serious disadvantage of the present subject, that how much soever the English invasion may appear to be in the wrong, it is evident- ly to the advantage of both the nations that it should be success- ful, this being the only event that could for ever put an end to. their wars, and to the savage condition of their border territo- ry ; and this also promising to the minor nation incalculable advantages in point of progressive knowledge and civilization. Thus a civil war is raised among our feelings, some of which are imprecating discomfiture and punishment on the invader for his ambition, while others are desiring his success in or- der to the final pacification of two fiercely conflicting nations. EPIC POETRY. 337 whose strife, it is perfectly evident, will otherwise be cruel and perpetual, and in order to the civil improvement of the aggrieved state. The poet interests us at every step for the success of Llewellyn, over whose final defeat and Avhose death we are compelled to mourn, as over the fall of a virtuous hero, and a just cause, detesting the royal arm that inflicted the fa- tal blow : and yet this sympathy is confounded by our being compelled equally to reflect, that the life and victory which we wish him, would have been, on the wider scale of human- ity, a far greater disaster. Against the radical vice of epic poetry, its giving a perni- cious fascination to the exploits of war, Mr. Cottle has evi- dently laboured earnestly, by endeavouring to throw as much of the interest as possible into the subordinate parts of the fa- ble, and by occupying an unusually large proportion of the work with speeches of the principal personages. Still more directly he has done it by taking occasions to introduce, for- mally, many solemn reflections on the essential hatefulness of war, and the vanity of those martial qualities and feats, to which, however, he will in vain admonish those whom Chris- tianity in vain admonishes, of the folly of applying such terms as glory and immortality. It may be from the meritorious singularity of sentiments in perfect unison with the highest moral and Christian- principles, in a poem celebrating the ex- ploits of heroes, that we are tempted to consider these pas- sages as the best, in every sense, in the work. There is a great deal to be praised in this poem. The mor- al spirit of it, so far as the general exceptions we have before made do not interfere, is singularly excellent ; faithful to the supreme authority of religion, and favourable to everything am- iable and dignified. The serious and pensive reflections which form a prominent distinction of the work, are often of a kind which the wisest men are most inclined to indulge. They sometimes reach a no small degree of abstraction ; they indicate a deep sensibility, and an extremely attentive observ- ance of its varying emotions. The narration will not perhaps be thought sufficiently rapid, but is generally very clear. The speeches will be thought much too long, notwithstanding that they are employed a good deal in carrying on the narration. Taking the narration as a whole, it is in a somewhat more settled form, perhaps, than is required in a standard epic ; but probably the author might consider himself as privileged in virtue of declining that proud title, to allow himself in a looser 338 Cottle's fall of cambria. arrangement of his facts, and a more digressive and episodi- cal mode of relating them. He holds himself always at liberty to protract the story of any collateral course of transactions as long as it will furnish good materials for poetry. Yet we think that most of these collateral narrations will be found tending towards the main purpose of the story; like streams which, while wandering in distinct and even distant fields or valleys, are still winding towards a confluence. At the same time the fable has much of the simplicity of history ; not attempt- ing the intricacy and artifice of construction which distract the reader's attention between the bearings of the plot, and the intrinsic quality of the successive portions of the composition, and which make so much of the interest of the work depend on curiosity, that, when once that is satisfied, the work be- comes comparatively an object of indifference. — Mr. Cottle Clever scruples to suspend the course of events to dilate on the moral reflections they have suggested ; or to give time for a lengthened lyrical performance by the bards Caradoc or Lhy- rarch, (which will not be considered as among the best parts of the work ;) or to describe those grand or beautiful scenes of nature, which these descriptions prove the author to have con- templated with a fixed silent attention, a perception of some- thing deeper than shades and colours, a reflective mysticism, if we may so call it, and a recognition of an all-pervading spirit. No doubt some of the ideas suggested amidst the ima- ginative musing, Mdll appear strained and bordering on con- ceits ; but many are within the laws of just analogy, while in- genious and subtle. Examples of both are found in Lhyrarch's *' Song of the Ocean." The poet has given great variety to his descriptions, by taking full advantage of the romantic scenery in Wales ; as well as of the picturesque array of war and fashion of manners in a chivalrous age. As to charac- ters, there is such an enormous multitude of heroes going up and down throughout all literature, as to have rendered the heroic character familiar to the imagination, and to make it comparatively easy for the poet to exhibit his personages in the correct general shape and features of this character, both in its more generous and its more ferocious form. Along with this success of general delineation, we think our author has reached the higher point of giving to heroes substantially of the same order, an individual complexion of character. The poet's language is wrought with care, and is in general equally re- moved from meanness and classical pomp. SUPERSTITIONS OF THE HIGHLANDERS. 339 XVII. SUPERSTITIONS OF THE HIGHLANDERS. Essays on the Superstitions of the Highlanders of Scotland : to which are added, Translations from the Gaelic ; and Letters connected with those formerly published. By the Author of "Letters from the Mouiitains." It is a gloomy reflection which occurs to us, in contemplating the world as a very picturesque scene, that much the greatest por- tion of what man has contributed, and still contributes to make it so, is the result and proof of the perverted condition of the understanding and morality of the species. If we look at the more palpable and material division of the things by which that species have given to the world an aspect very striking to the imagination, it is False Religion that has raised so many superb temples, of which the smallest remaining ruins bear an impressive character of grandeur ; that has prompted the creation, from shapeless masses of substance, of so many beau- tiful or monstrous forms, representing flibulous super-human and divine beings ; and that has produced some of the most stupendous works intended as abodes, or monuments, of the dead. It is the evil next in eminence. War, that has caused the earth to be embossed with so many thousands of massy structures in the form of towers and defensive walls — so ma- ny remains of ancient camps — so many traces of the labours by which armies overcame the obstacles opposed to them by rivers, rocks, or mountains — and so many triumphal edifices raised to perpetuate the glory of conquerors. It is the op- pressive Self-importance of imperial tyrants, and of their infe- rior commanders of human toils, that has erected those mag- nificent residences which make a far greater figure in our imagination, than the collective dwellings of the humbler po- pulation of a whole continent, and that has in some spots thrown the surface of the earth into new forms. Had an en- 340 grant's superstitions lightened understanding and imcorrupt moral principles al- ways and universally reigned among mankind, not one of all these mighty operations, the labours of unnumbered millions, under the impulse and direction of a prodigious aggregate of genius and skill, would even have been thought of. Not one stone would have been laid of Pagan temple or embattled for- tress, of mausoleum, or triumphal arch, or tyrant's palace. The ground occupied by the once perfect, and now ruined, mansions of the gods at Athens, or Palmj'ra, or Thebes, or Rome, the sites of the Egyptian pyramids, of the Roman am- phitheatres, and of the palaces of the Alhambra or the Seraglio, might, some of them, have been cultivated as useful pieces of garden-ground, and some of them covered, from early ages till now, with commodious, but not showy, dwellings of virtuous families, or plain buildings for the public exercises of the true religion. In short, the world would have been a scene incom- parably more happy and more morally beautiful, but it would have been without a vast multitude of objects that now con- spire to make a grand, and even awful, impression on the im- agination. If we fix our attention on the other class of things contri- buted by the human species, to give what we call a pictu- esque character to the world — the class supplied by their per- sonal condition and manners — we find that in this part also of that character the most striking appearances are those which manifest error and moral evil. What is it, in this view, that most powerfully seizes the imagination ? It is the wild and formidable character and habits of savages and barbarians, — of North-American Indians, South-Sea Islanders, Arabs, and Tartars : It is the monstrous forms of national polity, or of subordinate social institution : It is the contrast of the various systems of manners, rivals perhaps in absurdity : It is what- ever is most pompous, most fantastic, or most vicious, in the ceremonial appointments of civilized and uncivilized society: It is that ferocious aspect of hostility with which the human tribes all over the earth are constantly looking at one another, and those dreadful collisions in which myriads are perishing every month ; but perhaps, above all, it is their superstitions : for these, by their nature, partake more than all the other things enumerated, of that solemnity and mystery which have so mighty a power over the imagination. We now come towards the purpose of this prolix array of OF THE HIGHLANDERS. 341 common places, by the double observation, — that the advance of just thinking and right moral principles will, proportiona- bly, annihilate a great deal that is very striking and romantic in the now existing economy of the human species^ — but that we ought to be pleased for these picturesque aspects to vanish, if their disappearance be owing to the removal of that intel- lectual or moral perversion by which they were produced. The complacent feeling here demanded, as a tribute due to the excellence of truth and moral rectitude, is, of course, only called for at the disappearance of such striking features of the world as belong to the latter division, that is, of such as are presented in the personal condition and habits of the human species, and indicate, so long as they appear, the continued operation of the evil causes from which they have arisen. For as to those material objects produced by the prevalence of evil, and which are so fascinating to the imagination, — the pyramids, the ruined temples, and the vast works that remain as monuments of former wars, we suppose almost all men may agree in wishing they might continue to exist to the latest periods of the world, to assist historians in representing, and a distant posterity in a happier age in believing, the true state of mankind in former periods. But the picturesque forms of practical superstition, and of any other thing in the human economy which indicates and results from a still operating perversion of understanding or moral sentiments, ought not to be deplored when they vanish to return no more, — even though they were as captivating to the fancy, as comparatiAcly innoxious, and combined with as many virtues, half virtues, and romantic line qualities, as the superstitions of the High- landers of Scotland. Our old friend Mrs. Grant is some trifle below our standard, on this subject. She acknowledges, with full con- viction, that that mode of personal character, (comprising notions, moral sentiments, and practical habits,) and that con- stitution of the social economy, which should be formed on the plain ground of absolute truth generally, and specially on the ground of religious truth, perfectly clear of every decep- tive fancy, would be better than the very best state of the an- cient Highland character and social system. And yet there is something so singular, so poetical, and really in some points so truly elevated, in the ancient character and economy of these Celtic tribes, that she shows a kind of reluctance to lose 342 grant's superstitions any particle that entered into the constitution of so strange and interesting a moral order. She cannot help looking back with a feeling, perhaps in some slight degree tinged with fondness and regret, on some of the more romantic and harm- less of the superstitions that once had so visionary and solemn an influence. She has somewhat of a similar feeling, in this retrospect, to that with which a solitary devotee to contem- plation has sometimes beheld the beautiful delusive aspects of things by moonlight fading into the plain sober forms of real- ity under the commencing ascendency of day-light ; or with which a person awaking from an enchanting dream, strives to recall the vanishing images, the last glimpse of which seems to convey something much finer than the objects ar- ranged round the room, or to be seen through the window. And we must confess we were scarcely ever in an equal de- gree disposed to be forbearing to such a feeling. The departed or departing system of sentiments and habits cer- tainly did contain a great deal that very powerfully tended to fix indelibly a fondly partial impression of almost all its parts on a youthful mind of sensibility and poetical enthusiasm, when presented to its view amidst that solemn mountain scenery, where that system had prevailed so many ages, had left so many religiously admitted traditions, and had continued, even down to that time, to maintain a very considerable, though declining, degree of actual prevalence among the people. Setting aside historical correctness, we can well believe that our author is better qualified than any other person to de- lineate a lively picture of the former economy of Highland society. She complains, however, that it is now somewhat too late. It certainly is to be regretted that there had not been, a century since, or even at a somewhat later period, just such an observer as our author, (saving, perhaps, that a somewhat smaller portion of enthusiasm would have sufficed for the ob- ject) introduced among the Highland tribes, and domesticated for several years among different clans, in order to enter into the very recesses of their character and social state, to learn their traditionary histories, to preserve the most striking of their written and unwritten poetry, to collect characteristic anecdotes, to discern the most material differences in the general character as appearing among the different sections OF THE HIGHLANDERS. 343 of the people, and then to come away with a comprehensive description of what certainly had no parallel among nations, and of what, being now in a great measure broken up and annihilated, will never return into existence. And that de- scription ought to have been given with the same ease and an- imation as this before us, — -the same power of presenting such moral portraits as will serve as well as if we conversed with the real living beings, — the same general and versatile force of colouring, — much of the same friendly sympathy with the people, — and as little as possible of the same neglect of method. But our author shows it would, at any time, have been very difficult to acquire any intimate knowledge of the character of the Highlanders. Between them and the Lowdanders there uniformly existed such an active antipathy as to preclude all unreserved intercourse. The distance of half the circumference of the globe could hardly have been more effectual than such a state of neigh- bourhood, to keep the best and the most romantic qualities of the mountaineers unknown. And any friendly and inquisi- tive stranger who should have wished to reside among them, would have met, according to Mrs. Grant's very natural re- presentation, almost insuperable obstacles. As a transient visitor, he would have been received with politeness and hos- pitality ; but if attempting to establish himself, he would have been regarded as an intruder ; and especially any attempt to obtain the smallest particle of land, even if it could have been successful, would have excited so strong a hostility, as to leave no security either to his property or person. The land was not more in any of the districts than to afford moderate allotments to the members of the clan, all of whom regarded themselves as the family of the chief, and as having therefore such claims on him that his granting one acre to a stranger would have been a piece of outrageous injustice. Nor was any satisfactory information to be obtained con- cerning the interior character of this race, from such indivi- duals of them as sometimes came among the more southern people of the island. For either they came for education, too early in life to bring with them either the mature example or the knowledge of that character; or, if they came at a more advanced age, their quick and proud perception of the lialnlity of their most peculiar feelings and superstitions to ridicule 344 among a less romantic generation, has put them on the most cautious reserve. Some of them have even endeavoured to extirpate from their minds the order of sentiments so incom- modious, because reputed so irrational, amidst such unconge- nial society ; but our author affirms that, once fixed, these sentiments became so deep and tenacious, that even though the force of the clearest religious truth were also brought in aid of the expulsion, and might seem to have effected it, they would recover almost all their power if a man happened to re- turn to his native region. " The moment he felt himself within the stony wirdle of the Grampians, though he did not yield himself a prey to implicit belief, and its bewilder- ing terrors and fantastic inspirations, still he resigned himself willingly to the sway of that potent charm, that mournful, yet pleasing illusion, which the combined influence of a powerful imagination and singularly w^arm affections have created and preserved in those romantic regions : That fourfold band, wrought by music, poetry, tenderness, and melan- choly, which connects the past with the present, and the material with the immaterial world, by a mystic and invisible tie ; which all born within its influence feel, yet none who are free from subjection to the potent spell can comprehend. This partial subjection to the early habits of resignation to the wildering powers of song and superstition, is a weakness to which no educated and polished Highlander will ever plead guilty. It is a secret sin, and, in general, he dies without confession; for this good reason, that he could not have the least hope of absolution." — Vol. i. p. 36. Ten essays make the substance of these volumes ; and our first intention was to attempt a slight abstract of them in suc- cession ; but their excessively desultory and immethodical form has obliged us to decline this attempt. In a large work there really would have been no forgiving so irregular a mode of managing a subject. In the present instance the space is not so wide, but that the reader may traverse again any part of it where he imperfectly recollects the curious things that were scattered in such plenty and confusion. Taken all to- gether, these essays form probably the most just and compre- hensive, and beyond all question, the most animated descrip- tion of Highland sentiments, manners, and customs, that has ever appeared. And the work abounds with what is of supe- rior merit and ability to mere picturesque description ; — with acute guesses at causes and happy illustrations of principles, — and also with pensive and elevated sentiments, sympathetic with those v^diich formed the solemn and peculiar grace of the mystical and poetical people of whom the work is a worthy memorial. OP THE HIGHLANDERS. 345 A. variety of sensible observations are made concerning the influences that operated, in a remote age and progressively downwards, to promote the growth of so peculiar, and in many points so dignihed and attractive a character. Much is justly ascribed to the unmingled quality of the race, and consequent completeness of fraternity from identity of origin, wdth which they took possession of their mountains and glens, as a long asylum from the encroaching power of the southerns : to the still more concentrated recognition and spirit of kindred, the almost family economy and charities, into which the divisions respectively were compressed in their several valleys : to the spirit of independence which formed them all to heroism, through each successive generation, in defending their moun- tain territory : to their pride in a long unbroken line of honourable ancestry, to w^iich they were most solicitous and ambitious to be honourably added, in the retrospect of their own distant posterity ; and to the gloomy and sublime charac- ter of the region they inhabited. Music and heroic songs contributed at once to augment and to combine the influences of all these causes. These particulars, as illustrated in a very spirited manner by the essayist, will go far towards accounting for the moral phenomena of the Highlands ; but will still, we think, leave a considerable degree of mystery resting on the origin of some of the distinctions of the character in question. Much of a similar process has taken place with respect to other tribes of mankind without producing the same result. How, especially, is to be explained that refined and reflective pen- siveness so prevalent among these tribes — if we are to admit the fidelity of our author's representation, and if there be any thing genuine, in point of moral spirit, in the poetry attributed to Ossian 1 It is easy enough to comprehend that habits of warlike passion, enterprise, and hazard, — that the frequent employment of chasing and killing the wild animals of the mountains, — that the gloomy impressions of a bold and gigantic but most dreary scenery, — and the combination with all these of the memory or traditions of brave ancestors, and of dark fancies about the haunting of their ghosts, might well have produced a certain fierce and austere solemnity, such as that which throws a frowning shade over the character of the heroes of Odin, as represented in what has come to us of the northern poetry, or such as that which has been found among some of the American aborigines. But really it is not yet 346 explained how this division of the Celtic barbarians acquired the tender melancholy, the pensive sublimity, the affectionate enthusiasm which, as far as yet appears, we must be con- strained to attribute to them in such a degree as to no other uncultivated race. Th« Essayist has made a strong and pleasing representa- tion of the general good sense, thoughtfulness, and habits of shrewd and vigilant observation, of the Highlanders ; and has shown that their local circumstances and their social con- dition very strongly called forth their thinking faculties. The comparatively little, though to them most important affairs of their valley and their clan, may indeed appear to furnish but a narrow scope for the exercise of those faculties, and of that conversational and deliberative oratory in which also they are here pronounced to have excelled : but our author has shown that this confined sphere did, notwithstanding, include a very considerable diversity of such occasions as demanded, each, a specitic judgment and plan of action. She has re- presented, too, that while these tribes were secluded in com- plete ignorance of all the knowledge and literature of the world, it is wonderful how much truth of a moral and practi- cal kind had been struck out among them by the co-operation and collision of their own minds, and fixed as a permanent common stock by the most faithful traditionary preservation. Our author has enlarged also, with great animation, on the social virtues of these tribes, — the well governed temper and passions, the promptitude to friendly mutual services, (within the boundary of the clan,) the matrimonial fidelity, and that lofty sense of honour entertained by even the meanest mem- bers of the community. And she has shown how much these qualities were promoted by their high notions of a dignified ancestry, from whose revered character it would be infamous to degenerate, and by the consciousness of being, every in- dividual of them, at all times within the cognizance, for honour or for shame, of the whole clan. The superstitions of the Highlanders related chiefly to ap- paritions of the dead, and to fairies, of good, bad, and equivo- cal character. These simple elements spread, of course, into a very wide diversity of particular forms, which our au- thor has represented a good deal at large in very lively colours, with a variety of curious illustrative anecdotes, many of which fell within her own knowledge. In looking toward the probable origin of the belief in ap- OF THE HIGHLAXDEES. 347 paritions of the dead, she insists, in opposition to the scornful disbelievers in all such phenomena, (which, however, she herself appears to consider as being uniformly fallacies of imagination) that the belief of such mysterious visitations could not have originated Avith minds of the weaker order ; and she illustrates, in a very forcible and poetical manner, how such a belief w^as likely to originate, and probably did originate in very thoughtful minds of powerful imagination and deep sensibility. Perhaps, if the plain truth could be know n, it would appear to be, that the persuasion did not originate in the mere constitution of minds of any class ; but in certain real preternatural phenomena in the earliest ages, combining and conveying down their effect along with that belief in the existence after death, which tradition has dimly preserved in almost all barbarous nations. We will, how- ever, transcribe a few of the sentences in which she conveys her conjectures. " During the dim dawn of intelligence, no reason appeared why the spirit, still supposed to exist in a separate state, should not still cherish the pure affections and generous sentiments which made it lovely and beloved while imprisoned in mortality. To such enthusiastic beings as we have been contemplating, it could not appear unlikely that spirits so attached and so lamented, should assume some semblance of their wonted form and countenance ; that they should come in the hour of deep sorrow and silent recollection, to soothe the solitary momner, to assist his fond retro- spections, and to cheer him with the hopes of a future meeting in some state no longer incident to change or separation. The state of mind thus pre-supposed, was quite sufficient to give familiar voices to the winds of night, and well-known forms to the mists of the morning. Thus it is likely that the first apparitions were the offspring of genius and sensi- bility, nursed by grief and solitude. These phantoms, however, which exalted the musings of the superior order of souls, and lent them wings to hover over the obscure abyss of futurity, were not long confined to their visionary solitudes. They soon became topics of vulgar discussion and popular belief; the fancied forms which were now supposed to people solitude, added horror to obscurity, and doubtless gave new terrors to guilt."— Vol. i. p. 95. A belief in the conscious existence of men after death being pre-supposed, this and similar passages W'ould be as plausible, as they are a poetical explanation, of the manner in which the belief in apparitions might originate among a people of the character, and in the stage of early intellectual progress, which the Essayist describes. Indeed, with the pre-supposi- tion, it is highly probable that in such a state of mind and 348 grant's superstitions society the belief really icould originate, and in this manner, if it had not existed already in a still more primitive period of the world. But such a belief could not have failed to be- come established in that more primitive age in consequence of the notorious occasional intervention and appearance of spiritual agents, which we have cause to be assured was no very infrequent expedient in the divine government, in the periods antecedent to the existence of a written revelation. If even but a very few instances of such preternatural inter- vention took place, in the parent nation of mankind, the pos- sibility of spectral manifestations would be one of the most fixed notions among all the branches into which that nation extended and divided ; a notion that probably could never be so far obliterated as that its existence among the Celtse, or any other people, may rationally be attributed to the inven live conception of minds in a state of pensive enthusiasm The general belief of a future state would powerfully con tribute to preserve this notion uninterruptedly in existence We repeat, however, that this high probability of the prime val origin of the notion in question, does not forbid us to ad mit, in such an enthusiastic state of mind as the author de scribes, a comj)etent creative energy to originate the idea and the belief, in minds previously entertaining a persuasion of a conscious existence after death. Some of our author's ex- pressions seem to imply, that even this latter belief also might have sprung up spontaneously amidst the solemn enthusiastic emotions of heathen and barbarous minds. But neither M^as this great truth originally left by the Creator to the chance of being or not being inventively apprehended by the human mind, nor can we admit that without revealed intimations it ever would have been so conceived as to become a prevailing belief among mankind. The ancient occupiers of the Highlands having doubtless brought with them the belief of separate spirits both existing and appearing, it is easy to comprehend that in such a coun- try, and such a state of the social feelings, the instances of this supposed appearance would become frequent, and would be with an aspect and circumstances of a deeply melancholy character. When the scene of their training to the belief and expectation of apparitions was a wild and solemn region, — with vast mountain solitudes, lofty or fantastic summits, deep darkened glens, torrents and cataracts, rocks, precipices, OF THE HIGHLANDERS. 349 caverns and echoes, mists, meteors, and storms ; and when some of the occupations of some of the seasons involved considerable peril ; and when, besides, each gloomy or dan- gerous locality by degrees acquired its tradition of being the scene of some mysterious occurrence ; the efiect could hardly fail to be, that their minds would be kept in that imaginative state, in which, while undefended by knowledge, they would be subject to endless illusions, and chiefly of a gloomy kind. And then, as our author so repeatedly represents, the state of the community and the social affections, — the cherished me- mory of a common and revered ancestry, — and that secluded, compressed, and reciprocally dependent condition of each tribe, which produced a more warm and faithful sentiment of fraternity even than that so often observed in uncultivated small nations, and which followed with enthusiastic and inex- tinguishable tenderness each departed relative and associate, — would powerfully contribute to retain, in Higliland appre- hension, the spirits of the departed friends as a shadowy but sometimes visible adjunct to the living community. And their conversations and their poetry would turn very often on this solemn subject, and on the supposed particular instances which had given almost every man, in his own apprehension, a kind of practical knowledge and interest in it. Neverthe- less, it is asserted by some who have paid attention to such remains as have been preserved of the genuine poetry of the ancient Highlanders, that they contain nothing like that ex- cessiv^e frequency of ghosts, which has made their appear- ance quite a vulgar and unimpressive phenomenon in the poetic fabrication of Macpherson. As examples of the mode and affecting circumstances of these supernatural interventions, the Essayist has introduced two striking poetical stories, one from the Death of Gaul, *'a poem," she says, ^^ of undoubted antiquity."* But after all that has been written, and all poetical relics that have been produced, it still appears impossible to form any distinct idea of the mode of subsistence, and the degree and kind of knowledge, power, or happiness, attributed by these Celtic tribes to separate spirits. No comprehensive and systematic * This is rather indiscreet, as Mr. Laing has pronounced it to be of re- cent workmanship : we do not know whether his challenge to the editor to produce any good evidence that it was not written by himself, baa been accepted or not. 16 350 GRANT S SUPERSTITIOIVS economy of their condition seems to have been matured by their poets. The rude conception of their existence seems to keep them in being, rather that they may not be lost to the survivors, and that there may be society for those sur- vivors to go to when they also shall depart, than to regard them as existing for their own sake, in an independent and a dignified economy. Nor could it seem that they were re- garded as in possession of any very animated kind of happi- ness ; which is rather strange, when we consider the ardent affection with which departed friends were remembered, and the lively interest with which the survivors are represented as anticipating their own removal into the disembodied so- ciety. This deficiency of attraction in the state of the sepa- rate spirits strikes us so forcibly, that, though it will be al- lowed that such a people might feel much interest in the thought of rejoining their dead friends in any state not posi- tively unhappy, yet we may very reasonably doubt whether the complacency in the view of death could be so much a thing of course as is implied in the following passage, — if the representation is to be understood of a time antecedent to the introduction of Christianity. •'This army of ghosts, that constantly hovered round those that mourn- ed for them, and kept alive both their affection and their enthusiasm, had a two-fold effect upon the general character of the people. It was favour- able to courage : as death, which did not put an end to existence, and re- united them to their departed friends, could have nothing very terrible in it ; and it strengthened attachment, because the deceased were not only ever present to the memory, but supposed to be often obvious to the senses. The beloved object, who not only dwelt in the soul of tho mourner, but seemed ever hovering round, with fond impatience, to watch the moment of the union, became if possible, more endeared than ever.** —Vol. i. p. 113. It was, however, very necessary that these pensive and visionary mountaineers should be in some good measure habitually willing to quit the society of the living for that of the dead ; as, else, their living so close on the frontier of the world of spirits, and with so slight a barrier between, must have been felt a very oppressive privilege ; — ^for it should seem that the imagined appearances and voices of their de- parted friends most generally communicated warnings of ap- proaching death. And it is to be observed, that these com- munications from departed spirits have, in the representation, a very mournful character, on the part of both the beings by OF THE HIGHLANDERS. 351 wKoni, and the persons to whom, they are made. The forms imagined to be seen are not only of shadowy and ominous aspect, but also have an expression of desolateness, languor, and melancholy: the voices, though soft and sweet, have a tone, and convey expressions, strongly allied to pensive sor- row ; and emotions partaking, in full sympathy, of this mourn- ful quality, are generally represented as excited in those to whom the solemn communication is made. In short, if the quality and effect of these supernatural visitings are at all correctly represented to us,—- we do not say by the poems given us under the name of Ossian, so very large a portion of which may confidently be ascribed to Macpherson, — but by Mrs. Grant and two or three contemporary admirers and interpreters of the Celtic muse ; it is impossible to avoid the conviction, that there was not a predominance of happy feel- ing in the sentiments which the ancient Highlanders enter- tained, concerning their relation with the world of spirits. In this respect their mythology, so to call it, while of so much more pathetic a cast than what we chiefly know of the Scan- dinavian, appears greatly inferior for animating excitement. The Hall of Odin, with its lively and heroic company, and its revels, presented much more palpable and inspiriting forms of delight, of however rude a quality, than any thing we are told of among the feeble and pensive shades on the misty hills of the Highlands. But it was not, as we have already mentioned, by departed and friendly spirits alone that the people of these tribes were continually haunted. There were fairies of sundry classes, defined or undefined : there were even malignant goblins, exceedingly watchful, and very considerably powerful, to do mischief. An ample portion of the work is employed in de- scribing the kinds of injury they were most inclined or per- mitted to inflict, illustrated with a number of curious examples, selected from the ample stores that enrich the traditions of every glen and tribe. The longest and most curious story, that of a man who by regular appointment which he was most conscientious to keep, met and fought a number of times, an evil spirit, at midnight, in the most gloomy place in the whole country, is as good as any section Ave remember in the romances of mystery and terror. Our author must be sensible she has left it quite unexplained, and that some odd particulars of acknowledged fact in it really called for explanation. — She 352 grant's superstitions recounts many of the ceremonies of precaution without which, even in modern times, after the prevalence of Christianity among them, (though, indeed, in an extremely imperfect form,) for so many ages, the Highlanders did not deem themselves or their friends secured against the power and spite of the supernatural agents of evil. We may transcribe as a speci- men, the account of the ritual for defending an infant and its mother. " The first danger to be guarded against was the power of fairies, in taking away the infant or its molher ; who were never considered as en. tirely safe till the one was baptized, and the other had performed her devo- tions at some chapel or consecrated place. All the powers of darkness, and even those equivocal sprites, who did good or evil as they happened to be inclined, were supposed to yield instantly before the power of a reli- gious rite, or even a solemn invocation of the Deity. " But, then, the danger was, that one might be carried off in sleep. Sound orthodoxy would object to this, — that the same power guards us waking and asleep. This argument would not in the least stagger a Highland devotee. He would tell you, that till these sacred rites, which admit the child, and readmit the mother, into the church, were performed, both were in a state of impurity, which subjected them (the body, not the soul) to the power of evil spirits; and that it was the duty of the friends of such to watch them during their sleep, that, on the approach of evil spirits (who never came unseen) they might adjure them, m the holiest name, to de- part : which they never failed to do when thus repelled. If these vigilant duties were neglected, the soul of the abstracted person might be saved, but his friends, in the privation they sustained, suffered the due punish- ment of their negligence of what was at once a duty of affection and re- ligion. If, however, they were not able or willing to watch, or wished for a still greater security, the bed, containing the mother and the infant, was drawn out on the floor ; the attendant took a Bible, and went thrice round it, waving all the time the open leaves, and adjuring all the ene- mies of mankind, by the power and virtue contained in that book, to fly instantly into the Red Sea, &c. After this ceremony had been gone through, all slept quiet and safely : yet it was not accounted a proof of diligent attachment to have recourse to this mode of securing a night's rest to the watcher. " When the infant was secured by the performance of this hallowed rite from all risk of being carried away, or exchanged for a fairy, there was still an impending danger, which it required the utmost vigilance of mistaken piety to avert. This was not only the well-known dread of an evil eye, which, by a strange coincidence, is to be traced, not only in every country, in the first stage of civilization, but in every age of which any memorials are preserved : there was, besides this, an indistinct notion, that it was impious and too self dependent to boast of the health or beauty of any creature, rational or irrational, that seemed to belong to us." [The evil which would be incurred by boasting of the health or beauty of a child was] " no less than that of leaving the defenceless babe at the mercy of evil eyes and evil spirits, to be instantly deprived of the vigour, or the or THE HIGHLANDERS. 353 bloom and symmotry so admired. An infant, in short, was not to be praised at all, without a previous invocation of the Deity." — Vol. i. p. I(i5. Our essayist represents, that a large portion of the super- stitions entertained by these tribes when pagans, Ijecame incorporated witli Christianity on its introduction, and under tin's union and sanction continued to prevail to a very late period, indeed to the present day in some of the most retired parts of the Highlands. She observes, that their solemn notions and habitual impressions concerning separate spirits, were adapted to facilitate the admission of some grand doc- trines of Christianity, coalescing with them rather than being supplanted by them ; so that, in fact, the faith of the early Christians in th« Highlands respecting a future state, con- sisted substantially of pagan elements, methodized, exalted, and enlarged, by that very limited share which their teachers could impart to them of the light of revelation. — When popery at length made its way, though imperfectly, among them, it introduced into their Christianity more, if not worse, super- stions than Christianity had expelled from their primitive paganism. A somewhat disproportionate degree of anxiety and labour appears to have been felt and exercised on a topic to M^hich our author returns again and again, namely, the great moral benefits derived by these tribes, both in their heathen con- dition, and amidst the very feeble and slowly progressive light of revealed truth through subsequent ages, from their super- stitious notions respecting spirits. She represents in how many ways it may be hoped these delusions were salutary, — how they raised barbarians above the grossness incident to their condition, — how they afterwards did substantially some things which pure Christianity was not yet grown strong enough among them to do, — and how they supplied the de- ficiencies of an extremely imperfect and unauthoritative le- gislation. We do not see that the reasonings on this point amount to much more than this very plain and undeniable proposition, — that as far as the superstition concerning ghosts gave additional power to conscience, in enforcing such just moral principles as the people had the knowledge of, so far, and relatively to the matter of fact merely, it was useful. It was clearly thus practically useful when, to take one of our author's illustrations, a man was deterred from committing a 354 grant's superstitions murder by the fear of the haunting and vengeance of the ghost, or from being a dishonest or cruel guardian to the children of persons deceased, by the apprehension of an affrighting visit from the spirits of the parents. Just in the matter of fact the operation of the superstition was obviously good : but was it good — must it not have been in many ways pernicious — for the mind to be under the persuasion that the ghosts of men were the governors of the world, and the sovereign dis- pensers of retribution 1 But more than this ; our author herself is candid enough to observe, that some of the opera- tions of the superstition, in at least the pagan period, were extremely pernicious in the simple matter of fact. It is also evident from our author's statements, that, besides imposing the fetters and incumbrance of many frivolous and irrational ceremonies, the superstition of the Highlanders has in spite of the beneficent light of Christianity, given a de- formed and gloomy aspect to the providential government of the Avorld, as beheld by them. Of this there needs no other proof than the fact, as stated by her, that they had, in rather recent times, such a fearful unremitting impression of the vigilant haunting of evil spirits, that it was presumption for a person to go out alone in the night. On the whole, while admiring, perhaps nearly as much as our animated author, the many fine romantic features in this most singular economy, we sincerely rejoice that a system of notions and habits which involved so much unhappy super- stition, Avith such a peculiar power (from the constitution and local situation of the community) of permanently retaining it, is breaking up and passing away. On the cause of this great change, a cause little enough to be sure, directly related to Christianity or intellectual philosophy, our author has many very sensible and interesting observations toward the con- clusion of these essays. We need not say the cause is, the adoption, by the great Highland proprietors, of a new, and to themselves more profitable, use of the land. The system which supported and kept together each clan, as a little tribe united by the affections and interests, and indeed by the actual relationships of a large family — that of numerous small allot- ments of land, partly cultivated for grain — has been generally relinquished, by what would formerly have been called the chieftains of clans. Much of their ancient feudal consequence and authority, and some portion perhaps of the affectionate OF THE HIGHLANDEES. 355 and romantic devotedness of their dependent clans, had been already lost, through the effectual interference of government to open and subjugate the Highlands, after the events of 1745. And by degrees the chiefs have come almost unanimously into the plan of living in style in the great cities, like other people of consequence, and drawing the greatest possible revenue from their mountain tracts ; and this greatest revenue is found to be realized by giving up the whole to pasturage, especially of sheep. Consequently, a large portion of the inhabitants have been compelled to emigrate, to seek subsistence in the Lowlands or in America. The latter is naturally chosen by all who can afford the expense of the passage ; and great numbers have already become diligent cultivators in the United States, or within the limits of the English Canadian territory. There, however, our author asserts, they will not preserve their high enthusiastic and romantic sentiments ; but there, then, we presume they will, fortunately, forget by degrees their superstitions. Benevolence would wish that they might there also speedily let their language fall into disuse ; for how are they ever to obtain their desirable share of knowledge, while strangers to all the languages in which knowledge has been accumulated and circulated in the civilized world ? S56 ECCLESIASTICAL BIOGRAPHT. XVIIL ECCLESIASTICAL BIOGRAPHY Ecclesiastical Biography ; or Lives of eminent Men, connected with tlie History of Religion in tmgland ; from the Com,' mencement of the Reformation to the Revolution ; selected, and illustrated with Notes. By Chkistophek Words- worth, M. A., Dean and Rector of Booking, and Domes- tic Chaplain to his Grace the Archbishop of Canterbury. Little more will be needful, for the purpose of explaining the nature and adjudging the value of this work, than to speci- fy the materials of which it is compiled. The articles con- cerning Wickliffe, Thorpe, Bilney, Tindall, Lord Cromwell, Rogers, Hooper, Rowland, Taylor, Latimer, and Cranmer^ are compiled from Fox's Acts and Monuments. That con- cerning Lord Cobham is partly from Fox, and partly from Bale's Brief Chronicle. The account of Ridley is partly from Fox, and partly from a life of the bishop, by Dr. Gloucester Ridley, published in 1763. The highly entertaining life of Woolsey, by the Cardinal's Gentleman Usher, Cavendish, is here for the first time faithfully printed from a manuscript in the Lambeth Library, collated m ith another manuscript in that library, and a manuscript of the same life in the library of the Dean and Chapter of York Cathedral. This performance, indeed, appeared in print long since, and was reprinted in the Harleian Miscellany, but so altered and spoiled in almost every sentence, by some foolish editor, as to bear but little re- semblance to the genuine exemplar. The long life of Sir Thomas More is now first published from a manuscript in the Lambeth Library, written towards the end of the reign of Elizabeth, by a zealous papist. Walton's lives of Hooker, Donne, Herbert, Sir Henry Wotton, and Bishop Sanderson, are reprinted entire, with additions by Strype to the life of ECCLESIASTICAL BIOGRAPHY. 357 Hooker. There are reprinted entire a life of Jewel, prefixed to an English edition, in 1685, of his Apology of the Church of England ; the translation, published in 1G29, of Bishop Carle- ton's life, in Latin, of Bernard Gilpin ; Sir George Paule's life of Archbishop Whitgift ; Bishop Fell's life of Dr. Ham- mond ; Burnet's life of Sir Matthew Hale ; Matthew Henry's life of his father, Philip Henry ; and Burnet's " Passages of the Life and Death of the Earl of Rochester." The "Me- moirs of Nicholas Ferrar," by Dr. Peckard, published in 1790, are here reprinted, "but not without some omissions." The account of this most extraordinary man and his extraordinary nephew, is in this republication extended by the accession of some curious papers relating to them, found in Lambeth Li- brary, though supposed liy Dr. Peckard to have been lost. The life of Bishop Hall is " composed principally from a re- publication of two of his tracts," "Observations of some spe- cialties of Divine Providence," and " Hard Measure." The account of Baxter is composed of extracts from his "Life and Times." The lite of Tillotson is abridged from a memoir of him "by F. H , M. A.," published in 1717, which Mr. Wordsworth professes to hold in no very high esteem. The work is inscribed, in profoundly reverential terms, to the Primate ; and will not, we hope, have offended the modes- ty insepara!)le from the highest ecclesiastical dignity, by Ije- traying to the public that his Grace's " unceasing cares and la- bours" are directed to the "promotion of pure taste, good mo- rals, and true religion." It is affirmed, that his Grace's many acts of munificence for the increase of the literary treasures of his country, exalt his name to the same level with those of the most illustrious of his predecessors, Cranmer, and Parker, and Laud." It may be doubted whether Archbishop Tillot- son would have felt the attributed resemblance in this subor- dinate species of episcopal merit sufficiently flattering to atone for the associating of his name in any way with those of the "illustrious" Parker and Laud : and we presume our editor cannot have studied, so accurately as he ought, his patron's taste in ecclesiastical character and in language. A sensible preface explains the compiler's motives to the undertaking. Every one will accord to his opinion, as to the necessary and happy influence of the college and the archi- episcopal palace in kindling pure Christian zeal. He ob- serves, " a protracted residence iu either of our universities, 16* 35S ECCLESIASTICAL BIOGRAPHY. and afterwards in that service which I have mentioned, it will easily be understood, was likely to engage any man in ardent wishes and desires for the general prosperity and welfare of sincere piety and true religion," and to inspire him more par- ticularly with an earnest concern " that these most important interests should ever advance and flourish among our theo- logical students and the clergy ; and, through their means and labours, with the divine blessing, in every rank of socie- ty." It was but in obedience, therefore, to the cogently evangelical influence which is always operating within the walls of a university, and in emulation of the active piety which he observed in every person who had resided there a considerable time, that Mr. Wordsworth projected, during a long-continued residence at Cambridge, a work of the nature of that now before us. The official situation which has since given him access to the Lambeth Library, must obviously have afforded him many facilities for the execution of the de- sign ; and he has availed himself of them with a very laudable industry. The editor assigns good reasons why the series should not commence earlier than the "preparations towards a Reforma- tion by the labours of Wicklifte and his followers," nor be brought down lower than the Revolution. The space so limited, formed in our island the grand milita- ry age of Christianity, during which the substance and the forms of that religion were put in a contest which exhausted the possibilities of human nature. The utmost that could be attained or executed by man, in point of piety, sanctity, cour- age, atrocity, and intellectual energy, vv^as displayed during this warfare. The compiler justly thought that nothing could be more interesting than a fair exhibition, presented in the per- sons of the leading combatants, of the principles and the most signal facts of that great contest. And this is very effectually done, as to that part of it which lay between the church of Rome and the protestants ; but not so satisfactorily as to that part of it which was maintained between the English estab- ment and the puritans. The editor's preference of original authorities, and his for- bearance to alter their expressions or even their orthography, will obtain the marked approbation, we should think, of every sensible reader. He says, ECCLESIASTICAL BIOGRAPHY. 359 '* It will be found, (for which, I imagine, no apology is necessary,) that I have preferred the ancient and original authorities, where they could be procured, before modern compilations and abridgments ; the narratives, for instance, of Fox and Carlcton, before the more artificial compositions of Gilpin. — 'Neither do I think it will require any excuse with the judicious reader, that in the early parts of the series, I have been at some pains to retain the ancient orthography. It was one advantage which I contem- plated in projecting this compilation, that it would afford, by the way, some view of the progress of the English language, and of English compo- sition. This benefit would have been greatly impaired by taking away the old spelling. But I have always thought that the far more solemn in- terests of reality and truth are also, in a degree, violated by that practice. " The reader is desired further to observe, that in many cases, the lives are republished from the originals, entire, and without alteration ; but in others the method pursued has been different. Wherever the work before me seemed to possess a distinct character as such, either for the beauty of its composition, the conveniency of its size, its scarcity, or any other suf- ficient cause, I was desirous that my reader should have the satisfaction of possessing it complete : but where these reasons did not exist, I have not scrupled occasionally to proceed otherwise : only, in regard to altera- tions, it is to be understood, that all which I have taken the liberty of making are confined solely to omissions. Thus, the lives written by Isaak Walton are given entire, and I have inserted all that he published : but the accounts of Ferrar and Tillotson have been shortened. " Many of the lives which are given from Fox's Acts and Monuments^ and which the editor looks upon as among the most valuable parts of his volumes, are brought together and compiled from distant and disjoined parts of that very extensive work ; a circumstance of which it is necessary that any one should be informed, who may wish to compare these narra- tives with the originals. It will be found also that in many places much has been omitted ; and that a liberty has not unfrequently been taken of leaving out clauses of particular sentences, and single coarse and gross terms and expressions, especially such as occurred against papists. But, though he has not all Fox laid before him, yet the reader may be assured that all which he has is Fox." " In the notes which I have added, my aim has been occasionally ta correct my author ; but much more frequently to enforce his positions and illustrate him, and that especially in matters relating to doctrines, opinions, manners, language, and characters. Their number might easily have been increased, but I was unwilling to distract the reader's eye from the object before him, except where I thought some salutary purpose might be answered." — Preface, p. xiv. After expressing his desire to promote by this work the in- terests of Christianity in general, he acknowledges it would not be a mistake, if any one should surmise that he wishes to promote it especially as " professed within the pale of the Church of England," being persuaded that its advancement under that specific modification will conduce most to the pros- perity of the universal church. He adds, S60 ECCLESIASTICAL BIOGRAPHY. " And yet, if he could any where have found popery associated with greater piety and heavcnly-mindedncss than in Sir Thomas More, or non- conformity united with more Christian graces than in Philip Henry, those examples also should have obtained their station in this work." " It has then been no part of my design to give occasion of offence to any. — If indeed occasion be taken where none was intended to be given ; if the errors and the evil practices of popery, the truths of protestantism, the sufferings of martyrs and confessors, and the intolerance and cruelty of persecutors ; if the madness of fanatics, and the evils of civil and religious war, ca7inot be described and deplored without blame ; if the wisdom to be derived to present and future ages from the records of the past, cannot be obtained by ourselves, without exciting displeasure in other bosoms ; there may be circumstances which shall call forth our concern and sorrow for the pain of a suffering fellow-creature ; but the consequences must be endured, as no part of our design, but only accidental to it ; and the com- plainant may bear to be admonished, whether, instead of casting harsh imputations upon us, he would not be better employed in re-examining the grounds and principles of his own faith, and inquiring whether cause has not been afforded to him of rendering thanks and praise to the mercy of God, for giving him yet another call and summons to escape from error and forsake his sin." — Preface, p. xviii. There is something which we do not perfectly understand in this last paragraph. Why does Mr. Wordsworth expect to *' excite displeasure" and incur " harsh imputations ?" In what character does he view himself, as connected with this publication ? If Messrs. Rivingtons, the publishers of the work, had chosen, without the intervention of any ostensible editor, to have a new edition printed of Ridley's Life of Rid- ley, Walton's Lives, Sir G. Panic's Life of Whitgift, dec. &;c. they would never have dreamed of provoking displeasure, and having to endure harsh imputations ; and why should Mr. Wordsworth ? Surely he is not making himself the responsi- ble voucher for the truth and discretion of everything in these six volumes, and pledginghimself to the vindication of whatev- er in them may be of a nature to offend the popish and pro- testant non-conformists to the church of England. With re- spect, at least, to that large proportion of the work which is given as an accurate reprint of entire memoirs, it was quite needless for him to take on himself any responsibility, beyond the very small degree involved in choosing those particular memoirs in preference to memoirs of some of the same per- sons written by other authors. A somewhat difierent rule of accountableness, indeed, may be applied to those parts which consist of comparatively short extracts from large works, as in the articles compiled from Fox's book, and that concerning ECCLESIASTICAL BIOGRAPHY. 861 Baxter, composed of passages from his own history of his life and times ; and also to those articles which are slightly abridg- ed from the original memoirs merely by some omissions, as in the Lives of Ferrar and Tillotson. In compiling articles in this manner, a certain, though not very definable measure of responsibility does attach to the editor ; since, though he should engage that every sentence is in the precise words of the original authorities, he may have followed such a rule of selection and omission as will produce an unfair representation of the subjects or characters. With respect to this portion of the compilation, therefore, it Avould not have been amiss for Mr. Wordsworth to have briefly stated what may have been his leading rule of selection, especially in the article drawn from Baxter's history. In the construction of this article, in- deed, the reader instantly perceives one rule to have been, to omit all record of Baxter's memorable campaigns against ec- clesiastical intolerance. This rule of compilation might have been ingenuously avowed by Mr. Wordsworth ; and it would have been taken in good part by the candid and considerate reader, who would have been very iar from exacting of the archbishop cf Canterbury's chaplain, an endeavour to give additional notoriety to the controversies and sufferings of the champion of the non-conformists. Only it would have been justly insisted, that, while adopting such a rule of omission, he should forbear all claims to have his work received as contain- ing the substance of the history of religion in England during the seventeenth century ; this being no admissible pretension for a work, which exhibits at great length the public proceed- ings, the ecclesiastical maxims, and the most laboured eulo- giums, of the distinguished high-churchmen, and reduces down to a diminutive sketch of personal character the ample story of the Hercules of non-confoimity. Let this ill judged preten- sion have been forborne, and a man in Mr. Wordsworth's double ecclesiastical capacity would have excited no very great " displeasure," or " harsh imputations," by omitting, in a memoir of Baxter, all Baxter's relations of the perscutions he suffered, of the silencing of two thousand conscientious minis- ters, and of the conference at the Savoy. Thus guarding against any heavy censure on his partial ju'inciple of selection in compiling the memoirs which were to be composed of a small extracted portion of large works, he might have exone- rated himself in ten words from all responsibility on account 362 ECCLESIASTICAL BIOGRAPHY. of the lives reprinted entire and unaltered. He had only to say, that in their time they had obtained, in a greater or less degree, the public sanction, as the best or the most agreeably written memoirs of the persons they celebrate ; and that they are put to stand on the ground of their own merits, just as much on this republication, as on their first appearance. Readers, the most irritably fraught with sectarian captious- ness, could easily be made to comprehend, that if several biographers of note in the seventeenth century assumed some principles which these readers believe to be false, or at least very questionable, and threw a partial colouring over the characters and transactions they described, it is no fault of Mr. Wordsworth ; and that in rendering to the public what will be on all hands acknowledged an acceptable service, by republishing these noted, curious, and now scarce perform- ances, he would have greatly injured the credit of the new edition, if he had destroyed the integrity of the works by omitting or modifying a single paragraph for the purpose of correcting injustice or avoiding offence. So far, therefore, as the passage we have extracted can be construed to refer to the contest between the ecclesiastical establishment and the puritans and sectaries, we are quite at a loss for the mean- ing and object of that sort of solemn preparation of Christian fortitude, that air of resignation to the imperious dictates of conscience at all costs and hazards, which seem so oddly act- ing or mocking the character of a confessor. This would be intelligible, on the supposition of Mr. Wordsworth's consid- ering a person who furnishes notes to a new edition of a work, as necessarily personating the author, and avowing and war- ranting every thing advanced in the work, unless corrected in his notes. But it is impossible our editor can choose to make himself responsible, for instance, for the whole strain of representation in the lives by Walton ; a pleasing writer, certainly, but no more a historian, in the most respectable sense, than he was a mineralogist. From the moment he has pronounced the name of his subject, it seems absolutely put out of his power to recollect that his favourite was of the posterity of Adam, till it comes to be acknowledged, towards the last page, that the personage could not be exempted from Adam's penalty of decay and death. His ecclesiastics, espe- cially, keep the reader in continual astonishment how wisdom and virtue of such ethereal quality could be so long retained ECCLESIASTICAL BIOGRAPHY. 363 from evaporating to the sky. To this earth they were hardly indebted, even to the amount of finding it a place to improve themselves in — except in knowledge ; for their moral endow- ments were complete from the first. Every thing that opposed them in any point was error and malice ; and the author won- ders how even error and malice themselves could have had such effrontery. And when these superhuman characters car- ried themselves with meekness and moderation, which indeed they did always, in the contests which arose from a criminal doubt of their infallibility, their doing so is celebrated as if they had possessed a power and a right to avenge themselves by bringing down fire from heaven. All institutions to which they adhered were necessarily of divine appointment, and au- thorized to impose themselves on all judgments and con- sciences, and to award punishments to recusants, for which it was no small perversity in them not to be thankful. Mr. Wordsworth cannot mean to have himself considered as say- ing all that is said by such a biographer. Still less as adopt- ing all the dictates of ignorant bigotry in Sir George Panic's Life of Archbishop Whitgift, which intolerant prelate is there described as every thing reasonable, moderate, forbearing, forgiving, and "tender-hearted," and all whose opponents and victims deserved to fall into incomparably worse hands. With respect to this one article, indeed, Ave may perhaps be allowed to question whether it was perfectly consistent with liberality of spirit, even in the unresponsible office of republisher, or the very slightly responsible office of compiler, to admit such a thing into the series, and so make it an insep- arable part of the purchase. It has no such excellence of workmanship as to render it, in spite of its moral qualities, worth possessing as a literary rarity ; and as to those moral qualities, the editor knows that if all biography were wiitten in the same manner, the best use of all biography would be to light fires. Every impartial examiner of the history of those times knows, that nothing less than either the most stu- pid bigotry, or flagrant dishonesty, could uniformly, through- out a long memoir, represent the proceedings on which Whit- gift's fame is founded, as directed solely against faction, tur- bulence, and irreligion. Every one who has but glanced at that history knows, that he was the staunch and most willing minister and prompter of the bigotry of the half-popish Eliza- beth ; that his proceedings were such, as to draw from the 364 ECCLESIASTICAL BIOGRAPHY. lord treasurer, Burleigh, (who is, notwithstanding, in this me- moir, impudently affirmed to have been " always his firm and constant friend,") an indignant remonstrance, pronouncing one of his most celebrated measures more iniquitous than those of the Spanish inquisition ; that he and his coadjutor, the bishop of London, received, and received without adopt- ing any change of conduct in consequence, a letter from the lords of the council,* in which it was represented to these prelates, that the council had "of late heard of great numbers of zealous and learned preachers suspended from their cures in the county of Essex, and that there is no preaching, pray- ers, or sacraments, in most of the vacant places ; that in some few of them persons neither of learning nor good name are appointed ; and that in other places of the country, great num- bers of the persons that occupy cures, are notoriously unfit ; most for the lack of learning ; some chargeable with great and enormous faults, as drunkenness, filthiness of life, gam- ing at cards, haunting of ale-houses, &c., against whom they heard of no proceedings, but that they were quietly suffered." The letter was accompanied with a catalogue of names, one column of learned ministers deprived, a second of unlearned and vicious ones continued, and a third of pluralists and non- residents ; on which the council observed, " against these lat- ter we have heard of no inquisition ; but of great diligence and extreme usage against those that were known to be dili- gent preachers ; we therefore pray your lordships to have some charitable consideration of their causes, that people may not be deprived of their diligent, learned, and zealous pastors, forafew points ceremonial which entangled their consciences." It was owing to the relentless intolerance of the queen, who supported the prelates in all such proceedings, that such min- isters as Burleigh and AValsingham were reduced to remon- strate in vain. Now if a bigoted retainer of the name of Sir George Paule, chose to write a life of such a prelate, celebrat- ing his transcendent piety, equity, clemency, usefulness, and so forth, and applying all the terms of odium and contempt to whatever was opposed to him, we cannot comprehend what necessity on earth there could be for Mr. Wordsworth to give new currency to this piece of arrogance and misrepresenta- * Burkijrh, Warwick, Slircwsbury, Leicester, Lord Charles Howard, Sir James Crofts, Sir Christopher Hatton, and Sir Francis Walsingham. ECCLESIASTICAL BIOGKAPHY. 365 tion. We -will not entertain the suggestion, that such a ne- cessity could arise from his official situation ; such a surmise is too humiliating to be admitted for a moment. Whatever could have been the reason that determined its insertion, we should have thought, that, as Mr. Wordsworth has undertaken to correct, confirm, or illustrate all his authors by means of notes, the determination to introduce this article would have been accompanied by the strongest conviction of the duty of protesting against the violent bigotry of the writer, and cau- tioning the readers against forming, on so bad an authority, their estimate of the archbishop, and of the class of persons that he persecuted. We observe nothing of this kind, how- ever, in the notes. The editor seems willing the piece should produce all the eticct it can on the minds of his clerical breth- ren, for whose use his work is especially intended. And we are ashamed to see him willing that other pieces of misre- presentation, also, should produce their etiect ; for in one of the notes on this article, he recommends the lately reprinted account of the famous Hampton-Court conference drawn up by Dr. Barlow, which he says " is important, as exhibiting a view of the state of the controversy between the orthodox clergy and the puritans, and the perusal of m hich, in this place, is therefore recommended to the reader." " It has ap- peared again, recently, in a valuable and seasonable Collec- tion of Tracts, called the Churchman's Remembrancer." Now Mr. Wordsworth knows that the puritan divines who at- tended that conference, and had quite as much right to be believed as Dr. Barlow, declared that account to be an utterly unfair report ; and that their historians relate many instances of the insolence and violence of the prelates and the monarch, in that "meeting for the hearing and determining things pre- tended to be amiss in the church." (See Neal's Hist., vol. I., p. 410.) It is therefore not obvious, in what sense the re- appearance of such a partial, and consequently, in effect, fal- lacious tract, can be called " seasonable." The only mode in which the republication of such things as that tract, and this Life of Whitgift, could be rendered seasonable in the sense of being useful, would be, to accompany them with a severe comment to mark the various ways in which prejudice and bigotry can misrepresent without committing themselves in palpable and bulky falsehoods, and to illustrate some of the pernicious effects which have been the result of such partial alienation of understanding, or total contempt of principle, in 366 ECCLESIASTICAL BIOGRAPHY. the statements of party historians, on whatever side. Such a comment on the Life of Whitgift might very properly be ex- tended from the spirit and trustworthiness of the biographer, to the merits of the subject ; and it would never be otherwise than " seasonable" for a clergyman to evince the present liberality of his order, by disclaiming, in its name and his own, all principles allied to those by which the prelate in ques- tion was actuated. For, without going further than the facts alleged by Burleigh, Walsingham, and the rest of that memo- rable council, it may fairly be asserted, that Whitgift acted on the principle, that religion and morality, the appointments of the Almighty, are things exceedingly subordinate to the eccle- siastical establishment, a local appointment of man. It ap- pears from this testimony, which no man will have the folly to call in question, that the archbishop could easily tolerate his clergy in being ignorant, careless, and profligate, provided they punctiliously observed all the prescribed ceremonies ; while he could applaud himself for directing the vengeance of the Star Chamber against the most learned, pious, and zeal- ous preachers, that conscientiously declined some part of the ceremonial conformity. He chose rather that the people should not be instructed in religion at all, than be taught it by even the most excellent ministers, who could not acknowledge a particular gesture, or robe, or form of words, as an essen- tial part of it. The censure of such a character, and the ex- ecration of such principles, are no matter of party ; for it is not permitted to any party, pretending at all to religion, to approve them. But the condemnation comes with a peculiarly good grace from the clergy ; and it might be expected they would lose no fair opportunity to exiiress it. It is difficult to comprehend why a liberal clergyman*''S^wi.ild have introduced into his compilation such an article as this life, but for the sake of giving himself such an opportunity, unless he acted under some superior authority, which prescribed to him the exact length and breadth of his task. In order, therefore, to preserve civility to the present editor, we must suppose him to be subjected to some much more illiberal supervision, than we believe it is usual for the trade to appoint over authors and editors. And as to the compilation itself, we consider it as much disgraced by the admission of this article. — As a slight sample of Sir George Paule and his most reverend patron, we may cite an illustration of their apostolic notions of the best means of giving dignity and effect to the Christian religion. ECCLESIASTICAL BIOGRAPHY. 367 *' Every third year he went into Kent, (unless great occasions hindered him,) where he was so honourably attended upon by his own train (consist- ing of two hundred persons) and with the gentlemen of the country, that he did sometimes ride into the city of Canterbury, and into other towns, with eight hundred or a thousand horse. And surely the entertainment which he gave them, and they him, was so great, that, as I am verily per- suaded, no shire in England did, or could, give greater, or with more cheerful minds, unto each other. The fatherly care which he had of his clergy, (whom he never charged with visitation, but once in twenty years,) his affability amongst the gentlemen, and courteous usage of his tenants, gained him so great a love, that he might very far prevail with them ; yea, they never denied him any request that he made unto them. " At his first journey into Kent, he rode into Dover, being attended with a hundred of his own servants, at least, in livery, whereof there were forty gentlemen in chains of gold. The train of clergy and gentlemen in the country and their followers, was about five hundred horse. At his en- trance into the town, there happily landed an intelligencer from Rome, of good parts, and account, who wondered to see an arehbishop or clergyman, in England, so reverenced and attended. But seeing him next upon the sabbath-day in the cathedral church of Canterbury, attended upon by his gentlemen and servants (as is aforesaid), also by the dean, prebendaries, and preachers, in their surplices, and scarlet hoods, and heard the solemn music, with the voices, and organs, and cornets, and sackbuts, he was overtaken with admiration, and told an English gentleman of Ycry good quality (who then accompanied him) ' that they were led in great blind- ness at Rome by our own nation, who made the people there believe that there was not in England either archbishop, or bishop, or cathedral, or any church, or ecclesiastical government ; but that all was pulled down to the ground, and that the people heard their ministers in the woods and fields, among trees, and brute beasts ; but, for his own part, he protested, that, (unless it were in the pope's chapel,) he never saw a more solemn Bight, or heard a more heavenly sound.' ' Well,' said the English gentle- man, ' I am glad of this your so lucky and first sight ; ere long you will be of another mind, and, I hope, work miracles and return to Rome, in mak- ing those that are led in blindness, to see and understand the truth.'" — Vol. IV. p. 387. Now, considering in what manner the prelate vakied him- self and the institution of which he held the first dignity, on all this personal and ecclesiastical pomp, we would hope, for the sake of his complacency, that he might not have happen- ed to have read Cavendish's most entertaining Life of Wol- sey, then existing in manuscript at Lambeth, and now for the first time correctly printed in this work ; for, in reading that record, he would have been almost strangled with envy at the description of a far superior magnificence displayed, a little more than half a century before him, by a dignitary of the church of Rome. Having discharged the indispensable duty, in place of the 368 ECCLESIASTICAL BIOGRArHY. editor, (who has not felt the jurisdiction of his office extend- ing so far,) of reprobating the part of the compilation which is so flagrant with the brimstone of intolerance and perse- cution, it is with great pleasure we lind ourselves at liberty to say, that on the whole the work is a very valuable ser- vice rendered both to the religious and the literary public. The parts compiled from Fox are judiciously extracted and disposed ; and as that huge work is for the most part repos- ing in undisturbed dust, and will never be consulted by so much as one in a thousand of our reading countrymen, we are glad that a considerable number of them will now be en- abled to peruse, in Fox's own language, some of the most striking pieces of history contained within the whole re- cords of the world. They may contemplate, in a narrative full of antique simplicity and animation, the actions and speeches of such men as Wickliffe, Latimer, Ridley, and a number more of the same order ; characters of a strange and gigantic race that seems now extinct, and w^hich holds, in the history of religion, a rank exactly parallel to that held by Plutarch's heroes in the history of war. Cavendish's very curious memoir, in its true original form, will be highly accept- able to the public. We are not less pleased with the origin- al life of Sir Thomas More, and are sincerely grateful to Mr. W. for his laborious care to give it in a correct and complete state. It is now more ample and more animated, than any of the memoirs of him with which the public are familiar. The lives here given of Jewel, Gilpin, Hammond, Sir Matthew Hale, &c., are some of them but very little, and some of them not at all, within the acquaintance of the generality of readers; and we have many times observed with wonder, how few per- sons comparatively know any thing of the memorable charac- ter and history of Nicholas Ferrar, notwithstanding the me- moirs, which are here in substance reprinted, were published so lately as the year 1790. — It cannot be read without a very unusual mixture of admiring and indignant feeling : we can remember no other instance of being so much provoked with so pre-eminently excellent a man. He was in the fullest sense of the word a prodigy of early talents, acquirements, and piety ; travelled almost before he had attained the age of manhood, over the greater part of Europe, commanding involuntarily the admiration and affection of the most learned men in the most learned universities and academies, passing through many ad- ECCLESIASTICAL BIOGRAPHY. 369 ventures and perils with a heroism of too elevated a kind to be called romantic, the heroism of piety, and maintaining every where an immaculate character ; on returning home, (in the earlier part of the seventeenth century,) he was almost com- pelled into important public employments, made a brilliant en- trance in the House of Commons, waging ardent and success- ful war on the public delinquents that in those times, so un- like the present, infested that house ; and after he had done this, and when there was plenty more such work for him to do, he quitted public life, at little more than the age of thirty, in obedience to a religious fancy he had long entertained, and formed of his family and relations a sort of little half^popish convent, in which he passed the remainder of his life. 870 XIX. SPAIN Chronicle of the Cid, From the Spanish. By Robert SOUTHEY. During the seven centuries that have elapsed since the death of the Cid, there has probably never been a time, till within the last seven months, when a large volume of half legendary history of his adventures would have had any great chance of obtaining much attention in England. Just now is the time, or rather four or live months since was th'fe time, for calling some of the chiefs of the ancient Spanish chivalry from their long slumber, in order to assist us to extend backward into for- mer ages our interest in the heroic character of that nation ; a nation in which we had begun to hope that almost every noble- man and every peasant was going to perform such exploits as those of the Cid, in a more righteous cause than almost any in which that hero had the fortune to display his valour. We are never content to confine our admiration to the present spirit and actions of an individual, or of a people, that has become a favourite with us, if we can find or fancy any thing deserving to be admired, in the retrospect of its earlier times. Besides, when a people is entering on a grand and most perilous enter- prise, in which it is evident that any thing less than the most heroic spirit must fail, the martial names and achievements of its ancestors have a certain influence, a greater, indeed, than is warranted by the history of national character, on our hopes of its success. When summoned to vindicate the national cause, the men surely will not hide themselves from danger among the very monuments of their heroic progenitors ; they cannot be content to read and recite the stories of invincible champions, of their own names, and, by their nativity, reflect- ing lustre on their own villages and towns, and yet see these towns and villages commanded and plundered by bands of for- SOUTHEY S CHRONICLE OP THE CID. 371 eign invaders ; they cannot endure to see their country and themselves in a state to make them abhor the recollection that such renowned heroes were their forefathers ; — is it possible that the Spaniards of the present day, recalling to mind the gallant hostility which once expelled the Moors, can quietly sink down under the domination of the modern Saracens ? It has occurred to our thoughts numberless times, while going through this volume, what an intolerable place their country would soon become, to the usurping enemy, if the martial spirit which blazed all over it in the eleventh century could be now re-kindled ; and what a dreadful impression would be made on the Gallic squadrons by even a very small army of such men as this Rodrigo Diaz, and those that fought by his side. The very same reflections have occurred, no doubt, to multitudes of the Spanish nation, within the last few months : but, notwith- standing all such reflections, and the momentary ardour they may in some instances possibly have excited, it would appear that one more proof remained to be given, that, in these times, the tombs, the histories, and the splendid fables of valiant an- cestors have lost all their power against a daring invader. As all our readers, as w^ell as ourselves, talk less or more every day of the events in Spain, which have lately awakened the strongest interest throughout the whole civilized world, it will, perhaps, be permitted us to take this occasion of suggesting a few considerations relative to those events, and to the manner in which they have been viewed and celebrated in this coun- try. With regard to the manner in which those events have been beheld and discussed, it is painful to us, as believers in Chris- tianity, to have to observe, that it may be doubted whether there has ever been a grand affair, involving a most moment- ous crisis, and creating a profound and universal solicitude, which was contemplated in this country with any thing so much like a general consent to forget all religious considera- tions. The anxiety which we have fully shared with all around us, for the success of the Spanish people, could not prevent us from sometimes thoughtfully observing in what terms anxiety, speculation, or triumph, were expressed by veteran statesmen, young political philosophers, many divines, the whole tribe al- most of journalists, and a very large proportion of the mass of the people ; and it has been exceedingly striking to perceive the general willingness to exempt the Governor of the world 372 southey's chronicle of the cid. from all exercise of care or interference. We really believe we have hardly met with one political or military calculation on the powers and probabilities in this great commotion, in which the fact of an Almighty Providence, if any accident could have suggested it to the calculator's thoughts, would have been of half as much importance in his account, as one regiment of soldiers more or less, or one cargo of ammunition. But in general, the thought seems not to have occurred at all ; the plans, the reasonings, the auguries, the exultation, and the fears, have all been entertained and revolved, under an entire failure to recollect that an invisible Being has ever decided the course and events of human affairs. And the benefit of this exclusion of every thought relating to that Being has been very great, to the confident class of speculators, as it has sim- plified their calculations ; the interference of an invisible Pow- er, is a thing so independent and mysterious, that it is very difficult to adjust its place and value among the elements of the calculation ; but let the whole matter be reduced to a plain account of so many men in arms against so many, and we go directly to the consequence without hesitation. We could not deem it a favourable omen, when we ob- served the general, and we think unequalled, prevalence, in this Christian country, of so light an estimate of the depen- dence of human affairs on the Supreme Governor. Another very prominent circumstance, has been the apparent renun- ciation of all concern about the stability or subversion of the power of the Romish church. In times that are past, yet not so long past but we ourselves can remember them, this most impious, tyrannic, and cruel power was regarded as one of the most pernicious and hateful things on the face of the whole earth; and its grand instrument, the inquisition, was con- sidered as precisely the utmost reach of diabolical contrivance and malignit}^ English protestants codd not hear the words popery and inquisition, without instantly thinking of crowds of racked, or burning, or bleeding martyrs ; of numerous other pious and holy men perishing in dungeons and deserts ; of soldiers, stimulated by priests to merit heaven by absolutely wantoning in the torments and death of women and children ; of midnight spies, of domestics exhorted and threatened into informers, of the general interdiction of divine knowledge by severe punishments for reading the bible, of an infinite swarm of lazy, bigoted, and vicious ecclesiastics, of the worship of SOTJTHEY S CHRONICLE OF THE CID. 373 saints and of images, and of a train of follies and impieties, in doctrine and ceremony, far too numerous to be named. No- thing inspired greater delight than any symptoms of the ap- proaching fall of this most execrable power ; our anticipations of the prosperity or decline of any of the political states of Europe depended very much, perhaps more than on any other thing whatever, on the degree in which they respectively as- sisted or opposed that impious and cruel hierarchy: while many devout and learned writers, and a multitude of their readers, rejoiced to discern any coincidence between passing events and the prophecies of the fall of antichrist. In looking round on the states that support this enormous usurpation on the liberty, the reason, and the conscience of mankind, it was notorious that Spain and Portugal were the most faithful sub- jects of the slavery and abettors of the tyranny. When the recent movement in Spain became so extensive as apparently to promise to raise the whole effective population in arms, we began to entertain a most earnest sentiment, something be- tween the desponding desire and the hope, that now, at last, not only a repelling boundary, much more lofty and impervious than the Pyrenees, would be raised against the irruptions, on one side, at least, of the grand tyrant of Europe, but also that, in some way or other, the strongest hold of popery would be eventually shaken into ruins. It was not to be expected that any direct measures, for reducing the inveterate ascendency of the popish establishment, would form a part of the first revo- lutionary proceedings. But, as we trusted that all the genius and knowledge in the country would be called forth by the great occasion, and that the most able, enlightened, and liberal men would soon come to occupy the vacated powers of govern- ment, we flattered ourselves they would be too wise, as states- men, to be bigoted as catholics. We presumed they could not but feel that the freedom which deserved to be sought at the expense of a prolonged and direful conflict with the greatest military power the world ever saw, would remain imperfect, dishonoured, and in a great measure useless, unless something were at least gradually effected, for reducing that despotism of superstition, which would else be a fatal obstacle to all grand schemes of national improvement. We thought that the great commotion, which would excite throughout the whole nation twenty times more bold thought and strong passion, than had prevailed in it at any one period for centuries past, would give 17 374 soutiiey's cheonicxe oy the cid. such a shock to the dominion of superstition, as to loosen and crack all its impositions and institutions. And why should we forbear to add, that we had a new ground of hope, when this liberal and protestant nation determined to put forth all its im- mense strength in aid of the Spanish cause, and when it was avowed in both countries that without this aid that cause could not triumph ? It was quite natural to conclude, that this pro- testant nation, which had but very recently testified its anti- pathy to popery with an ardour of zeal almost flaming into fanaticism, would accompany this assistance, if not with the stipulated condition, at least with the most powerful recom- mendation, of some remission of the rigours of spiritual slavery; a recommendation which, under such circumstances, could not have failed to be effectual. Thus, we had begun to indulge anticipations of momentous changes in favour of intellect, conscience, and religion, to arise from the great movement in assertion of national liberty. "When, however, in the simplicity of our hearts, we began to give vent to some of these imaginations, in such little humble circles of politicians as we can be supposed to be admitted in, we found our noiions received with a smile of contempt. We were told, that these are not times for recalling the anti- quated trifling controversies of divines about popery and pro- testantism ; that enlightened politicians are now of opinion, that the iniquitous institutions of the superstition of any country ought to be held sacred and inviolate in that country ; that if a few protestants have sometimes got themselves into the dun- geons of the inquisition, it was their own fault, as they might have gone quietly to mass like their neighbours ; that, in short, any such concerns as that of securing such things as liberty of religious profession andAvorship, are altogether be- neath the notice of states, and those who preside over them, ' in great conjunctures of their aflfairs. We were rather plainly told, that such grand events as those of the present time are not for the understandings of persons who can never advert to any great subject without making it little by some conceit about Providence, and whose first grovelling anxiety and last, in political commotions and revolutions, fixes itself on no greater an object than what it calls the advancement of pure religion, — meaning perhaps, in truth, nothing better than the progress of methodism. On this we betook cmselves, for a while, to the silent ob- SOUTHEY S CHRONICLE OF THE CID. 375 servations of events and opinions, and soon perceived that we had indeed entertained a very fantastic kind of sentiments. Except a number of religionists of the most antiquated stamp, nobody seemed to recollect any harm that popish intolerance had ever done ; the inquisition was almost become venerable, as a fortress of the faith against modern intidelity ; at any rate, it was a powerful support of the ancient established order of things ; a most bigoted tribe of priests had our cordial license to hunt heretics, and keep the people in the most wretched and debasing ignorance, if they would only make sanguinary ad- dresses (many of them were in the most savage style) to rouse the population to war. Let but the enemy be destroyed, and the conquerors might celebrate their victory, for any thing our na- tion seemed to care, with an auto dafe. The xerj fortresses, that Englishmen might shed their blood in recovering from the enemy, might be allowed to become, the following year or month, the prisons of those who wished for liberty to profess the faith of their generous deliverers. All were enthusiastic, and very justly so, for the rescue of Spain and Portugal ; go- vernors and people, debaters, newswriters, reviewers, all breathed fire against Attilla and his barbarians ; and when these invaders were exterminated, the glorious result Mas to be — what was it to be ? what in all reason ought it to be ? As far as w^e could understand, it was to be a full restoration of that order of things, under which those countries had, for ages, invariably presented the most melancholy spectacle of imprisoned mind, of tyrannic superstition, and of national pros- tration, in all Europe. We say, a full restoration ; for there was not, that we remember, a single particular of the whole wretched economy specified for reformation, in the event of success, or as a condition of our powerful and expensive co- operation to secure it. That great improvement of modern times, the division of labour, may have extended much further than we were aware. In some past periods there have been in England politicians and statesmen of very great note in their day, who assumed it as a part of their vocation, to promote, to the utmost of their power, in their transactions with allies, the security of con- scientious men and reforming reasoners, against the per- secuting malice of a spiritual tyranny. It may be, that now the narrowed province of this class of men no longer includes this concern. This may be ; — but then another thing also 376 southey's chronicle or the cid. may be ; if they have exckided from their department a con- cern which the Divine Governor has included within their duty, it may be that schemes and enterprises, in professed vin- dication of liberty, are, on account of this indifference or con- tempt, shown to the most sacred branch of liberty, destined to fail. The division of labour might be carried so far as to be fatal ; if the officers and crew of a damaged ship at sea, should choose to say, that their business is to navigate the vessel and defend it against the enemy, and that as to the leak, which is fast filling the hold, that belongs to the shipwright's busi- ness in the port, the consequence would not be very doubtful. We began to fear, a good many months since, that such a fate awaited our grand undertaking in favour of Spain. For the last twenty years, it had appeared most evident, that Provi- dence was hastening the fall of incomparably the most dread- ful tyrant that ever arrogated the dominion of Europe, — the popish superstition ; it had become the general persuasion of wise and good men, both from examining the Scriptures, and observing the course of events, that this divine process of emancipation, which had been so ardently longed and prayed for by millions of the devoutest and holiest men that ever in- habited the earth, would proceed rapidly to its completion ; and therefore it was impossible to repel the conviction, in- dependently of all calculations of comparative military forces, that the mightiest effort in the power of any nation to make, if a chief object of that effort was absolutely to maintain the popish system in all its ancient rigour, must fail ; and that any other nation, especially if a protestant nation, lending its as- sistance on such terms as to adopt and promote this object, must eventually retire with disaster and humiliation. This object, in its most decided form, was invariably avowed in Spain ; and as far as the public are yet informed, the whole resources of this country were pledged, without a stipulation or a remon- strance against a system which would doom any advocate of pure religion to imprisonment, or tortures, or death. Our poli- ticians may say it was not within their province, " not in their competence," to take account of any such matters ; but nei- ther, therefore, was it permitted to be in their competence, with the whole vast means of this country at their disposal, to accomplish any part of the great political project. A most signal fatality has appeared to accompany every measure and movement ; the results are before us ; Spain is overwhelmed, southey's chronicle of the cid. 877 and our armies, after months and months of inefficiency and ostentation, are driven out under circumstances of the utmost affliction and mortification, and followed by the most bitter taunt that ever stung this nation, that " in spite of the English, the inquisition, the overgrown monkish establishments, and the oppressive privileges of the nobles, have ceased to exist in Spain." What a memorable fact it will be in the history of these times, that the enlightened nation, which had so long been the grand champion of protestantism, should have justly incurred this poignant and triumphant reproach from a con- queror, who is himself a pretended papist! The wonder, how- ever, will relate solely to the principles on which the enter- prise was undertaken ; there will be no wonder at the con- sequence : if one of the most emphatic petitions which good men could have concurred to address to Heaven, for the Spanish people, would have been, that such institutions might fall, — and if the intimations of revelation combined with the recent and contemporary train of events, to give solemn signs that the papal institutions were in fact just ready to fall, — what was the result to be reasonably apprehended, when a protestant nation should undertake to exert its utmost force that, as connected with the other establishments of the un- happy people, these institutions might stand ? Was it to be expected that out of pure favour to the English, as protestants, the Supreme Disposer would suspend his operations for de- stroying the popish domination ? We gladly believe there are times yet to come, when poli- ticians will be aware that the question, what monarch or what dynasty is to rule any particular portion of the earth, is an exceedingly trifling matter in the view of Him that governs it all, compared with the promotion or the repression of the cause of pure Christianity. How many more disastrous cal- culations and events are to enrich our history with melan- choly instruction for their benefit, remains to be seen ; and it is not difficult to imagine new occasions for practically try- ing, whether it is really a judicious principle in politics, for a Christian and protestant nation to lend its force and sanction formally to maintain and consolidate the most pernicious and cruel superstitions of every country, where it has an absolute or an influential power. This point should be decided ; and if all the experiments are to be made, on an assumption of the affirmative, it is not too much to anticipate that the series 878 may be very short, and that the result may be recorded on the monumental ruins of a great empire. Some readers may perhaps here allege, that the martial despot that has been successful, is also a supporter of super- stition ; that he inserted in the new constitution for Spain, framed at Bayonne, an article expressing that no religion but popery should be legally tolerated, and that he carried this into effect in agreeing to the first article of capitulation, pro- posed by the inhabitants of Madrid. We may answer, first, it cannot reasonably surprise us, if the Divine Being should manifest a much severer indignation against the formal sup- port of popish superstition, by a nation long eminent for zeal- ous protestantism, than against even the same support by a nation long equally eminent for its zealous popery. Secondly, though Napoleon does pretend, and in some degree practise, an adherence to the Romish church, yet all Europe sees that he is, in effect, its enemy and destroyer ; he treats some of its most sacred institutions with contempt, and for his own purposes is gradually abolishing the various organs of power that made it so formidable. As far, therefore, as an able, powerful, bad man, who does every thing from motives of selfish policy and ambition, may be a fit agent, under the divine government, for breaking up by degrees the dominion mider which reason and conscience have so long been re- duced to suffer, the present agitator of nations seems the right operator. We have thus endeavoured to explain how we soon began to despair, on a religious ground, of a cause, for the success of which our anxiety, in a political reference, most warmly sympathized with that of our countrymen in general. We will now venture one or two brief observations on the politi- cal grounds of hope, afforded by the first stages of the grand movement. That a nation in arms cannot be conquered, is perhaps a proposition, like many others that sound very well, of but little meaning. The thing cannot be realized ; there never can be a nation in arms. Say that the men capable of bear- ing arms, that is, not too young, nor too old, nor too un- healthy, are as much as a sixth part of the whole population ; this will indeed give a most formidable list in such a country as Spain. But then how evident it is, that only a slender minority of this enrolment will ever come into action. A southey's chronicle of the cid. 379 very large proportion of these competBnt men must be em- ploj^ed in preparing the furniture of war for those who ac- tually take the field ; a large proportion of them must attend to the indispensable concerns of agilculture ; millers, and numerous manufacturers and shopkeepers, must keep to their business,- if the population is to be regularly supplied with the most direct necessaries ; many of the enumerated men must stay to take care of their sick, their aged, or their infant relatives : in a catholic country a number are under eccle- siastical restriction ; a considerable number of men to write and print, are as necessary, in such a juncture, as men to fight ; many must be employed in every district, in concerns of council and police ; a number, in almost any imaginable war, will join the enemy, at any point where he has been signally successful. We will add only one other class, that is, cowards, who positively will not fight at all, and whom it would require more than half of those that will fight, to attempt to hunt and capture and coerce into battle ; of thesa there naturally must be a very large number in every nation of Europe ; and these, in addition to their timidity, will generally be sceptical enough as to the necessity of the war itself; such concessions as they would have made, and as they think ought to have been made, rather than provoke so dreadful an extremity, would have averted it. We have heard commonly enough, of late, of five or six hundred thousand warriors being ready to march, or even of a " million of heroes panting to rush on the enemy, and re- solved to conquer or perish ;" the absurdity of such flourishes might be apparent, on a moment's reflection, which is enough to convince us that though we may talk of " rising in a mass," and of a " nation in arms," it is in fact but a comparatively small proportion of the inhabitants physically capable of act- ing in arms, that can at any time, in any civilized country, be brought into military operation. Instead of the innumerable myriads which many of us seemed to imagine would drive on like the moving sand of the Arabian desert, and absolutely overwhelm the first large French army that should venture to present its front in Spain ; it was very doubtful whether the Spanish nation, even if as generally inspired with patriotic ardour as it is possible for any nation to be, and carrying to its utmost practicable extent the principle of rising in a mass, could have met the invader with a force numerically equal to S80 southey's chronicle of the cid. what he could without much difficulty bring, considering the immense number of his veterans at every moment in the pos- ture of war, the authority and promptitude of his decrees of conscription, and the vast extent of populous territory ovey which those conscriptions operate. And as to the nature of this popular levy, it was to be considered what an uncouth element of armies it would continue to be for months, what a want there was of men of commanding military talents, to throw the rude though brave masses into system, and at the same time how soon their quality, and the capacity of their leaders, were likely to be brought to the test by the unremit- ting assault of their rapid and pertinacious enemy. It was also to be inquired, where were arsenals and magazines 1 whence were half the requisite number of fire-arms to be obtained ? for as to other arms, there can be no greater folly than to talk of them. Possibly there are, in every country, a very small number of men so firm and so fierce that, with- out any other weapons than pikes, they would resolutely ad- vance to the encounter with musketry and artillery ; but as to the generality of the men that armies must be composed o^ we think their defeat is infallible, whatever their numbers may be, if under no other protection than their pikes they are confronted with lines of fire-arms. For, setting aside the real difierence of power between the two kinds of wea- pons, setting aside too the effect of manoeuvres, the influence of imagination will be great and fatal. To unpractised troops, at least, guns seem something more than mere M^eapons ; both by those that hold them, and those that meet them, it is almost felt as if they had a kind of formidable efficacy in themselves, their operation is so totally different from any other instrument that can be wielded by hmuan hands. The explosion, the flash, and the infliction of death, at a great distance, by a missile that cannot be seen or avoided, inspire in the possessor of the weapon a certain consciousness of being a much more powerful agent, than he could have been by an implement, which had no other force than just that which he could give it by the grasp and movement of his hand, and no effect at a distance. And this influence of imagination operates with double force on the man who is advancing against these fire-arms, while himself has only an inert piece of wood or iron ; he will look with despondency and contempt on his pointed stick, while the lines in his front southey's chronicle of the cid. 381 seem to be arrayed in thunder and lighting, while he is start- ling at the frequent hiss of bullets, and seeing his companions begin to fall. But there \vould be no end of enumerating the disadvan- tages, under which the Spanish insurrection was to encounter such a tremendous invasion ; and, even admitting that insur- rection to be as general and as enthusiastic as it was repre- sented, a sanguine expectation of its success was probably entertained by very few of our countrymen, after it was as- certained to the conviction of all that Bonaparte had nothing to fear on the side of Germany, though the earnest desire did sometimes assume the language of confident hope. Still, however, it was not the less certain, that a great and resolute nation might accomplish wonders, against the largest regular armies, and the most experienced commanders ; as history was at hand to show, by various examples, and eminently al)ove all others, that of the war of the French revolution. Certainly indeed, there was an ominous difference, in point of genius and system, between the leaders of the war against Spain and the commanders who had invaded France ; the highest genius, however, cannot work literally by magic ; and if the French legions could have been commanded by even still greater talents than those actually at their head, it was evident they must receive a dreadful shock if they M^ere to be fallen upon by several hundred thousand men, impelled by the same enthusiasm of valour and obstinacy of perseverance which first confounded and finally routed the grand armies of Brunswick, Clairfait, and Saxe Coburg ; in the varieties of the conflict, besides, all the latent genius in the patriotic army would flame out, and declare whom nature had appointed, in contempt of all laws of rank, to the command. But then, there must be an adequate cause to inspire the popular levies with this heroic fury, which should persist to burn and to fight, in spite of all checks, and disasters, in fortress and in field, whether the battalions were in order or confusion, whe- ther they found themselves separated into small bodies, or thrown together in a ponderous mass. And it might fairly be assumed, at the commencement of the Spanish revolution, that no less cause, no other cause, than that which had pro- duced this grand effect in the French levy en masse, would now produce it in that of Spain. All know that the cause which operated thus on the revolutionary armies of France, 17* 382 was the passion for liberty, continually inflamed to a state of enthusiasm, by having the object most simply and conspicu- ously placed in view. The object was placed before them, if we may so express it, " full orbed ;" it was liberty, not in the partial sense merely of being freed from the power and interference of the foreign monarchs who had sent the armies they were combating, and whose design, they had little doubt, it was to divide France among them as a conquest, and its people as slaves ; but in the animating sense, also, of being no longer the subjects of a despot at home. A general could circulate through his camp an address like the following : — " Brave citizens, soldiers of liberty ! prepare for battle ; to drive these legions of Austria and Prussia from your country, which is henceforth to be the land of freedom. Your an- cestors, in such times as those of Louis the Fourteenth, were sent to war on these very plains, at the mandate of a cruel tyrant, and his detestable minions ; while they fought, with a forlorn and melancholy valour, their countrymen were all in chains, and a grand object for which they were to fight and bleed was, that their master might lose none of his power to keep them so. You, soldiers of liberty, are called to cele- brate in arms the commencement of a new era. By the heroic charge that shall dash these armies of insolent in- vaders in wrecks and fragments back on the countries from which they came, you will confirm the doom that has crushed the internal despotism of our country in the dust. The Bas- tile is down, there is an end of a profligate court and arbitrary power, of the exclusive rights and the arrogance of nobles, of the rapacity of farmers-general, and the domination of papal priests. The impositions that so long fixed our slavery, by fettering our minds, are broken away ; we have exploded the notion, as well as defied the power, of despotism ; we have proclaimed that all political power essentially resides in the people, and that those to whom its exercise is to be en- trusted, shall be chosen by the people, and most strictly ac- countable to them. We are a part of this emancipated and elevated people, and are boldly come forth to maintain their cause and our own. Is it not worthy of us to be brave in such a cause ? Does not this land of new-born liberty de- serve that we should fight for it like lions ? There, in our sight, are the armies that are come to make us all slaves again. Let us fall upon them directly, and drive them into the Rhine." 383 Every mind responded to such an appeal ; though imper- fectly organized at first, though in various instances unskil- fully or unfaithfully commanded, and though many times in a state of confusion and defeat, these half-disciplined battal- ions were " fraught with fire unquenchable ;" they astonished, and after a while intimidated, their veteran antagonists, by- returning incessantly to the charge ; they were continually re- inforced by more of their countrymen, animated with the same powerful sentiment, till at length the most famous legions and generals of Europe were overpowere(], and driven away by an irresistible torrent. We can remember to have read, in the accounts of those times, that one morning, after several days of severe conflict, and very partial success, in Alsace, General Pichegru signified to the army that he felt it needful to give them repose that day ; on which he was informed that they testified their disappointment, and expressed a strong and general wish to be led again to battle ; they were led accord- ingly. — It would be as much beside the purpose to discuss here the correctness of that idea of liberty, which created such an almost preternatural energy in the people and the armies of France, as to notice what a wretched disappoint- ment, and what a hateful despotism, were in reserve to ter- minate all their prospects. It is sufficient for our object, that a bold, grand idea of liberty, involving the annihilation of every thing that had oppressed and galled the people, and sent their advocates to the Bastile, under the old despotism, and quite clear of all counteractive considerations of this and the other aristocratical distinction or monopoly to be held sacred, and this or the other individual or family to be maintained in power,— it is enough that this idea inspired the energy, which flung the relics of the invading armies at the palace gates of those who had sent them. It is enough that every one can imagine in an instant, what would have been the effect in the camp of Jourdan or Pichegru, if information had come from Paris, of the provisional government, anxious to secure the rights and happiness of the people, having settled that, though neither a prince of Austria or of Prussia, nor exactly Louis the Sixteenth, must be king, yet the allegiance of the nation was inviolably due to some individual of the family, the Duke of Chartres for instance, on whose accession the government would go on in the same wise and popular manner that it had done a hmidred years past. 884 SOUTHEY S CHRONICLE OF THE CID. The reader has anticipated all we could say in the applica- tion of these hints to the recent movement of the Spanish people. We shall content ourselves wdth very few words, as there is now probably no great difference of opinion among thinking men, relative to the original and progressive proba- bilities attendant on this memorable event. One single short question disposes of the whole speculation : Has liberty, in the sense in which alone it is of importance to a people, ever been fairly set before the Spanish nation ? It is of the essence of this question, to reflect a moment on the condition of the Spanish nation previously to this event ; we mean their condition as justly imputable to their own sovereigns, and their own system of government, exclusively of what evils may have accrued to them of late years from the French intrigues and ascendency in their court. And according to all accounts, that condition was deplorable. Taken in a collec- tive view, the people were ignorant, indolent, poor, dirty, and extravagantly superstitious, fond of tawdry shows and cruel sports, strangers, in a great measure, to ingenious and mechanic arts, stationary in almost all the points of civiliza- tion in which the other countries of Europe are advancing, hampered by a clumsy and perverse judicature, in short, bear- ing the most flagrant marks of an incorrigibly bad govern- ment. Thus matters had gone on during the reigns of suc- cessive monarchs, and during the reign of probably the last of the Bourbons in Spain, Charles the Fourth. At length, in consequence of we know not what intrigues and piivate arrangements, the sovereignty passed suddenly from him into the hands of his son, not, of course, without expostulation and repugnance on the part of the father, whose rights, according to all orthodox notions on the subject, Avere grossly violated by the transfer. All this \vhile, however, a powerful neighbour, whose tenets concerning kingly rights, saving and excepting those of himself and his royal brothers, are deemed highly heretical, had his schemes of transfer prepared, and his ma- chines in operation ; and lo ! in a moment both the kings vanish from Spain, and " our brother Joseph " succeeds to the throne. It was found that the two monarchs had been fasci- nated, as we read of unfortunate birds sometimes being, to throw themselves directly into the mouth of the great serpent. At this juncture began the commotion which has so deeply and justly interested all Europe. A just indignation at the SOUTHEY S CHRONICLE OF THE CID. 385 base and treacherous proceedings of Napoleon, rose so high, in some parts of the country, as to issue in an energetic call of the whole nation to arms. This was a tremendous crisis, and a most awful summons ; for it might be held certain, that the enemy, defied and challenged in this unexpected quarter, and this new manner, would discharge the whole collected thunders of his martial empire, and, even if unsuccessful, would desperately prosecute the contest with the last battalion that would adhere to his standard. And if such would be his determination, what a scene the patriots had before them ! If the emergency should prove to require it, he would be able, at a moderate computation, to bring three hundred thousand soldiers, in successive armies, into Spain. It would be idle to calculate that such a force, a large proportion of it veterans accustomed to victory, and commanded by such a set of generals as never M^ere combined in any other service, could be everywhere encountered, and finally repelled, by less than four or five hundred thousand of the patriots. And if the war should continue even no more than six or eight months, how many great battles would there be, beside the incessant course of partial actions and bloody smirmishes 1 Would it have been at all an extravagant prediction that, during so many months of such a ^var, two hundred thousand devoted Spaniards might perish? And then Avhat miseries would be sutfered by the defenceless inhabitants, what num- bers of aged and sick persons, and women and children, would be exposed to terror, to want, and in many cases even to death ; what desolation of the country, what destruction of habitations, what ruin of agriculture, and what famine, as the probable consummation of all ! This picture is inexpressibly too faint for the prospect, which was, or ought to have been, distinctly presented to the minds of those who first summoned, and all who seconded them in summoning, their countrymen to combat with the whole power of France. Now then, we may ask, solemnly, Mhat was that object, for the attainment of which the country was to be laid open to this most gigantic and enormous train of horrors 1 What was that ultimate transcendent felicity, the thought of which was to inspire such multitudes of men with the perfectly new sentiment, a con- tempt of wounds and death ; which was to animate the mothers, wives, sisters, and daughters of these men to urge them on to battle, and which was to reconcile the whole 386 southey's chronicle of the cid. population to have their countiy placed, for months, in a situa- tion about parallel to that of a forest infested by tigers ? At the very least, that object could be no less than the noblest system of national liberty that ever blessed any people. Let our readers recall to mind the manifestoes, and ad- dresses to the people, issued by the provincial Juntas that took the lead, and judge whether this was the object. Some of those publications were strongly conceived, and eloquently expressed. They powerfully expatiated on the treacherous arts by which the nation and the royal family had been in- veigled, on the excesses committed in some places by the French troops, and on the glory of revenge ; on which last topic we regretted to see the patriots adopting a language, and endeavouring to rouse a spirit, of savage ferocity, tit only for the most barbarous age. But the accomplishment of revenge could be only a very subordinate object with the patriotic Juntas ; nor could it be expected to prove an object adequate, in those parts of the country which had not immediately suffered or witnessed the outrages committed by the French, to stimulate the population to turn their meadows into fields of battle, and expose their persons to the sword ; especially as it would be obvious that as soon as Joseph should be enthroned, the excesses of the French must, even for his sake, cease. What, then, it must still be asked, was the grand ultimate ob- ject to be attained by so dreadful a war, even presuming it must be successful 1 And, as far as we have at any time been able to discover, the grand, the sublime object, which was to animate the people to such a warfare, to compensate its infinity of miseries, and to crown the final victory, was no other than a return to the old state of things, with the mere exception of French influence, and the mischievous power of the Prince of the Peace, at the Spanish court. None of the indispensable innovations, none of the grand reforms, for the want of which that people had been so long pitied or despised by all the civilized world, were specifically held out, as any part of the incitement or the prize ; no limitations of the royal power, or the royal expenses, no reduction of the privileges of the aristocracy, no restraints on ecclesiastical arrogance, no political existence to be given to the people, no method of en- abling them to participate or influence their government, no abrogation of the barbarous municipal regulations against the freedom of trade, no improvements of political economy that southey's chronicle of the cid. 387 should contribute to supply clothes to those in rags, and food to those almost starving. No, there was nothing of all this held out to the people ; they were to draw on them, to fight, and to expel, the whole power of France, at the dreadful cost that we have described, and then Ferdinand and the old government were to be triumphantly restored, and all would be well ! Hundreds of thousands of them were summoned to rush out gallantly to perish, in order that the remainder might continue to be the poor, ragged, forlorn nation, that they were, and are. If a project for exciting the people to plunge into an un- fathomable gulf of miseries and death for such an object, may be forgiven to the statesmen and prelates of Spain, whose catholic imaginations are so stored with prodigies and miracles, what, however, will sober judges hereafter say of the politicians of England, at the memorable juncture ? By what reach of conjecture will it be possible to explain, how they, the enlightened inhabitants of a free country, in which they have so often eloquently declaimed on the glory of hav- ing permitted no despotism here, on the energy with Mhich noble ideas of liberty will inspire a people to resist the armies of a tyrant, and on the wretchedness of living under a government like that of Spain ; in what way can it be made intelligible, how these enlightened politicians should conceive it possible to rouse a whole people to arms, at the peril of such awful consequences, by any objects held out to them by the Juntas ? or should deem it a desirable thing if they could, — excepting, indeed, with the mere view of diverting the danger a while longer from our own country, and giving, in our stead, Spanish victims to the French sabres. What was Ferdinand, or any other individual, to the un- happy people of Spain, who were to leave their families, to have their cottages burnt, to famish, or to bleed for his sake ? What had he ever done for them, or attempted to do ? If he had been a thousand times more their friend than they had ever found him to be, by what law of justice or common sense could it be, that countless multitudes should go to be slaugh- tered on his account ? — not to notice the absurdity of sum- moning a nation to fight for a person who was, as to any possible connexion with them, to all intents, a nonentity. For a while, we still hoped, that the name of Ferdinand would be suffered to sink, by degrees, out of the concern ; and 388 that the project would assume, at length, the bold aspect of a really popular cause. In this hope, we anxiously waited the assembling of the Supreme Junta. At last they assembled, ve- rified their powers, and took the oath which they had solemnly framed. We read that oath, and have never since, for one instant, entertained the smallest hope of the Spanish cause. There were some most vague and insignificant expressions in that oath, about taking care of the interest of the nation ; but its absolute sum and substance was, popery and Ferdinand. The first of these, avowed in its utmost extent and grossness, we considered, as we have already attempted to explain, as enough to ensure the fate of the whole design, on account of its aspect relatively to the divine government ; and the latter, as furnishing far too insignificant a motive to animate a nation to battle. The Junta began by declaring they had no power to assemble the Cortez, in other words, that they could do nothing for the people ; they went on to restrict the freedom of the press, and now, — the world is ceasing to inquire what they are doing. No room remains for remarks on the measures of our government, relating to the vast preparations and armies pro- fessedly intended for the assistance of Spain ; what is worse, we have no room for adding many remarks on the book which has given occasion to this article. The Cid (i.e. Lord) Rodrigo Diaz was a most renowned hero, of the eleventh century, who was sometimes in the service of the Christian monarch of Spain, and sometimes maintained himself independent in his conquests from the Moorish part of the country. There are several ancient re- cords, and an epic poem, concerning him, in the Spanish language ; Mr. Southey has formed the present work, by combining and harmonizing the several relations together, faithfully translating, as he assures us, what he has selected from each, and noting, in the margin of each paragraph, the work, and the part of the work from which it is taken. The translation is in the antiquated English dialect, which appears to us to be, in general, pretty successfully supported. The story is something between a history and a romance ; and Mr. Southey has not attempted to distinguish what is true from what is fabulous ; the Spanish literature evidently sup- plied no means for doing this, nor would it have been worth while, had it been practicable, as the fabulous parts are pro- southey's chronicle of the cid. S89 bably quite as amusing as the true, and give as striking a picture of the times. In this view the work is very interest- ing. We are transported into an age and country, where the gentlemen go out to work in the morning, with their steeds and lances, as regularly as the farmers with their team and plough, and indeed, a good deal more so. The Cid surpasses all his contemporaries for diligence and success in such laudable occupation. His course of enterprise is so rapid, so uniformly successful, and so much of a piece in other re- spects, that in some parts of the book the mind is quite tired of following him. In many other parts, however, the narra- tive is eminently striking, especially in describing some of the single combats, and most of all, in the long account of an extraordinary court of justice, held on two young princes or noblemen, who had abused their wives, the daughters of the Cid. Nothing in the whole library of romantic history can exceed this narrative. The Cid appears a humane warrior, according to the standard of those times, and yet he could calmly be guilty of the most infernal cruelties ; for instance, burning alive many Moors, in the siege of Valencia. The destruction of " intidels," indeed, in any and every manner, seems to have been regarded as one of the noblest exercises of Christian virtue. Three or four of his constant companions in arms display such magnanimous bravery, and such an affectionate fidelity to him, as to excite the reader's interest and partiality in no small degree. A prominent feature of the story throughout, is the frequent recurrence of religious and superstitious ideas, in the discourse of the warriors, iii all situations. 390 MODERN EGYPTIANS. XX. MODERN EGYPTIANS. An Account of tlie Manners and Customs of the Modern Egyp- tians ; written in Egypt during the Years 1833, 4, and 5; partly from Notes made during a former Visit to that Country in the Years 1825, 6, 7, and 8. By Edward William Lane. A CURIOUS and reflective mind will not fall on many subjects more attractive than the relation of ancient regions, such as history and monuments have recorded them, to the same re- gions viewed in their modern and present state. It is striking to consider how widely they are, as it were, estranged from their primitive selves ; insomuch that the mere local and nominal identity has less power to retain them before us under the original idea fixed on the place and name, than their actual condition has to present them as domains of a foreign and alien character. They are seen divested to so great a degree, of that which had created a deep interest in contemplating them, that we consign them to a distant pro- vince of our imagination, where they are the objects of a reversed order of feelings. We regard them as having dis- owned themselves, while retaining their ancient names, and their position on the earth. We say, " divested to so great a degree ;" for if the regions be eminently remarkable for natural features — mountains, rivers, defiles, and peculiar productions — these do, indeed, continue to tell something of ancient times. In keeping under our view a groundwork of the scenes we had meditated on, they recall to us by association what once was there, and is there no longer. But they do so to excite a disturbance by incongruity. What is there ?iow, rises in the imagination to confound or overpower the images of what was there then. So that, till we can clear away this intrusion, we have an un- MODERN EGYPTIANS. 391 couth blending of the venerable ancient and the vulgar modern. Again ; there are seen in those territories striking relics of the human labours of the remote ages ; which are thus brought back more impressively to the imagination than by the most prominent features of nature. But these disclaim more decid- edly still, in the name of that departed world to which they entirely belong, all relationship with the existing economy of man and his concerns. They are emphatically solitary and estranged amidst that economy. Their aspect, in their gloom and ruin, is wholly to the past, as if signifying a disdain of all that later times have brought around them. And if, in some instances, man is trying to avail himself of some parts or ap- pendages of them for his ordinary uses of resort or dwelling, we may, by a poetical license of thought, imagine them loath- ing the desecration. Still, as the vulgarities do obtrude them- selves in contiguity, the contemplatist cannot wholly abstract himself from the annoyance. Some of those scenes of ruin, indeed, and especially and pre-eminently the tract and vast remaining masses of Babylon, are placed apart by their awful doom, as suffering no en- croachment and incongruous association of human occupancy or vicinity. There is no modern Babylon. It is secluded and alone in its desolation ; clear of all interference with its one character as monumental of ancient time and existence. If the contemplative spectator could sojourn there alone and with a sense of safety, his mind would be taken out of the ac- tual world, and carried away to the period of Babylon's mag- nificence, its multitudes, its triumphs, and the divine denuncia- tions of its catastrophe. Egypt has monuments of antiquity surpassing all others on the globe. History cannot tell when the most stupendous of them were constructed ; and it would be no improbable prophe- cy that they are destined to remain to the end of time. Those enormous constructions, assuming to rank with nature's an- cient works on the planet, and raised, as if to defy the powers of man and the elements and time to demolish them, by a ge- neration that retired into the impenetrable darkness of anti- quity when their work was done, stand on the surface in so- lemn relation to the subterraneous mansions of death. All the vestiges bear an aspect intensely and unalterably grave. There is inscribed on them a language which tells the inquirer 392 MODERN EGYPTIANS. that its import is not for him or the men of his times. Persons that lived thousands of years since remain in substance and form, death everkistingly embodied, as if to emblem to us the vast chasm, and the non-existence of relation, between their race and ours. A shade of mystery rests on the whole econo- my to which all these objects belonged. Add to this our as- sociations with the region from those memorable transactions and phenomena recorded in the sacred history, by which the imagination has been, so to speak, permanently located in it, as a field crowded with primeval interests and wonders. It may then be asserted, perhaps, that Egypt surpasses every tract of the world (we know not that Palestine is an exception) in the power of fascinating a contemplative spirit, as long as the contemplation shall dwell exclusively on the ancient scene. But there is a modern Egypt. And truly it is an immense transition from the supernatural phenomena, the stupendous constructions, the frowning grandeur, the veiled intelligence, the homage, almost to adoration, rendered to death, and the absorption of a nation's living powers in the passion for leav- ing impregnable monuments, in which after their brief mortal existence they should remain memorable forever, — to the pre- sent Egypt as described by Mr. Lane. But this Egypt, as it is spread around the wonderful spectacles which remain to give us partially an image of what once it was, disturbs the contem- plation by an interference of the coarse vulgar modern with the solemn superb ancient. At least to a reader who has not enjoyed the enviable privileges of beholding those spectacles, and so practically experiencing how much they may absorb and withdraw the mind from all that is around them, it would seem that the presence of a grovelling population, with their miserable abodes, and daily employments, combined with the knavish insolent annoyance of the wearers of a petty authori- ty, must press on the reflective spectator of pyramids, temples, and catacombs, with an effect extremely adverse to the musing abstraction in which he endeavours to carry his mind back to the ancient economy. As to any advantage to arise from con- trast, there is no need of it. And besides, the two things are too far in disproportion for contrast. Who would let hovels and paltry mosques come into comparison at all with the pyra- mids and the temple of Carnac ? Mr. Lane has surrendered to the antiquarian and imagina- tive tribe the vestiges of the ancient country, and strictly ad- MODERN EGYPTIANS. 393 hered to his purpose of describing its present state and people. This he has done in such a manner that his work may be con- sidered as nearly superseding all the slighter sketches convey- ed to us in the narratives of the numerous recent travellers. He has possessed the advantage over them of a protracted re- sidence, of having one special design to prosecute, of a com- petent mastery of the-language ; and of possessing a certain flexibility of adaptation to the notions and habits of the people, by which he has insinuated himself into a familiarity and confi- dence with them quite out of reach of any passing visitant. The result is a work surprisingly comprehensive and particu- lar. His vigilant inquisitiveness has gone into all the detail of dress, domestic manners, conventional observances, super- stitious notions and ceremonies, ordinary occupations, traffic, political economy, official administration, and characteristic di- versities of the several sections of the heterogeneous popula- tion ; which are exhibited with a minuteness and precision, to make us marvel at his untiring patience of investigation. All is set forth in the plain language of an honest intention and la- bour to give a matter-of-fact account of things, without any flourishing off into sentiment or ambitious speculation. It could not be so amusing a book as those Avhich have been made up of picturesque touches and incidents of adventure ; it necessarily partakes of what we are apt to call dry ; but it will be the repository to be consulted by every person who wants to know any thing about any part or circumstance of the character, habits, and condition, of the modern inhabitants of the old realms of the Pharaohs. The author's observations were chiefly made in Cairo, the capital, and its precincts ; but that portion of the country may, he says, be taken as very competently representing the ge- neral character and state of the nation, and of the Mahomedan world to a much wider extent than the Egyptian section ; for, says he, " In every point of view, INIusr (or Cairo) must be regarded as the first Arab city of our age ; and the manners and customs of its inhabitants are particularly interesting, as they are a combination of those which prevail most generally in the towns of Arabia, Syria, and the whole of Northern Africa, and in a great degree in Turkey. There is no other place in which we can obtain so complete a knowledge of the more civilized classes of the Arabs." It is out of the question to attempt any thing like an analy- 394 MODERN EGYPTIANS. sis of such a multitude and aggregate of particulars. All we can do is to make a few brief notices, here and there, in pass- ing over the eight hundred closely printed pages — ^a journey through which, though thus commodiously guided and put at our ease, it is really not a light adventure to follow the au- thor, who had himself, at every step, to make it with the slow- ness of the most marked and deliberate attention. Had he lived in the early times of the country, he would have been an excellent superintending officer to take note of each added stone, in one of the huge piles which consumed a whole life of a generation of labourers. His first observations respect the climate ; which, he says, is remarkably salubrious through the greater part of the year ; more so in the southern part of the Upper, though the heat is 10'^ higher there than in the Lower Egypt; where the ther- mometer, "in the depth of winter," (an expression of strange sound for Egypt,) in the afternoon, in the shade, is at from 50*^ to 60®; in the hottest season from 90^^ to 100'^; the heat still not very oppressive, being attempered by a northerly breeze. In default of the more pompous relations between the ancient and the modern, there is still in noble superabundance the plague of flies, lice, and other insect nuisances. Precautions more than formerly are adopted against the invasion of the plague, so named by eminence. But in 1835 it was intro- duced from Turkey, extended over the whole country, and car- ried off in Cairo alone 80,000, one third of the inhabitants. There is a very lengthened description, illustrated by nu- merous wood-cuts, of the houses, in all their diversities, pro- portions, and adjustments. The best of them seem such as may well content the "true believers," during their proba- tion for the more luxurious abodes promised them by the pro- phet ; "but the dwellings of the lower orders, particularly those of the peasants, are very mean ; mostly built of unbaked bricks ; some of them mere hovels." The villages are raised on the progressively accumulating and rising heaps, made by the ruin and rubbish of former ones ; thus maintaining a proper height above the inundation, by rising in proportion to the con- tinual rise of the alluvial plains and the bed of the river. The population, of which there is no authentic statement, can hardly, Mr. Lane thinks, be estimated at so many as 2,000,000, since its prodigious diminution by the pasha's sweeping conscriptions for his wars, of at least 200,000, that MODERN EGYPTIANS. 395 is, a full half of all the men fit for military service. This goes beyond the rate of our once terrible neighbour of France ; and surely threatens a similar eventual prostration to the minor po- tentate. The calculation for the several classes is, Mahome- dan Egyptians (peasants and townspeople,) 1,750,000; Chris- tian Egyptians (Copts,) 150,000; Osmanlees, or Turks,^10,- 000 ; Syrians, 5000 ; Greeks, 5000 ; Armenians, 2000 ; Jews, 5000. As dress is a main thing by which mankind all over the world wish to be taken account of, our author pays the Egyptians the compliment of dissecting and delineating theirs, through every article, and fold, and colour, and change, and through each grade of society, with a detail and critical precision which we are confident no tailor or mantua-maker in all Cairo could equal, even if as handy at the pen and pencil as at the needle. To us it appears, as shown in the engravings,* very ungainly and cumbrous in many of its modes. Draperies so unshaped, — and so hung, and loaded, and swathed on the figure, — as some of them appear, must impose a total unfitness for action, even for walking, more than a short measured amble ; and by the very quantity, garment heaped on garment, must greatly add to the grievance of heat. They needed not to outvie the customary Turkish costumes, in the ambition of casting a broad shadow on the ground. But of course this excess is the exclusive privilege and grace of the better sort, who can af- ford to parade a w^ardrobe, and are exempt from the humbler calls to action. The old and approved operation of walking is for them nearly out of the question. A handsome race of asses has the honour of saving them that trouble. Mr. Lane is pleased with the personal appearance of both sexes, about the period of maturity. But unfortunately the females " generally attain their highest degree of perfection at the age of fifteen or sixteen ;" when, and for a few years longer, many of them are very beautiful in figure and counte- nance ; but are under the doom of thenceforward declining ; till they have lost, at the age of forty, all the graces but those sometimes retained in the eyes ; which, " with few exceptions, * We may as well notice the wood-engravings here, once for all. They are after drawings by the author, in number exceeding a hundred : not of high pretensions in elegance of art ; but bearing, in their plain simplicity, strong marks of faithful representation. They were not meant, he says, " to embellish the pages, but to explain the text." 396 MODERN EGYPTIANS. are black, large, and of a long almond form, with long and beautiful lashes, and an exquisitively soft bewitching ex- pression ; eyes more beautiful can hardly be conceived : their charming eftect is much heightened by the concealment of the other features." We must take the describer's authority for what we have some difficulty to conceive, that this effect is also greatly heightened by a practice of blackening the edge of the eye-lids, both above and below the eye, with a powder called kolihl. For the antiquity of the practice, reference is made to the example of Jezebel, and to Ezekiel xxiii. 40. Another cosmetic device is the well-known use of henna leaves, to dye of a yellowish red or a deep orange colour the nails, tips of the fingers, palm of the hand, toes, and other parts of the feet. Children are regarded as a great blessing ; and with a reason subject to less exception than in many other parts of the world, if, as we are here told, their behaviour to their parents as they grew up is always exemplary. As a consequence that looks odd at first sight, their childhood is kept in a state disgustingly squalid ; even a lady finished off' in dress, and scenting with her perfumes the street through which she is walking, shall be seen leading her little favourite " with a face besmeared with dust, and clothes appearing as if they had been worn for months without ever being washed." This is from dread of the evil eye, which, vainly coveting the sweet creature, would blast it to spite the owner. But the mind is worse off than the person can ])e ; the state of education being as wretched as political slavery and religious superstition can require. The females are not educated at all. Very few of even the women of the higher order can read, or have learnt to say their prayers. They must not pray in the mosque, and need not pray at home. For boys there are numerous schools, in which, with the letters, they are taught to recite chapters of the koran. Writing is an accomplishment nearly confined to those intended for offices, or the services of the mosque. One of the very first elements of their instruction is "religious pride, with hatred of the Christians, and all sects but their own." A long chapter on Religion and Laws, after distinguishing the religious parties, respectively denominated after the doctors whose tenets they have adopted, recites in substance the doc- trines and prescriptions of the koran ; and goes through a MODERN EGYPTIANS. 397 minute detail of the formularies of devotion, an odious com- post of the ideas of the divine unity, power, and goodness, with the principles of a vile and virulent superstition ; the noxiousness of the latter destroying the practical good of the former, and vitiating even the good moral rules and senti- ments which are blended in the institute. The grave frivoli- ties, and grimaces of the ritual are a worthy decoration of the depravity of the principles. The Moslems of Egypt have their proportion of formalists and fanatics ; but collectively considered, they cannot make very high claims for that con- scientious faithfulness of observance, which some of our travelling describers of Turkey have taken pleasure in cele- brating and exaggerating. In the habits of many there is great laxity, and in not a few an almost total neglect. The rigours of their grand solemnity of the Ramadan, regarded as of more importance than any other religious appointment, are unscrupulously melted dow^n in secret by many of the wealthy classes. The majority, however, strictly keep the fast ; which, says Mr. Lane, " is fatal to numerous persons in a weak state of health." The pilgrimage to Mecca and Mount Ararat, once in every true believer's life, though nom- inally of comprehensive obligation, admits of some com- promise and exception in favour of poverty and ill health ; *' but many neglect the duty who cannot plead a lawful ex- cuse ; nor are they reproached for so doing." The inter- dicted wine and spirituous liquors are no strangers in the con- cealed recesses of many a Mahomedan dwelling. As to the one article of swine's flesh, it seems they are veritably and universally conscientious. The laws, conformably to the koran, concerning marriage, concubinage, and divorce, and the property adjustments in each case, are as multifarious as any Mahomedan or even. Christian jurisconsult, and as lax in morality as any libertine, could well desire. The worthy husband, when he conceives any dislike, or perhaps has too many on his hands, has only to say, " I divorce thee," or, "Thou art divorced," and to pay her some trifle as a return of a part of her dowry, which he had kept back from the first against such an occasion. He may take her again if the whim should take him, should she have no objection ; and in certain cases whether she con- sent or not. But a woman cannot separate herself from her husband against his will, unless for some very considerable 18 398 MODERN EGYPTIANS, fault on his part, such as cruel treatment or neglect; nor then without a process in the cadi's court. There are, however, fully as many provisions in the legal system in favour of women, as could be expected where they are held mentally and morally of such small account. Under the article Religion, it should be noticed that the imams are by no means so exclusively sacerdotal, consecrat- ed, privileged, and endowed a class as our Christian clergy are constituted. One point of distinction is, (rather hard on the imams, in the compaiative adjustment,) that they " enjoy no respect but what their reputed piety or learning may obtain them." Besides this, they are liable, for misconduct, to be displaced, with loss of salary. And while in the service of the mosque, of which the emolument is very small, they gain their livelihood chiefly by other employments, as tradesmen, schoolmasters, &:c. In looking at the chapter on Government, we must congrat- ulate Mr. Lane on Mahomed All's inability to read English. Otherwise we should think that if, in case of his being intro- duced into the presence, he were to catch sight of his own book, lying on the table or divan, it would be rather an alarm- ing spectacle. His rapid glance would alternate between the book and the visage of despotic power — ^the vulius instantis tyrannu For this part of the work is the picture of a nation tormented, plundered, exhausted, crushed down to extreme misery, under the hoofs of the whole troop of centaurs in au- thority. The pasha himself performs in grand fashion, and each subordinate official does his part. The people have never read of the locusts, and what became of them, in Pha- raoh's time ; or they would look with some passionate wishes toward the Red Sea. It is needless to say, that the term Government in this in- stance means nothing of theory. Nor is it a well-organized tyranny. Its chief possesses, in the exertion of an iron force of will, sufficient ascendency to make the disordered consist- ence of the state work to his own purposes ; but not enough to reduce it to a system, in which the parts should work to- gether as commodiously, with as little secondary mischief, as possible, in maintaining and perfecting the one imperial mis- chief of a relentless despotism. Indeed it would seem that he does not care, as long as that can be maintained, what it may cost to the human mass over which it is exercised. As MODERN EGYPTIANS. 399 a matter of feeling merely, that is nothing wonderful ; but it is somewhat strange that, in simple policy and foresight, he should not be more economical of the harassment and con- sumption of the living and all other materials M'hich are to con- stitute his state ; and the ruin of which must render his do- mination worthless to him. By a rapacious monopoly, and a taxation which watches every thing that grows just in order to crop it, he extinguishes all the incentives to industry and im- provement, in the agricultural interest especially, but those ap- plied by brute force. One of the most iniquitous, and at the same time reckless, of the measures in unsparing prosecution is, that of making himself lord paramount, plainly the absolute owner, of the land, by taking it away from the proprietors, with the semblance of giving them an equivalent or compensation, in pensions for life ; which he pays as long as he pleases or finds convenient ; and which at all events leave the families of the once rightful possessors consigned at last to the condi- tion of serfs or of total destitution. He has laid his talons also on the endowments of religious and charitable institutions. His revenue is understood to amount to three millions sterling. But the section is occupied chiefly with an account of the several courts of law, and other offices of administration. And it just tells how every thing is managed as rogues would have it ; by bribery, falsification, perjury, oppression of the weak, and collusion, as far as the respective corrupt interests of the parties will admit of it, among the strong. There is a curious detailed relation of a concerted plan to defraud a merchant's orphan daughter of her father's property. It had been brought, through all due legal formalities, to a prosperous consumma- tion — the villains in actual possession — when it was bloM n up by so rare a thing as the resolute intervention of a high pub- lic officer of iiiflexible integrity. Another story describes an act of summary retribution, not surpassed in fantastic barbar- ism by any judicial transaction in the whole annals of rude tribes and times. We are sorry not to have room to insert it at full length, because the admirably graphic and dramatic ef- fect is lost in a bare statement of the facts ; w^hich are these : The nazir (collecting officer of a village) demanded of a poor peasant sixty rivals, equal to about thirty shillings, which he was wholly unable to pay, his sole property being a cow, which at once supported his family by her milk and ploughed his 400 MODERN EGYPTIANS. small piece of ground. The officer seized the cow, had it cut up in sixty pieces, and summoned sixty peasants, with a com- mand to take each a piece and pay down a riyal, the butcher receiving the head in pa} ment for his work. Thus the requir- ed sum was realized. The ruined peasant went with his la- mentable tale to the superior officer, Defterdar, of the district, who instantly ordered before him all the parties, the collector, the sixty purchasers, and the butcher. After due, but short inquisition, he ordered the butcher to serve out the collector as he had the cow, cutting the body in sixty pieces. As the cow had been sold at but half its value, he commanded each of the former purchasers to take his piece of the collector and pay two riyals ; the butcher receiving, as before, the head for his trouble. Not a man, during the proceeding, had presumed to utter a syllable in remonstrance. The hundred and twenty riyals were then given to the poor peasant. The mode of living, that is to say, the system (for so it may claim to be named) of eating and drinking, with the adjunct and supplementary luxuries, is set forth in all its apparatus, varieties, and ceremonial, as in practice in the higher classes of the city people ; an affair of careful interest and study ; though falling far enough short of the sumptuousness and waste of certain Christian capitals. This must always be the chief resource of combined ignorance, indolence, and wealth. The Egyptian gentry, all who can atford to have nothing to do but indulge and amuse themselves, are a lazy tribe. Nor is it said that they suffer, in any great degree, the plague and pun- ishment of laziness in the shape of ennui. It does not appear but they get life along with tolerable complacency, between their reflections, their gossiping visits and lounges, their reli- gious formalities, and their pipes. This last article is a fa- vourite and inseparable com{)anion, seen in close fellowship with the Moslem all the day long, in his hand, or placed beside him, or carried by his attendant when he walks or rides. Even the women, the ladies, are in great familiarity with it, but have a refined sort of tobacco, of which the smoke serves as a kind of perfume. Like other favourites, the pipe is made an object of vanity and a subject of decoration, the mouth-piece often costing, between material and ornamental device, from two to three pounds sterling. The tranquillity of indolence and luxury is not so entire but ■that the stimulus of some bustling occasion is highly welcome. MODERN EGYPTIANS. 401 As if for the purpose of contributing this benefit on the widest scale, the marriages of persons of any account are celebrated in a succession of public shows, processions, and racket, in most barbarian contempt of all that good taste would dictate in such an affair — if we may be allowed to apply that epithet af- ter being reminded that, in society pretending to the most fin- ished civilization, that transaction is sometimes profaned with proclamation, parade, and noisy hilarity. In odd contrast with this flaring and vociferous publicity, described through all its shows and changes by our author, is the circumstance that the bridegroom is not permitted to see the face of the bride, absolutely cannot know whether he shall like her or not, till the contract is affirmed, and the whole ceremonial, after sev- eral days of it, coming to an end. He is then introduced to see her without her veil ; and there is a party waiting outside for an appointed sign that he is pleased or content with this first glance^ of what he is to be — we were unwittingly going to say — looking at for life. But no ; he may rid himself of her when- ever he has a mind. The facility of cutting the tie has been mentioned already ; but Mr. Lane goes into ampler detail in the chapters on marriage and the harem. The slenderness of the conjugal bond yields to the men the substantial advantage of variety and change, without the trouble and expense of polygamy, for which the Mahomedan law gives so large a privilege. The pluralists in this line are chiefly among the lower order, where, instead of incurring an expense, the man may turn the venture to a profit, by taking wives who will consent to work for him. But, taking all to- gether, Mr. Lane thinks "that not more than one husband in twenty has two wives." Sometimes in addition to the one, a slave is held in the combined capacity of servant and paramour. In exposing the arrangements of the harem, the author repre- sents the condition of the inmates as not so consciously unhap- py as is commonly imagined ; the wretchedness incidental to mental vacuity being averted by employment in ornamental works, by much real gayety, and by the liberty, under precau- tionary attendance of course, of going on visits and little rides about the city. As to the husband's vigilance, we are told that any obvious deficiency of it would be deemed by an Egyptian lady an affront, as betraying a want of due regard tor her. It is needless to mention that all females, but those of the lower order, are veiled up to the eyes when they appear in public : 402 MODERN EGYPTIANS. and in the house also, whenever there would be a chance of their being seen by any of the other sex, except the very few who are privileged by relationship. What a degraded esti- mate of half the race of rational creatures is implied in this whole system of precaution, preclusion, and concealment ! The description of the indolent and voluptuous life of the higher classes, inhabiting the metropolis and great towns, stands in flagrant contrast with the condition of those at the bottom of the scale ; especially the peasantry, who are sus- tained in their ill-rewarded toils by a diet on which we may wonder how they can preserve strength to labour at all, or even to live. But how earnestly this poor lot of existence is clung to in preference to the military service, may be seen in the expedients employed by parents to save their sons from that destination. It is fortunate for these Moslems not to have a great variety of subjects to study ; for the tax on their time and faculties for the complete mastery, in knowledge and practice, of the code alone of salutations, compliments, and other verbal civilities, would leave little chance for their proficiency in other learn- ing. There are settled classical forms of speech for all manner of social occasions and incidents, even down to that of yawning ; on which occurrence the true believer is to ap- ply the back of his left hand to his mouth, and say, "I seek refuge with God from Satan the accursed." The ungraceful act, however, is rather to be avoided as much as may be ; and for a much better reason than any thing against it on the score of grace or politeness ; " for it is believed that the devil is in the habit of leaping into a gaping mouth." It is not stated whether that incursion be in any degree attracted by the circumstance that the Egyptian mouth is always filled with smoke. " The ordinary set compliments in use in Egyptian society," says Mr. Lane, " are so numerous, that a dozen pages of this work would not suffice for the mention of those which may be heard almost every day." Very inconvenient and onerous as this appears in one view, it is commodious in another, as saving the trouble of any strain on the inventive faculty. The void of knowledge is occupied by an ample order and disorder of superstitions, to the greater portion of mankind a more acceptable mental possession ; inasmuch as it is a thing far more easy and of more lively excitement to indulge the imagination than to exercise the understanding. Superstition, MODERN EGYPTIANS. 403 besides, lias the advantage over sober truth of bringing its false creations into more intimate contact with the passions of hope and fear, especially the latter — -except in the case of persons of the most extraordinary piety. Nay, it presses closer on the mind than all the objects of the senses, and in many instances constitutes the impressive force of those very objects. For example, our author represents the belief of these Islamites in Gliin (Genii) as subjecting them to a per- petual haunting of their effective good or evil (but especially evil) intervention, in all times and places, and in every thing they do. These invisible agents, some of them " true be- lievers," some of them malignant infidels, denominated Effreets, and being the more powerful order, are deemed to pervade the-earth and the sky, and to be ready to take offence at the most common actions of life ; so that it is prudent to ex- claim or mutter, " Destoor,'' that is, "Permission," by way of deprecation, on letting a bucket down into a well, lighting a fire, or throwing water on the ground. They are the actuating spirits of some of the dangerous commotions of the elements, such as the whirlwinds of sand. Against the ginee approach- ing in that fashion, the most approved charm is to bawl out, " Iron, thou unlucky ! " as the genii are supposed to have a great dread of that metal. Some of them are believed to assume, occasionally or constantly, the form of dogs, cats, or other brutes ; and among a number of characteristic anec- dotes is the story of what one of the most illuminated sages of the country, recently deceased, who had written several works on various sciences, used to relate (if seriously, which is im- plied) of his attendant ginee in the person of a cat ; evincing a debility or perversion of intellect almost incredible. The veneration among the Mahomedans for idiots is better accounted for than we had imagined ; the case being that "the mind of the idiot is (literally) in heaven, while his grosser part mingles among ordinary mortals ; consequently he is considered an especial favourite of heaven." The order of persons holding the repute of saints forfeit none of their respect by taking a practical dispensation from the rules of morality, decency, and religion. At the head of them is a personage of peculiar and pre-eminent sanctity, denominated Ckooth; vv^ho is believed to be here, or to be there, but nobody can certainly tell where ; for he is never seen so as to be recognised at any of the stations supposed to be favoured with 404 MODERN EGYPTIANS. his presence. There is so strong a presumption of his being ensconsed behind the constantly turned-back half of one of the city gates, that " Numbers of persons afflicted with the headache drive a nail into the door to charm away the pain ; and many sufferers from the toothache extract a tooth, and insert it in a crevice of the door, or fix it in some other way, to insure their not being attacked again by the same mrlady. Some curious individuals often try to peep behind the door, in the vam hope of catching a ghmpse of the Ckootb, should he happen to be there, and not at the moment m visible. He is believed to transport himself from Mecca to Cairo in an instant, and also from any one place to anotber. He wan- ders throughout the whole world, among persons of every religion, wbose appearance, dress, and language he assumes : and distributes to mankind, chiefly through the subordinate welees (saints) evils and blessings, the awards of destiny." There is a notion among many that the ckootbs are ap- pointed in succession by Elijah, whom they consider as the Ckootb of his time, and acknowledge that he never died. Some amusingly ridiculous stories relating to the powers, vocations, and habits of the welees are recited by Mr. Lane, who says they are believed by persons who, in many respects, evince good sense ; and that to laugh, or express discredit, would give great offence. The coveted honour of being reckoned among the welees, or saints, is conceded, in repute, to a few only of a numerous and less sacred order, the Durvveeshes (dervises) ; who still are made of some better material than ordinary mortals ; have rites of initiation; some not very defined connexion with re- ligious offices ; and are classed under four distinctive denomi- nations. Some of them figure in the exercise of repeating the name of Allah, with a few other words interjected, as long as the vocal organs can sustain the task ; " accompanying their ejaculations or chants with a motion of the head, or of the whole body, or of the arms. From long habit they are able to continue these exercises for a surprising length of time without intermission." Some of them excel in mountebank feats, of thrusting iron spikes into their bodies, eating glass or burning coals, and live serpents. But the majority seem to employ themselves chiefly in the more ordinary, honest, and useful occupations. On some public occasions the author witnessed the most ambitious exploits of the fine performers. The dancing and whirling exhibition does not appear to have equalled what is described as seen in Constantinople. But MODERN EGYPTIANS. 405 that of fire-eating with impunity was a more wonder-making spectacle tlian any feats of agility could have been. But something much more strange than this is done in Egypt, and probably no where else. Mr. Lane had heard from English residents in Cairo such accounts of a modern Jannes or Jambres that it would have evinced an inexcusable want of curiosity not to seek an interviews There was intro- duced to him a iine-looking man, affable and unaffected in his conversation, who had no reluctance or fear to put his powers to the test before the most shrewd or suspicious inspector. The preparatory ceremony was to write on a paper in Arabic (which he readily showed to Mr. Lane, who has given a translation) an invocation to two genii, his "familiar spirits," named Turshoon and Turyooshoon* This was cut in slips, which w^ere successively throw^n together w^ith some incense, on the fire in a chafing-dish, w^hile the process of incantation was going on, in an indistinct muttering by the magician — not, to be sure, a very imposing kind of spell, and more adapted to excite suspicion than create credulity. It was necessary there should be an intermediate person between him and the inquisitive observer. And this might be " a boy, not arrived at puberty, a virgin, a black female slave, or a pregnant woman ;" a rule of fitness seemingly odd and arbi- trary enough. A boy was brought in from the street, by a chance selection, made by Mr. Lane himself, from a number who were returning from a manufactory. He is very particu- lar and positive in asserting that there was not, and could not be, any manner of collusion. A reed-pen and ink w^ere sup- plied by Mr. Lane himself (as the paper for the charm and the scissors for cutting it had also been) at the request of the magician ; who then drew " a magic square " in the palm of the boy's hand, with Arabic numerals marked on its margin, and a blot of ink, less than a sixpence, in the middle. So far in sight of Mr. Lane, who has given the diagram on his page; what might come next was not to be seen by him, but de- scribed by the boy. The spot of ink was to become the ground, or scene, or mirror, of the objects required to appear. The room being filled with smoke of the incense, the magician interrupted his muttering to ask the boy \vhether he saw any • In a note Mr. Lane says, *' He professed tome that his wonders were effected by the ag-ency of good spirits ; but to others he has said the re- verse ; that his magic is satanic." 18* 406 MODEEN EGYPTIANS. thing, and was answered, " no ; " but soon after, with signs of fear, the boy said, " I see a man sweeping the ground." He was then directed to call, in succession, for a long series of spectacles, some of them consisting of a variety of objects and movements ; and he described them distinctly, in form, colour, number, and change of action, in such prompt, plain manner, as to leave no doubt that they were actually before his eyes. One example may suffice : " The boy was directed to say, ' Bring the sultan's tent, and pitch it.' This he did ; and in about a minute after, he said, ' Some men have brought the tent ; a large green tent ; they are pitchmg it;' and presently he added, ' They have set it up ' * Now,' said the magician, ' order the soldiers to come and pitch their camp around the tent of the sultan ' The boy did so; and immediately said, ' I see a great many soldiers with the tents ; they have pitched the tents ' He was then told to order that the soldiers should be drawn up in ranks ; and he presently said that he saw them thus arranged." — lb. p. 353. But if it might be suspected that all this, however inexpli- cable, was merely a predetermined show of phantasmagoria, an adjusted course of spectral illusion, the magician presently went beyond any conceivable reach of such an artifice. "He now addressed himself to me; and asked me if I wished the boy to see any person absent or dead. I named Lord Nelson ; of whom the boy had evidently never heard ; for it was with much difficulty that he pronounced the name, after several trials. The magician desired the boy to say to the sultan, " My master salutes thee, and desires thee to bring Lord Nelson ; bring him before my eyes that I may see him, speedily." The boy then said so, and almost immediately added, " A messenger is gone, and has returned, and brought a man dressed in a black suit of European clothes. The man has lost his left arm." He then paused for a moment or two ; and, looking more intently, and more closely, into the ink, he said, " No ; he has not lost his left arm, but it is placed to his breast " This correction made his description more striking than it had been without it ; since Lord Nelson generally had his empty sleeve at- tached to the breast of his coat ; but it was the right arm that he had lost. Without saying that I suspected the boy had made a mistake, I asked the magician whether the objects appeared in the ink as if actually before the eyes, or as if in a glass which makes the right appear as the left. He answered that they appeared as if in a mirror. This rendered the boy's description faultless." The author mentions in a note that the term here translated bJack is equally applied by the Egyptians to dark blue. Mr. Lane next called for a native Egyptian of his acquaint- ance, then and during many years before residing in England, MODERN EGYPTIANS. 407 wearing the European dress, and who had, at the time of Mr. Lane's going to Egypt, been long confined to his bed by illness. '' I thought that his name, one not very uncommon in Egypt, might make the boy describe him incorrectly ; though another boy, on the former visit of the magician, had described this same person as wearing a Eu- ropean dress, hke that in which I last saw him. In the present case the boy said, " Here is a man brought on a kind of bier, wrapped up in a sheet." This description would suit, supposing the person to be still con- fined to his bed, or if dead. The boy described his face as covered; and was told to order that it should be uncovered. This he did ; and then said, ' His face is pale ; and he has mustaches, but no beard ;' which was correct." -^ other persons were named, but the boy's descrip- i. " imperfect, though not altogether incorrect ; as re becoming gradually dim." Another boy . onli] -ee nothing ; the magician said he was "" s somewhat disappointed, be- " ^vhat had been witnessed, nds and countrymen, of u. "^Ve wish that, to accumiii. 'Uustration, he li ' '^es, with tl jbr:>i : ' , ,; J^^^^'^fe • crip- tior on of . one • f hisow^^ 1^, . . ..at no '^'" ^uy knowlc«Jgc. s r naving pc': en alluded to, describt'c-. ' ak dress '.ai ■ ,>laced to his head, wearu^ and with )ITl\:.. and the other raised behina -^ . if he were stepp I a w:^t. The description was exactly w - in every re- spe?* ■■ -' position of the hand was occasioned by an almost con- stai' •<"! tl'it of the foot or leg by a stift' knee, caused by a fa'i i . ''T^S' I ^^ assured that on this occasion the boy at.3r .1 person and thing called for. On another oc- casit ascribed with the most minute correctness, both as to . nd I might add several other cases in which the mag onishment in the sober minds of Englishmen of my c . 56. N '. i-i^oo statements being assumed as accurately true to matter of fact — and the testimony appears to be such as to pre- 408 MODERN EGYPTIANS. elude all doubt — what are Ave to think of the art or power which so prodigiously surpasses all known resources of me- chanical ingenuity and physical science ? Mr. Lane declines to adventure an opinion, resigning the affair to impenetrable mystery. But there will be no lack of confidence to pro- nounce, and the authority so pronouncing will assume the name and tone of philosophy, that there was nothing more in the whole matter than artful contrivance ? that there was no intervention of an intelligent agency extraneous to that of the immediate ostensible agent. But can this assumiption be made on any other ground than a prior general assumption that there is no such preternatural intervention in the system of the world ? But how to know that there is not ? The negative decision, pronounced in confident ignorance, is a conceited im- pertinence, which ought to be rebuked by that philosophy whose oracles it is affecting to utter. For what any man knows, or can know, there may be such intervention. T\u\t it is not incompatible with the constitution of the worl^; is an. unquestionable fact with the unsophisticated beliey^rs in the sacred records. And not a few occurren'' \ ' ter history have totally defied every attempt at e^ -^j^^ ' v ^^J other And now take the facts ^^^'^.^^^^^^\ ^ ^7 ^^'■ Lane. First, those that ma^^ ^T^^^T?^^^ ^^^^ '■ — "^ the day-time, without cf^^c'eri, "'^'^^^^W^^^^^ ^■^^i ^^^l^ss^ the burning and smoke of incense *4«^Efc<^pi^^- f ^"^ ^^ ^ ground in all app^ai 0,1^^0 unfit, ti ^^^'^ >^ ^fZ^. '^l ' the spec- tacles, there ■• -ere brought, n(/t a " t of some- thing like Imagery (which, ho\^e\c ^ V .*^^ ^ ^ --nie suppo- sition that the excited state of the yt, ^*V^'"iB ler ihe influ- ence of perfumes and strange rites mi^, ^em tcNcreate,}but a series of distinct scenes of persons and transactHns, each remaining long enough to be plainly described, but su.^ceeded, at the interval of a few moments by another, different and also of precise delineation. It is easy to fling off the diffi- culty by saying it was all done by some juggling device. — This cheap philosophy may be quietly put aside. But let the greatest adept in all that real philosophers know of science and art point out an ascertained principle in nature, by the action of which he deliberately believes that he, or any philo- sopher, can — nay, rather, by which the philosopher shall practically prove that he can — at his mere will, as unaided by MODERN EGYPTIANS. 409 optical apparatus as the Egyptian, command the elements into the sudden formation of such a series of images, rapidly but definitely presented to the eyes, or can impart to the eyes themselves the power of instantaneously shaping them. JJut the philosopher ! — the thing was done by a person whose phi- losophical qualifications our adept would' despise. But next the stronger cases : the statement is, that, imme-» diately on being called for, there were presented the images of persons, unknown to the Magus, far absent, or dead, in conspicuous portraiture, with various and very particular marks of correspondence to what was known of those per- sons by the challengers of his mysterious faculty. Now put it to any rational man, who has not attained the wisdom of an a priori rejection of the supernatural, whether he can be- lieve that such an effect was within the competence of some curious art, or some resource of science, in the possession of the unschooled Mahomedan ; or within the competence of any art or science in the possession of any man in the world. If the professor of science shall think so, he will do well to go and seek the Egyptian, acknowledge his superiority to all the learned world, and solicit to be admitted into the inner recesses of the temple of knowledge. We are well enough aware that we are exposing ourselves to ridicule by these observations. But what signifies the ridi- cule of men whose pride turns exactly on their ignorance ; who deride the idea of any preternatural intervention when their utmost faculty cannot reach to apprehend the very possi- bility of effects which are placed before them as facts ? It would be amusing to see the shifts to be resorted to in this total ignorance on the one hand, to authorize a confident affirmation of certainty on the other. Of course any thing rather than admit the occasional activity on earth of any other actors than man and what is called nature. In a kind of summary estimate of the Egyptian character, the author observes that it is considered among the Moslems as the highest honour to be religious. Hence no small measure of Pharisaism and hypocrisy. Hence also the pro- fane habit of ejaculating the name of the Supreme Being on all manner of occasions, even the most trifling or indecent. The only real reverence seems to be for the prophet, for whom the feeling is idolatrous. His name is held so sacred that the pasha has been reproached for the impiety of having it, as 410 MODERN EGYPTIANS. being one of his own names, branded on his horses and camels. Their regard for the sanctity of the Koran is mani- fested in every imaginable way, except that of conformity to what there may be of most value in its precepts. There are but few, Mr. Lane thinks, who are really unbelievers. There is no disposition now to make converts ; they say " the num- ber of the faithful is decreed by God, and no act of man can increase or diminish it." The belief in predestination has the effect, in men, of producing a wonderful degree of resig- nation, or apathy, in all distresses and calamities, and in the approach to death. Not so, he says, with the women, who give vent to their grief in the most extravagant cries and shrieks ; whether because they are not taught the doctrine, or will not believe it, or cannot understand what consolation it is to be told that misfortune which must be, must be, is not said. There is much benevolence and charity to the poor ; this, however, is on a calculation of being paid, and overpaid, for it elsewhere. Generosity and cupidity are oddly combined, a disposition to overreach and extort, Mdth a readiness to aftbrd relief in distress. A consequence of the latter is a su- perabundant swarm of beggars. In spite of the formidable penalties to female infidelity, there is a strong propensity to licentious intrigue. Several curious stories are related of illicit adventures, involving plenty of adroitness, ludicrous in- cident, hazard, and revenge. The women, while on the one hand kept under rigid restriction and guardianship, are on the other systematically, and Mr. Lane says, even intentionally, incited to a voluptuous disposition, by the spectacle of lascivious dances, and the hearing, screened from sight by lattices, of immoral songs and tales. The humanity of the people, toward both human beings and brutes, is asserted by him to have suflered a great deterioration since his former visit to the country ; acts and habits of cruelty, to animals especially, having now become obtrusively offensive, and rob- beries and murders being of much more common occurrence. " The increased severity of the government seems, as might be expected, to have engendered tyranny, and an increase of every crime, in the people." The account of the popular amusements, many of them frivolous, and some worse, goes, however, into a very long description of the more mental one of listening to the recital of romances, by men who make it their profession, and qualify MODERN EGYPTIANS. 411 themselves by a lively and dramatic manner of narrating. The author has sketched out the course of surprising adven- tures through several of the eventful and fantastic stories, re- minding us of the Arabian Nights. They will tend to retain something of the imaginative and poetic, among a people whom so many circumstances have operated to reduce to a depressed, coarse, and slavishly fixed condition, so much in contrast to the wild and boundless freedom of the Arabs. The monotony of life is relieved at intervals by the annual return of several great festivals, especially that which dis- tinguishes the beginning of the Mahomedan year, and that which celebrates the birth of the prophet. But the most lively excitement seems to be that occasioned by the return of the caravan of pilgrims from Mecca. The author has described much at large, and in a very picturesque manner, the signs of eager expectation, the mingled joy and appre- hension at the arrival of the intelligence and the precursors of its near approach ; the rush of the inhabitants out of the city to meet their friends, or to see whether they and their friends are ever to meet ; the delight of some on receiving them back, and the passionate grief of others, chiefly the w^omen, on finding that those they inquired for had been arrested by death, or (the year in which the description was wn-itten) the hardly less disaster of the seizure of a thousand of them for the army. There are passed in view the varied appearances of the masses and groups as they came on ; the pompous procession of a kind of ark or chest, containing nothing, but considered as an emblem of royalty, always ac- companying the caravan, by a custom perpetuated on the strength of a story of a Queen of Egypt, who, many cen- turies since, had travelled in such a vehicle ; and lastly, the excitement and bustle in the city, on such a new influx of holi- ness as these pilgrims had brought back from the birth-place and tomb of the prophet. But here a consideration of the disproportionate space we have already occupied, compels us to make an abrupt conclu- sion, leaving a large portion of the work for the curiosity of indefatigable readers. We are so far from the end of the Hercynian forest, that we have nothing for it but to make a resolute bolt sideways to get clear. There remain the sub- jects of trades, games, music, festivals, funeral rites, measures, weightSj and moneys, female ornaments, Jews, Copts, late in- 412 MODERN EGYPTIANS. novations, and various others. We cannot enough admire the untiring and unlimited inquisitiveness, accurate observa- tion, and patience of detail, which have wrought out so com- plete a panorama of the nation. There is one observation which it would hardly be right to forego. It respects the pi'ice at which our author obtained a knowledge of some things not ordinarily accessible to the inspection or inquiries of the Christian djowrs. We shall not impute to him an indifference to the question of what is the true religion ; but we think the accommodation in which he seems to ha' e habitually allowed himself, to the extent some- times of a direct practical conformity to the prescribed for- malities of Mahomedism, was not compatible with fidelity to the religion with which that hateful imposture is at mortal enmity. I N ]:> E X A. Tase. 110 249 275 288 AbstruseneFS of Coleridge, Account of, Beattie, James " Blair, Hugh, " Hume, David, " Modern Egyptians, 390 Achilles - - - .171 Adaptation of Christianity to man, - - - - 13 Advocates of Justice, - . 67 Algiers, slavery in - . 77 Amusement, - - - 222 Analogy between the word and works of God, - - - 14 Analogy of Providence and Redemption, ... 39 Angels, description of - - 44 Antichrist Roman, the - 107 Apostacy. the Romish - - lOG Aquinas, Thomas - - 108 Arabian Nights' Entertain- ments, - - - - 411 Argyle, proceedings of, in Scot- land, - - . 142 death of - - 142—146 Arrogance of science, - . 15 Ascendency over man, - 51 Association, effects of - - 68 Astronomical Discourses, - 13 Astronomy, - - 14, 17 Atoning sacrifice, - - 38 Attributes divine, - - 41 Augean stable of the Antichris- ' tian Apostacy, ... 1G6 B. Babylon, . - - .391 Ball Alexander, character of 9:2 Barbauld Mrs., Hymns by . 155 j Pa^e. Baxter Richard, - . .361 Beattie, James, account of - 249 criticisms by . - 261 death of . - 264 egotism of - .259 " Essay on Truth" by 256 flattery of . - 260 interview of, with George III. - 258 Letters by - - 258 " IMinstrel" by . 256 Poems by - - 256 Sabbath breaking, by 263 " Soul Doctor," a . 263 style of . . - 259 youth of . - 253 Bible, indgfinite phrases of . 51 Biography, dissertation on 1 73 — 180 ecclesiastical - 356 remarks on - 249 Blair, Hugh, account of - 275 " associates of . . 286 *' character of . 276, 285 " death of - - .286 " sermons by - 277 — 284 " writings of - . 275 Boak-makinjj, craft of . .201 Btitit-h Statesmen, . - 173 Buckingham, Duke of - .196 Burke, Edmund, - - .113 Burleigh, Lord . . - 189 C. Cairo, ..... 393 Cambria, Fall of - . . 332 Carr's Stranger in Ireland, - 317 Cecil, history of . . 189,194 Chalmers, Astronomical Dis- courses by - - - 13 414 INDEX. Page. Character of men, justice to the 176 Charles I. of Britain, . - 197 " execution of - 138 Charles II. dissohition of Par- hament by - 139 " reign of - .138 Christian evidence, - 41, 42 " Christian Hercules," the - 106 Christian Teachers, - .27 Christianity — " adaptation of, to man, - .13 " analogy of, to the works of God, 14 " evidences of 13,41 *♦ morality of - 13 Chronicle of the Cid, . - 370 Church patronage in Britain and Ireland, - . . 153 Cid, chronicle of the . . 370 Clarke's Demonstration of the Being and Attributes of God, . . . .208 Clerical Education, - - 151 Coleridge, Samuel T. " abstractedness of his thoughts, - 97 '• abstruseness of 98,110 •' comparisons of - 97 " difficulty in com- prehending of - 101 *' Friend the, by - 89 " independence of his thoughts, - 96 *• language of - 101 " metaphors of - 99 " obscurity of - 111 " on the French re- volution, - - 104 " originality of, in style and thought 101, 102 " reach of thought by 96 *' recollections of - 108 " religious opinions of 108 Coleridge's " Friend," - - 89 Condescension, divine - - 32 Connection between matter and mind, .... 20 Contest for the ascendancy over man, - - - - 51 Page. Correspondence of Franklin, 231 Cottle's Fall of Cambria, . 332 Cottle's recollections of Cole- ridge, - . - . 108 Country gentlemen, duties of 172 Criterion of morality, - .104 Cromwell, OHver . . 54, 138 Cultivation of memory, . 150 Curates in the established Church of England and Ire- land, . . . .154 De Witt, John - . - 117 Death of Gaul, - - - 349 Defective standard of morals, 265 Defects of memory, - .150 Defence of the stage, . .217 Depravity of the heart, - 220 Discipline mental. . - 104 Discourses on Astronomy, . 13 Discourses on the Amusements of the Stage, - - - 217 Dispensation of the Messiah, 30 Dissension among the higher Intelligences, ... 52 Diversions of Purley, - . 76 Divine attributes, - - 41 Divine condescension, . . 32 Divine goodness manifested in redemption, - . .41 Divine incarnation, the . 38 Divine interpositions, . . 14 Divine mind, the ... 36 Divine power, - - 34, 35 Divine wisdom, - . 34, 35 Doig, Dr 215 Duelling, .... 168 Dunning, Mr. - . . 57 Duties of Religion, - . 27 E. Earth, comparison of, with the universe, - - 28 " objection of Infidehty from ... 28 Ecclesiastical biography, . 356 *' dominion, . 189 Edge WORTH, Maria — " defectsof her writ- ings, . 267—273 INDEX. 415 Page. Edoewortii, Maria — " moral tendency of her tales, - 273 " object of her writ- ings, - - 265 •* qualities of her works, - - 273 " Tales of Fash, ionable life," by 265 Edoreworth R. L. " Professional Education," by - - 147 Education, military - - 160 " naval - . . 163 " of a Curate, - 154 " " Prelate, - 154 •' " Rector, - 154 ♦* private - - 155 " professional - 147 Effects of evil companionship, 67 Egypt — " administration of laws in 399 " antiquity of- . .391 " children in - - - 396 *' Ckootbs of - - - 404 " climate of - - - 394 " Durvveeshes of - - 404 " government of - - 398 " idiots in - - .403 " inhabitants of - - 395 " laws of - - - 397 " monuments of - - 391 " Nazii a of, punishment by 399 " population of - - 394 " religion of . - - 396 " Weleesof - - - 404 Egyptians, — ... 390 amusements of the 410 conjugal bond of the . 397, 401 dancing exhibitions of the - - 404 defective knowledge of the - - 402 divorces among the 397, 401 domestic habits of the - . 400 dress of the - 395 enchantments of the 405 examination of their phantasmagoria, 408, 409 Page, Egyptians, eyes blackened by 396 " hypocrisy of - 409 " indolence of - 400 " luxury of - - 401 " phantasmagoria by 405 Saints of - - 403 Elizabeth, reign of - - ] 92 Eloquence, modes of - - 159 Elvves, the Miser, - - 58 English eloquence, - - 159 Epic poetry, disquisition on 332 — 335 Erroneous opinions, suppression of, . ... - 293 Errors of party spirit, - .104 Errors respecting taxation, - 104 Evangelical theory, - . 38 Event at Nuremberg, - - 106 Evidence and probability, - 39 Evidences of Christianity, . 13 " adaptation of to man 13 " analogy between the word and works of God, - - 13 •• divine interpositions, 14 " excellent morality of 13 " force of - 41, 42 ♦' knowledge superhu- man, - - 13 ** Miracles, - - 13 Morality of - - 13 " Prophecies, - - 13 Evil associations, - - 67 Evil, prevalence of - - 46 Evils of the stage, - - 221 Eyre, Chief Justice - - 82 F. Fall of Cambria, . . 332 •' character of . 336 Fashionable Life, . 265 Ferrar Nicholas, . . 368 Fitzherbert Mrs. . . 76 Forbes, account of Dr. Beattie, by 249 Fox, Charles James, — . 76 " Career of, in imagination, 115—118 " character of - .113 " coalition of, with Lord North, - . - 123 " contrast of - - - 119 *' death of - - - 119 416 INDEX. Page. Fox, defective morality of - 141 " dissipation of - .121 " exertions of - - 119 " history of James II. by 113 " moral features of - - 114 " oratory of - - - 114 " power of, as a public speaker, . 114,120,121 ** uselessness of his elo- quence, - - - 124 " want of virtue in - 121 *' warning to Statesmen by 125 Fox John, " Acts and JMonu. uments," by - - - 359 Franklin, Benjamin, — - 231 " correspondence of 231 " creed of - - 247 " deficiency of - 233 " letter of to Mather 245 Priestley 244 Stiks 245, 247 *' letters by, on Ameri- can politics, - 239 * ' letters from , on the ne- gotiutions for peace 233 ♦* love of the useful by 236 '• Mentor of America, the - - - 237 ♦' miscellaneous letters by - - - 243 " political instructions by . . . 237 " self-command of - 235 *' superiority to worldly honour, by - 237, 242 Frederic the Great, - - 151) French eloquence, - - 159 French Revolution, - 54, 78 " celebration of the . 79 " Coleridge's view of the 104 Friend, the, by Coleridge . 88 " character of the - 89 '• properties of the - 96 Fuller, Andrew, — " Consistency of the doc- trine of Redemption with the magnitude of Creation, by - 15 " Gospel its own witness, by ... 15 " View of the Divine Government, by - 16 Fuller A. Wicked, misery of the, accounted for, by Page. 16 G. Garrick David,— - - 262 Gaul, death of - - - 349 Germany, letters from - - 105 God, reflected by the starry heavens, ... - 26 Grant's Essays on the Super- stitions of the Highlanders, 339 " Grandeur of plain sense," - 114 H. Hampton Court (Conference, - 365 Hurdwicke, Chancellor - 207 Harmony of religion and science, 14 Hastings, Warren - - 77 Henry VIII. character of - 185 Hercules, the Christian - 106 Hcrschell's telescope, - - 23 Highlanders, superstitions of 339 Highlands of Scotland, moral phenomena of - - - 345 Hill's account of Blair, - 275 History, disquisition on 125 — 132 Home Henry, memoirs of - 199 Home George, Prelate of Nor- wich, - . - - 56 Howard John, the Philanthro- pist, - - - - 117 Hume, David, — . - . 288 " character of . - 137 " connection of, with Rousseau, . 296 death of - - 298 Essays by - - 292 " History of England, by . - 137,295 " Inquiry concerning the human under- standing, by - 292 " Inquiry into the prin- ciples of morals, by 292 " Remarks on his death, - 299—302 " Residence of, at Paris, Turin and Vienna, 296 " Treatise of human nature, by - - 290 Youth of - - 290 INDEX. 417 Page. 58 36 229 38 51 I. Ignorance, specimen of Immensity of the Universe, - Impiety of the theatre, Incarnation, divine Indefinite phrases in the Bible, Infidelity — objection of, from the comparative littleness of our globe, ... 28 Inhabitants of other worlds, 45 Insects, minuteness of - 36, 37 Intelligences, the higher, dis- sensions among - - 52 Interpretation, rule of - - 51 Iheland, — - - - - 317 " Peasantry of - 324 " Stranger in - - 317 '* Travelling vehicles in . - - 318 Irish bngs, - - - .326 Irish people, character of - 323 James I. " King craft" of - 196 James II. a Papist, - - 141 history of - - 113 " manuscripts of - 134 " reign of - - 141 Jesuits, education by the - 150 Jezebel, ^. - . - 396 Junius, ... 65, 69 Justice, defenders of - - 67 Justice to the character of men, 176 K. Kames, Lord - - - 199 " Essays by, on Moral- ity and Natural Religion, - - 213 ♦' Elements of Criti- cism by - 200, 215 " Letters of - - 206 *' Sketches of the his- tory of Man, by 215 •' Kenyon, Chief Jus. tice ... 57 Killamey, lake of - - .327 Kirwan, Dean ... 329 Knovi'ledge, superhuman - 13 Lake of Killamey, . 327 Page. Lane's Account of the Modern Egyptians - . - 390 Law of nations, - . - 104 Law, profession of - .172 Lawfulness of the Stage, . 219 Letters from Germany, - .105 Letters of Lord Kames . 206 Lexmgton, battle of - .72 Life of Hugh Blair, - . 275 Lives of British Statesmen, . 1 73 Lord Kames, memoirs of . 199 LuTHKR, Marti a '' Skirmish of, with Satan, 1 06 " the Christian Hercules, 106 M. j Macdiarmid, history of British Statesmen, by . - .173 j Magnitude of creation, - 28 I " of the stars, - 23 Man, ascendency over - 51 Man's moral history known in other worlds, . . - 43 Mansfield, Judge ... 64 Marriage of the Prince of Wales and Mrs. Fitzherbert, 76 Material universe, the . 22, 24 Matter and mind, the connec- tion between, ... 20 Mediator, the ... 50 Medical profession, the . 172 Mehemet Ah, - - .398 Memoirs of John Home Tooke, 54 Lord Kames, . 199 Memory, cultivation of .150 " defects of - .150 Mental discipline, - .104 Messiah, dispensation of 30, 49 Metaphysical researches 208 — 213 Middlesex election, the . 62 Military education, . - 161 Minuteness of insects, - 36, 37 Miracles, - - - .13 Monmouth, Duke of, invasion of Britain, by - .142 Montague, Mrs. - . - 207 Moral history of man, known by the inhabitants of other parts of the universe, - 43 Morality, criterion of . .104 More, Thomas, life of - - 181 '• memoirs of, by Cayley, 185 418 INDEX. Pnge. More, persecution by - - I87 " trial and death of . I85 N. National glory, - - - IfiG " privilege, - - 69 right, ... 69 Nations, law of - - .104 Nature, philosophy of - - 303 Naval education, - . .161 Nebulae, .... 24 Newton, Isaac ... 29 Number of stars, ... 23 Nuremberg, tragical event at 105 O. Ossian, poems of - - 345 P. Palcy's criterion of morality, 104 Paradise Lost, ... 52 Party spirit, errors of . - 104 Person of the Mediator, . 50 Philosophy of Nature, - . 303 Phrases ol the Bible, indefinite 5 1 Pitt, William - - 75, 83 Plagues of Egypt, - - 19 'J Planets, - - . 19, 22 " inhabited, . - 19 Plumptre's defence of the stage, 217 Plurality of worlds of intelli- gent beings, ... 46 Popish cstablii^hment, - .189 Popish plot, - . . ] 3fS Porson, Professor ... 84 Prevalence of evil, . - 46 Price, Dr. - . - . 7() Prince of Wales, . . . 76 Private education, - - 155 Probability of evidence, - 39 Profession of the Law, - .172 Professional education, - - 147 " principles of - 148 Prophecies, - . . - 13 Providence and Redemption, analogy between - - 39 Public hfc, - - . .172 Puritans, sufferings of . .19 R. Recollecticns of Coleridge, - 108 Redemption and Providence, analogy between . 39 Page. Redemption, divine goodness in 41 Rcid, Dr., Character of . 207 Religion, duty of - . - 27 Religion, harmony of, with Science, - ... 14 Religious vitality, semblance of 52 Rodrigo Diaz, ... 388 Roman Antichrist, the . - 107 Rousseau and Hume, . » 296 Rousseau's Discourse on Man, 277 Rule of interpretation, - 51 S. Sacrifice as atonement, - 38 Scenery, influence of, on the mind and heart, . - 303 Science, arrogance of . - 14 " harmony of, with religion, 14 Scotland, tyranny of Charles TI. over - . - .140 Semblance of religious vitality, 52 Sermons by Blair, - - 277 " character of . 277—283 " defects of - . 281 " figures of - . 279 " language of . . 277 " merits of . - 277 " popularity of - 275—283 Sheridan, Richard B. . - 79 Sular System, - . .19 " Soul Doctor," a - - 263 Soiithey's Chronicle of the Cid, 370 Spain, aftairs of - 371 — 389 Stage, the defence of - - 217 Stars, fixed - ... 24 " inhabited ... 26 " magnitude of . - 23 •' number of . . 23 State Trials, effects of . - 83 Stephen's memoirs of John Home Tooke, ... 54 Stewart Dugald, character by 207 St. Pierre, Eustace . .117 Strafl:brd, Earl of . . 195 Stranger in Ireland, - . 317 Styles on the Theatre, - - 230 Superstitions of the Hign- landcrs, .... 339 Suppression of erroneous opin- ions, . . . - 293 Sydney, Algernon - - 137 INDEX. 419 T. Page. Talcs of fashionable life, - 265 Taxation, errors concerning - 104 Tclescopog, - - - .23 Herschel's - - 23 Temple's correspondence of Franklin, Theatre, character of the " depravity of the " impiety of the " never can become good " picture of an imag- inary one - " supporters of the Theories of philosophers, TooKE, John Home " abandons the priesthood, 70 *' advertisement by, on battle of Lexington, *' a great talker, - " appearance of, before the H. of Commons " attack by, on the Speak- er of the H. of Commons " becomes a priest of the establishment, - " conduct of, at the Mid- dlcscx election, " contests the election for Westminster, - *• correspondence of, with Junius, " correspondence of, with Wilkes, *' death of . " defeats Lord IMansfield, " defends Mr. Tooke, ♦♦ diseases of " education of - *' efforts of, for freedom, 69, 70 " elevation of, to Parlia- ment, - - - 84 " habits of - - .59 *' imprisonment of . 73 »' in the Tower, . . 81 " inconsistency of . 60 " letter of ... CO 231 228 220 229 I 220 223 222 104 54 72 85 72 71 58 63 77 69 64 87 64 71 84 57 " letters of, from Italy, 62 " letters of, to Junius, - 65 " moral constitution of 85 " morals of - . 62 '* objects of . - 87 " opinion of, concerning Warren Hastings, - 76 " preaching of - - 62 *' refused admission to the counsellor's practice 74 " Sultanic look of - 85 " Studied medicine, - 59 " Tract against the American war by - 75 " travels in France and Italy, - - 58,62 " "Two Pair of Por- traits" by - . 75 Trial of AVarren Hastings, 77 Truth, laws of - - - 104 U. Universe, immensity of - 36 " material, the - 22, 24 V. Vindicators of Justice, . - 67 Vitality religious, semblance of 53 W. Walker, Professor - . 207 War, horrors of - - .161 W^artburg, castle of - - 106 Washington, George - .138 Wentworth Thomas, life of - 195 Westminister election, - 77 Whitfield, George, - .247 Whitgift, life of - . - 31)3 Wilkes, John . - 60,62 " Wise Club," the - . 253 Word of the Almighty, 13, 27 Wordsworth the Poet, - - 95 Wordsworth's Ecclesiastical Biography, ... 356 Works of God, . - 13,27 Worlds of intelligent beings, 47 Writings of Hugh Blair, - 275 A CATALOGUE OF BOOKS, IN THE VARIOUS DEPARTMENTS OF LITERATURE, PUBLISHED BY D. APPLETON h Co., New-York, AND GEO. S. APPLETON, Philadelphia. For sale hy the various Booksellers throughout the United States. (Elasslficlr 3nba. AaRIOULTURE. Falkner on Manures. Smith's Productive Farming. ^ Farmer's Treasure, by Falkner and bmith. ARTS, MANUFACTURES, &c. Ewbank's Mechanics and Hydraulics. Hodge on the Steam-Engine. Lafever's Modern Architecture. " Stair-case Construction. Ure's Dictionary of Arts, Manuf., and Mines. BIOGRAPHY. Hamilton (Alex.), Life of. Philip's Life of Milne. CHEMISTRY. Fresenius's Chemical Analysis. Liebig's Chemical Letters. Parnell's Applied Chemistry. EDUCATION. Hazen's Symbolical Speller. Keightley's Mythology of Greece and Italy. Taylor's Home Education HISTORY. Frost's History of United States Navy. " " Army. Guirot's History of Civilization. L'Ardeche's History of Napoleon. Taylor's Natural History of Society. JUVENILE. Boone, Daniel, Adventures Boy's Manual. Cameron's Farmer's Daughter. Child's Delight. Copley's Early Friendships. Copley's Poplar Grove. Cortes, Adventures of. De Foe's Robinson Crusoe. Evans's Joan of Arc. " Evenings with the ChronicUw. Guizot's Young Student. Girl's Manual. Holyday Tales. Howitt's Love and Money. " Work and Wages. " Little Coin, much Care. " Which is the Wiser.' '* Who shall be Greatest .* " Hope on, Hope ever. " Strive and Thrive. " Sowing and Reaping. " No Sense like Common Sense. " Alice Franklin. Jerram's Child's Stary-Book. Appleton's Catalogue of Valuable Publications. BIBLE EXPOSITOR. Confirmation of the Truth of the Holy Scriptures, from the Observations of recent Travellers, illustrating the Manners, Customs, and Places referred to in the Bible. Published under the direction of the Society for the Promo- tion of Christian Know^ledge, London. Illustrated with 90 cuts. One volume, 12mo., 75 cents. EXTRACT FROM PREFACE. " The Holy Scriptures contain many passages full of importance and beauty, but not generally understood, because they contain allusions to manners and customs, familiar indeed to those to whom they were originally addressed, but imperfectly known to us. In order to obviate this difficulty, this volume is now presented to the public, consisting of extracts from the narratives of travel- lers who have recorded the customs of the oriental nations, from whom we learn that some usages were retained among them to this day, such as existed at the times when the Scriptures were written, and that their manners are in many instances little changed since the patriarchal times. The compiler of this volume trusts that it may be the means, under God's providence, of leading unlearned readers to a more general acquaintance with Eastern customs, and assist them to a clearer percepiiou of the propriety and beauty of the illustrations so often drawn from them in the Bible." BOOK OF COMMON PRAYER; And Administration of the Sacraments and other Rites and Ceremonies of the Church, according to the use of the Protestant Episcopal Church in the United States of America, together with the Psalter or Psalms of David. Illustrated with six steel engravings, rubricated, 18mo. size, in various bindings. Morocco, extra gilt leaves, $2 25. With clasp, do., $3 00. Imitation of Morocco, gilt leaves, $1 50. Plain do., $1 00. Without rubrics, in Morocco, extra, $2 00. Imitation do., $1 25. Sheep, plain, 37 1-2 cents. It may also be had in rich silk velvet binding, mounted with gold, gilt borders, clasp, &c., price $8 00. A very superior edition, printed in large type, from the new authorized edition, is nearly ready. It will be embellished with choice steel engravings from designs by Overbeck. BOONE.— ADVENTURES OF DANIEL BOONE, The Kentucky Rifleman. By the author of " Uncle Philip's Conversations." One volume, 18mo. 37 1-2 cents. Forming one of the series of "A Library for my Young Countrymen." " It is an excellent narrative, written in a plain, familiar style, and sets forth the character and wild adventures of the hero of the Kentucky wilderness in a very attractive light. The boys will all be in an agony to read it." — Com. Adv. BOYS' MANUAL. Comprising a Summary View of the Studies, Accomplishments, and Princi- ples of Conduct, best suited for promoting Respectability and Success in Life. 1 vol. 18mo. 50 cents. BRADLEY.-FAMILY AND PARISH SERMONS, Preached at Clapham and Glasbury. By the Rev. Charles Bradley. From the seventh London edition, two volumes in one,8vo. $1 25, PRACTICAL SERMONS For every Sunday throughout the year and principal holydays. Two volumes of English edition in one 8vo $1 50. 3)C5=" The above two volumes may be bound together in one. Price $2 50. The Sermons of this Divine are much admired for their plain, yet chaste and elegant style; they will be found admirably adapted for family reading and preaching, where no pastor is located. Recommendations miirht be given, if space would admit, from several of our Bishops and Clergy — also from Ministers of various denominntions. The following are a few of the Enjlish and American critical opinions of their merit: — " Bradley's style is sententious, i)ithy, and colloquial. He is simple without being quaint, and he almost holds conversation with his hearers, without descending from the dignity of the Bacred chair." — Eclectic Rcvieto. " We earnestly desire that every pulpit may ever be the vehicle of discourses as judicious and practical, as scriptural and devout, as these." — Christia?i Observer. " The style is so simple that the most unlearned can understand them ; the matter so instruc- tive that the best informed can learn something ; the spirit so fervent that the most engaged Christian can be animated and warmed by their perusal." — Christian TVitness. 4 Appleton's Catalogue of Valuable Publications. BURNET.— THE HISTORY OF THE REFORMATION Of the Church of England, by Gilbert Burnet, D. D., late Lord Bishop of Salisbury — with the Collection of Records and a copious Index, revised and corrected, with additional Notes and a Preface, by the Rev. E. Nares, D. D.,late Professor of Modern History in the University of Oxford. Illustrated with a Frontispiece and twenty-three engraved Portraits, form- ing four elegant 8vo. volumes. $8 00. A cheap edition is printed, containing the History in three vols, without the Records — which form the fourth vol. of the above. Price, in boards, $2 50. To tho student either of civil or religious history, no epoch can be of more importance than that of the Reformation in England. The History of Bishop Burnet is one of the most celebrated and bv far the most frequently quoted of any that has been written of this great event. Upon the original publication of the first volume, it was received in Great Britain with the loudest and most extravagant encomiums. The author received the thanks of both Houses of Parliament and was requested by them to continue the work. In continuing it, he had the assistance of the most learned and eminent divines of his time; and he confesses his indebtedness for important aid to Lloyd, Tiliotson,and Stillingfloet, three of the greatest of England's Bishops. The present edition of this great work lias been edited with laborious care by Dr. Nares, who professes to have corrected important errors into which the author fell, and to have made such improvements in the order of the work as will render it far more useful to the reader or historical student. Preliminary explanations, full and sufficient to the clear understanding of the author, are given, and marginal references are made throughout the book, so as greatly to facilitate and lender accurate its consultation. It will of course find a pflace in every theologian's libraiy — and win, by no means, we trust, be confined to that comparatively limited sphere— JV. Y. Tribune. BURNET.-AN EXPOSITION OF THE XXXIX ARTICLES Of the Church of England. By Gilbert Burnet, D. D, late Bishop of Salisbury. With an Appendix, containing the Augsburg Confession, Creed of Pope Pius IV., &c. Revised and corrected, with copious Notes and Additional References, by the Rev. James R. Page, A. M. One handsome 8vo. vol- ume. $2 00. The editor has given to our clergy and our students in theology an edition of this work, which must necessarily supersede every other, and we feel he deserves well at the hands of the Church, which he has so materially served, — Church of England Quarterly Review. BURNS.— THE COMPLETE POETICAL WORKS Of Robert Burns, with Explanatory and Glossarial Notes, and a Life of the Author, by James Currie, M. D., illustrated with six steel engravings, one volume, 16mo. $1 25. Forming one of the series of " Cabinet Edition of Standard British Poets." This is the most complete American edition of Burns. It contains the whole of the poetry com- prised in the edition lately edited by Cunningham, as well as some additional pieces ; and such notes have been added as are calculated to illustrate the manners and customs of Scotland, so as to render the whole more intelligible to the English reader. He owes nothing to the poetry of other lands — he is the offspring of the soil : he is as natural to Scotland as the heath is to her hills— his variety is equal to his originality ; his humour, his gayety, his tenderness and his pathos, come all in a breath; they come freely, for they come of their own accord ; the contrast is never offensive ; the comic slides easily into the serious, the serious into the tender, and the tender into the pathetic— Allan Cunningham. CAMERON— THE FARMER'S DAUGHTER: A Tale of Humble Life, by 3Trs. Cameron, author of" Emma and Her Nurse," <' the Two Mothers," etc., etc., one volume, 18mo., frontispiece. 37 1-2 cts. We welcome, in this little volume, a valuable addition to the excellent series of " Tales for the People and their Children." The story conveys high moral truths, in a most attractive form. — HunVs Merchants Mag. CARLYLE.— ON HEROES, HERO WORSHIP, And the Heroic in History. Six Lectures, reported with Emendations and Ad- ditions, by Thomas Carlyle, author of the " French Revolution," "Sartor Resartus," &c. Elegantly printed in one vol. 12mo. Second edition. $1. CHILO'S DELIGHT; A Gift for the Young. Edited by a lady. One volume small 4to. Embel- lished with six steel Engravings coloured in the most attractive style. This is the gem of the season. In style of embellishment and originality of matter, it stands alone. We cordially recommend the volume to our juvenile friends. — U. S. Gazette. Appleton's Catalogue of Valuable Publications. CHURTON.— THE EARLY ENGLISH CHURCH; Or, Christian History of England in early British, Saxon, and Norman Times. By the Rev. Edward Churton, M. A With a Preface by the Right Rev. Bishop Ives. One vol. l6mo. $1 00. The following delightful pages place before us some of the choicest examples — ^bolh clerical and lay— of the true Christian spirit in the EARLY ENGLISH CHURCH. In truth, those pages are crowded with weighty lessons. * * * Extract from Editor's Preface. CLARKE.-SCRIPTURE PROMISES Under their proper heads, representing the Blessings Promised, the Duties to which Promises are made. By Samuel Clarke, D. D. Miniature size, 37 1-2 cents. In this edition every passage of Scripture has been compared and verified. The volume is like an arranged museum of gems, and precious stones, and pearls of inestimable value. The divine promises comprehend a rich and endless vaiiety. — Dr Wardlaw. COOLEY— THE AMERICAN IN EGYPT. With Rambles through Arabia-Petrsea and the Holy Land, during the years 1839-40. By James Ewing Cooley. Illustrated with numerous steel En- gravings, also Etchings and Designs by Johnston. One handsome volume, octavo, of 610 pages. $2 00. No other volume extant gives the reader so true a picture of what he would be likely to see and meet in Egypt. No other book is more practical and plain in its picture of precisely what the traveller himself will meet. Other writers have one account to give of their journey on paper, and another to relate in conversation. Mr. Cooley has but one story for the fireside circle and the printed page. — Brother Jonathan. CHAVASSE— ADVICE TO MOTHERS On the Management of their Offspring, during the periods of Infancy, Child- hood, and Youth, by Dr. Pye Henry Chavasse, Member of the Royal Col- lege of Surgeons, London, from the third English edition, one volume, 18mo. of 180 pages. Paper 25 cents, cloth 37 1-2. All that I have attempted is, to have written useful advice, in a clear style, stripped of all technicalities, which mothers of every station may understand. * * * I have adopted a con- versational form, as being more familiar, and as an easier method of making myself understood. — Extract from jiulhor's Preface. COPLEY.-EARLY FRIENDSHIPS. By Mrs. Copley. With a frontispiece. One volume, 18mo. 37-12 cents. A continuation of the little library of popular works for " the People and their Children." Its design is, by giving the boarding-school history of a young girl, whose early education had been conducted on Christian principles, to show the pre-eminent value of those principles in moulding and adorning the character, and enabling their possessor successfully to meet the temptations and trials of life. It is attractively written, and full of interest. — Com. Adv. COPLEY.-THE POPLAR GROVE: Or, little Harry and his Uncle Benjamin. By Mrs. Copley, author of "Early Friendships," &-c., «fec. One vol. 18mo. frontispiece, 37 1-2 cents. An excellent little story this, showing how sound sense, honest principles, and intelligent industry, not only advance their possessor, but, as in the case of Uncle Benjamin the gardener, enable him to become the benefactor, guide, and friend of relations cast down from a loftier sphere in life, and, but for him, without lesource. It is a tale for youth of all classes, that cannot be read without profit. — JV*. F. American. CORTES.— THE ADVENTURES OF Hernan Cortes, the Conqueror of Mexico, by the author of " Uncle Philip's Conversations," with a Portrait. One volume, 18mo. 37 1-2 cents. Forming one ofthe series of " A Library for my Young Countrymen." The story is full of interest, and is told in a captivating style. Such books add all the charms of romance to the value of history. — Prov. Journal. COTTON.-ELIZABETH; OR, THE EXILES OF SIBERIA. By Madame Cotton. Miniature size, 31 1-4 cents. Forming one ofthe series of " Miniature Classical Library." The extensive popularity of this little tale is well known. 6 Appleton's Catalogue of Valuable Publications. COWPER— THE COMPLETE POETICAL WORKS Of William Cowper, Esq., including the H3'mns and Translations from Mad. Guion, Milton, &c., and Adam, a Sacred Drama, from the Italian of Bat- tista Andreini, with a Memoir of the Author, by the Rev. Henry Stebbing, A. M. One volume, 16mo., 800 pages, $1 50, or in 2 vols. $1 75. Forming one of the Series of "Cabinet Edition of Standard British Poets." Morality never found in j^cnius amore devoted advocate than Cowper, nor has moral wisdom, in its plain and severe precept.-;, been ever more successfully combined with the delicate spirit of poetry than in his works. Mo was endowed with all the powers which a poet could want who was to be the moralist of the world— the reprover, but not the satirist, of men — the teacher of simple truths, which were to be rendered gracious without endangering their simplicity. CRUDEN.— CONCORDANCE OF THE NEW TESTAMENT. By Alexander Cruden, M. A., with a Memoir of the Author by W. Youngman. Abridged from the last London Edition, by Wm. Patton, D. D. Portrait. One volume, 32mo., sheep, 50 cents. *^* Contains all the words to be found in the large work relating to the New Testament. DE FOE.— PICTORIAL ROBINSON CRUSOE. The Life and Adventures of Robinson Crusoe. By Daniel De Foe. With a Memoir of the Author, and an Essay on his Writings, with upwards of 300 spirited Engravings, by the celebrated French artist, Grandville. One elegant volume, octavo, of 500 pages. $1 75. Crusoe has obtained a ready passport to the mansions of the rich, and the cottages of the poor, and communicated equal delight to all ranks and classes of the community. Few works have been more generally read, or more justly admired ; few that have yielded such incessant amuse- ment, and, at the same time, have developed so many lessons of practical instruction. — Sir Walter Scott. The Messrs. Appleton & Co., of New York, have just published a beautiful edition of "The Life and Adventures of Robinson Crusoe." Not the miserable abridgment generally circulated, but De Foe's genuine work, Robinson Crusoe in full and at length, a story which never palls upon the reader, and never can lose its popularity while the English language endures. — Pennsyh D'ISRAELI.-CURIOSITIES OF LITERATURE, And the Literary Character illustrated, by L D'Israeli, Esq., D. C. L., F. S. A. First and Second Series. The Literary Character, illustrated by the Histo- ry of Men of Genius, drawn from their own feelings and confessions, by I. D'Israeli, Esq. Curiosities of American Literature, compiled, edited, and arranged by Rev. Rufus W. Griswold. The three works in one volume, large 8vo. ' Price f 3 50. This is the double title of a large and beautifully printed octavo volume, which has just made its appearance in the World of Letters. With the tirst part every body is already familiar. The deep research, the evident enthusiasm in his subject, and the light and pungent humor displayed by D'Israeli in it, are the delight of all classes of readers, and will undoubtedly send him down a cheerful journey to posterity, if only on account of the pleasant company in which he has managed so agreeably to introduce himself. The other portion of this work — that relating to the Curiosi- ties of American Literature — is entirely new to the public; yet we shall be disappointed if it is not directly as popular as the other. Mr. Griswold has performed his task in a manner highly creditable to his taste, while displaying most favorably his industry, tact, and perseverance. — J\rew Yurk Tribune. DE LEUZE.-PRACTICAL INSTRUCTION IN ANIMAL Magnetism, by J. P. F. De Leuze, translated by Thomas C. Hartshorn. Re- vised edition, with an Appendix of Notes by the Translator, and Letters from *.minent Physicians and others, descriptive of cases in the U. States. One volume, 12mo. $i 00. The translator of this work has certainly presented the piofession with an uncommonly well digested treatise, enhanced in value by his own notes and the corroborative testimony of eminant physicians. — Boston Med 4' Surg. Journal. 7 Appleton^s Catalogue of Valuable Publications. ELLIS— THE DAUGHTERS OF ENGLAND; Their position in Society, Character, and Responsibilities. By Mrs. Ellis. In one handsome volume, 12mo., cloth gilt. 50 cents. ELLIS— THE WOMEN OF ENGLAND; Their Social Duties and Domestic Habits. By Mrs. Ellis. One handsome volume, 12mo., cloth gilt. 50 cents. ELLIS— THE WIVES OF ENGLAND ; Their Relative Duties, Domestic Influences, and Social Obligations. By Mrs. Ellis. One handsome volume, 12mo., cloth gilt. 50 cents. ELLIS— THE MOTHERS OF ENGLAND; Their Influence and Responsibility. By Mrs. Ellis. One handsome volume, 12mo., cloth gilt. 50 cents. This is an appropriate and very valuable conclusion to the series of works on the subject of female duties, by which Mrs. Ellis has pleased, and we doubt not profited, thousands of readers. Her counsels demand attention, not only by their practical, sagacious usefulness, but also by the meek and modest spirit in which they are communicated. — Watchman. ELLIS.-THE MINISTER'S FAMILY; Or Hints to those who would make Home happy. By Mrs. Ellis. One vol- ume, 18mo. 37 1-2 cents. ELLIS— FIRST IMPRESSIONS; Or Hints to those who would make Home happy. By Mrs. Ellis. One vol ume, ]8mo. 37 1-2 cents. ELLIS-DANGERS OF DINING OUT; Or Hints to those who would make Home happy. By Mrs. Ellis. One vol ume, 18mo. 37 1-2 cents. ELLIS— SOMERVILLE HALL; Or Hints to those who would make Home hnppy. By Mrs. Ellis. One vol- ume, ISmo. 37 1-2 cents. The above four volumes form a portion of series of" Tales for the People and their Children." " To wish prosperity to such books as these, is to desire the moral and physical welfare of the human species." — Bath Chronicle. EVANS— EVENINGS WITH THE CHRONICLERS; Or Uncle Rupert's Tales of Chivalry. By R. M. Evans. With seventeen illustrations. One volume, 16mo., elegantly bound, 75 cents. This would have been a volume after our own hearts, while we were younjrer, and it is scarcely less so now when we are somewhat older. It discourses of those things which charmed all of us in early youth — the daring deeds of the JCnights and Squires of feudal warfare — the true version of the " Chevy Chase," — the exploits oif the stout and stalwart Warriors of England, Scotland, and Germany. In a word, it is an attractive book, and rendered more so to young read- ers by a series of wood engravings, beautifully executed. — Courier 4' Enquirer. EVANS— THE HISTORY OF JOAN OF ARC. By R. M. Evans, author of " Evenings with the Chroniclers," with twenty- four elegant illustrations. One volume, 16mo. Extra gilt. 75 cents. In the work before us, we have not only a most interesting biography of this female prodigy, including what she was and what she accomplished, but also a faithful account of the relations that existed between England and France, and of the singular state of things that marked the period when this wonderful personage appeared upon the stage. The leading incidents of her life are related with exquisite simplicity and touching pathos ; and you cannot repress your admi- ration for her heroic qualities, or scarcely repress your tears in view of her ignominious end. To the youthful reader we heartily recommend this volume. — Albany Advertiser. 8 Appleton's Catalogue of Valuable Publications. ' EVANS -THE RECTORY OF VALEHEAD ; Or, the Records of a Holy Home. By the Rev. R. W. Evans. From the twelfth English edition. One volume, 16mo. 75 cents. Universally and cordially do wo recommend this delightful volume We believe no person could read this work, and not be the better for its pious and touching lessons. It is a page taken from the book of life, and eloquent with all the instruction of an excellent pattern ; it is a com- mentary on the affectionate warning, " Remember thy Creator in the days of thy youth." We have not for some time seen a work we could so deservedly praise, or so conscientiously recom- mend — Literary Qazette, EMBURY— NATURE'S GEMS; OR, AMERICAN FLOWERS In their Native Haunts. By Emma C. Embury. With twenty plates of Plants carefully colored after Nature, and landscape views of their localities, from drawings taken on the spot, by E. W. Whitefield. One imperial oc- tavo volume, printed on the finest paper, and elegantly bound. This beautiful work will undoubtedly form a "Gift-Book" for all seasons of the year. It is illustrated with twenty colored engravings of indigenous flowers, taken from drawings made on the spot where they were found ; while each flower is accompanied by a view of some striking feature of American scenery. The literary plan of the book difters entirely from that of any other work on a similar subject which has yet appeared. Each plate has its botanical and local de- scription, though the chief part of the volume is composed of original tales and poetry, illustrative of the sentiments of the flowers, or associated with the landscape. No pains or expense has been spared in the mechanical execution of the volume, and the fact that it is purely American both in its graphic and literary departments, should recommend it to general notice. EWBANK— HYDRAULICS AND MECHANICS. A Descriptive and Historical Account of Hydraulic and other Machines for raising Water, including the Steam and Fire Engines, ancient and modern ; with Observations on various subjects connected with the Mechanic Arts ; including the Progressive Development of the Steam Engine. In five books. Illustrated by nearly three hundred Engravings. By Thomas Ewbank. One handsome volume of six hundred pages. $3 50. This is a highly valuable production, replete with novelty and interest, and adapted to gratify equally the historian, the philosopher, and the mechanician,' being the result of a protracted and extensive research among the arcana of historical and scieniific literature. — J^at. Intelligencer. FABER— THE PRIMITIVE DOCTRINE OF ELECTION; Or, an Historical Inquiry into the Ideality and Causation of Scriptural Elec- tion, as received and maintained in the primitive Church of Christ. By George Stanley Faber, B. D., author of "Difficulties of Romanism," "Difficulties of Infidelity," Sec. Complete in one volume, octavo. $1 75. Mr. Faber verifies his opinion by demonstration. We cannot pay a higher respect to his work than by recommending it to all. — Church of England Quarterly Review. FALKNER— THE FARMER'S MANUAL. A Practical Treatise on the Nature and Value of Manures, founded from Experiments on various Crops, with a brief Account of the most Recent Discoveries in Agricultural Chemistry. By F. Falkner and the Author of "British Husbandry." 12mo., paper cover 31 cents, cloth 50 cents. It is the object of the present treatise to explain the nature and constitution of manures gene- rally — to point out the means of augmenting the quantity and preserving the fertilizing power of farm-yard manure, the various sources of mineral and other artificial manures, and the cause of their frequent failuies. — .Author's Preface. FARMER'S TREASURE, THE; Containing " Falkner's Farmer's Manual," and " Smith's Productive Farm- ing," bound together. 12mo., 75 cents. FOSTER— ESSAYS ON CHRISTIAN MORALS, Experimental and Practical. Originally delivered as Lectures at Broadmead Chapel, Bristol. By John Foster, author of " Essays on Decision of Char- acter," etc. One volume, 18mo., 50 cents. This volume contains twenty-six Essays, some of which are of the highest order of sublimity and excellence. Appleton's Catalogue of Valuable Publications. FOSTER— BIOG., LIT., AND PHIL. ESSAYS, Contributed to the Eclectic Review, by John Foster, author of" Essays on De- cision of Human Character," etc. One volume, 12mo., ^1 25. These contributions well deserve to class with those of Macauley, Jeffrey, and Sidney Smith, in the Edinburgh Review. They contain the productions of a more original and profound thinker than either, whose master-mind has exerted a stronger influence upon his readers, and has left a deeper impression upon our literature ; and whose peculiar merit it was to present the doctrines and moralities of the Christian faith, under a form and aspect which redeemed the familiar frona triteness, and threw a charm and freshness about the severest truths. — London Patriot. FROST.— THE BOOK OF THE NAVY: Comprising a General History of the American Marine, and particular accounts of all the most celebrated Naval Battles, from the Declaration of Independ- ence to the present time, compiled from the best authorities. By John Frost, LL. D. With an Appendix, containing Naval Songs, Anecdotes, &c. Embellished with numerous original Engravings, and Portraits of distinguished Naval Commanders. One volume, 12mo., $1 00. This is the only popular and yet authentic single view which we have of the naval exploits of our country, arranged with good taste and set forth in good language. — U. S. Oazette. This volume is dedicated to the Secretary of the Navy, and is altogether a very faithful and attractive historical record. It deserves, and will doubtless have, a very extended circulation — JSTat. Intelligencer. FROST.-THE BOOK OF THE ARMY: Comprising a General Military History of the United States, from the period of the Revolution to the present time, with particular accounts of all the most celebrated Battles, compiled from the best authorities. By John Frost, LL. D. Illustrated with numerous Engravings, and portraits ot distinguished Commanders. One volume, 12mo., $1 00. This work gives a complete history of military operations, and their causes and effects, from the opening of the Revolution to the close of the last war, with graphic descriptions of the cele- brated battles and characters of the leading generals. It is illustrated with numerous portraits on Bteel, and views of battles, from original drawings by Darley and others. The importance of pop- ular works of the class to which this and the "Book of the Navy" belong, must be obvious to all who recognize the value of national recollections in preserving a true national spirit. FRESENIUS.-CHEMICAL ANALYSIS. Elementary Instruction in Chemical Analysis. By Dr. C. Rhemigius Frese- nius. With a Preface by Prof Liebig. Edited by I. Lloyd Bullock. One neat volume, 12mo. Paper, 75 cents ; cloth, $1 00. This Introduction to Practical Chemistry is admitted to bo the most valuable Elementary In- gtractor in Chemical Analysis fo- scientific operatives, and for pharmaceutical chemists, which has ever been presented to the public. GUIZOT.— THE YOUNG STUDENT; Or, Ralph and Victor. By Madame Guizot. From the French, by Samuel Jackson. One volume of 500 pages, with illustrations. Price 75 cents, or in three volumes, $1 12. This volume of biographical incidents is a striking picture of juvenile life. To all that num- berless class of youth who are passing through their literary education, whether in boarding- schools or academies, in the collegiate course, or the preparatory studies connected with them, we know nothing more piecisely fitted to meliorate their character, and direct their course, subordi- nate to the higher authority of Christian ethics, than this excellent delineation of " The Young Student," by Madame Guizot. * * * The French Academy were correct in their judgment, when they pronounced Madame Guizot's Student the best book of the year.— Courier fy Enquirer. GUIZOT.-GENERAL HISTORY OF CIVILIZATION In Europe, from the fall of the Roman Empire to the French Revolution. Translated from the French of M. Guizot, Professor of History to la Facul- te des Lettres of Paris, and Minister of Public Instruction. Third Ameri- can edition, with Notes, by C. S. Henry, D. D. One handsome volume, 12rao., $1 00. M. Guizot in his instructive Lectures has given us an epitomeof modern history, distinguished by all the merit which, in another department, renders Blackstone a subject of such peculiar and unbounded praise — a work closely condensed, including nothing useless, omitting nothing essen tial ; written with grace, and conceived and arranged with consummate ability. — BosL Traveller. 10 Appleton's Catalogue of Valuable Publications, GRISWOLD.-CURIOSITIES OF AMER. LITERATURE: Compiled, edited, and arranged by Rev. Rufus W. Griswold. See D'Israeli GIRL'S MANUAL: Comprising a summary View of Female Studies, Accomplishments, and Prin- ciples of Conduct. Frontispiece. One volume, 18mo., 50 cents. GOLDSMITH— PICTORIAL VICAR OF WAKEFIELD. The Vicar of Wakefield. By Oliver Goldsmith. Illustrated with upwards of 100 engravings on wood, making a beautiful volume, octavo, of 300 pages. $1 25. The same, miniature size, 37 1-2 cents. We love to turn back over these rich old classics of our own language, and re-juvenate our- selves by the never-failing associations which a re-perusal always calls up. Let anyone who has not read this immortal t:ile for fifteen or twenty years, try the experiment, and we will warrant that be rises up from the task — the pleasure, we sliould have said — a happier and a better man. In the good old Vicar of Wakefield, all is pure gold, without dross or alloy of any kind. This much we have said to our last generation readers. This edition of the work, however, we take it was got up for the benefit of the rising generation, and we really envy our young friends the plea- sure which is before such of them as will read it for the first time. — Savannah Republican. GOLDSMITH.— ESSAYS ON VARIOUS SUBJECTS, By Oliver Goldsmith. Miniature size, 37 1-2 cents. Forming one of the series of '' Miniature Classical Library." GRESLEY— PORTRAIT OF A CHURCHMAN, By the Rev. W. Gresley, A. M. From the Seventh English edition. One elegant volume, 16mo., 75 cents. " The main part of this admirable volume is occupied upon the illustration of the practical workinnr of Church principles when sincerely received, setting forth their value in the commerce of daily liie, and how surely they conduct those who embrace them in the safe and quiet path of holy life." GRESLEY— A TREATISE ON PREACHING, In a Series of Letters by the Rev. W. Gresley, M. A. Revised, with Supple- mentary Notes, by the Rev. Benjamin I. Haight, M. A., Rector of All Saints' Church, New York. One volume, 12mo. ^1 25. Advertisement. — Tn preparing the American edition of Mr. Gresley's valuable Treatise, a few foot-notes have been added by the Editor, which are distinguished by brackets. The more extend- ed notes at the end have been selected from the best works on the subject — and which, v/ith one or two exceptions, are not easily accessible to the American student. HAMILTON— THE LIFE OF ALEXANDER HAMILTON, Edited by his son, John C. Hamilton. Two volumes, 8vo., $5 00. We cordially recommend the perusal and diligent study of these volumes, exhibiting, aa they do, much valuable matter relative to tbe Revolution, the establishment of the Federal Constitu- tion, and other important events in the annals of our country. — JV. Y. Review. HEMANS— THE COMPLETE POETICAL WORKS Of Felicia Hemans, printed from the last English edition, edited by her Sister. Illustrated with 6 steel Engravings. One beautifully printed and portable volume, 16mo., ^ , or in two volumes, $ Of this highly accomplished poetess it has been truly said, that of all her sex " few have writ- ten so much and so well." Although her writings possess an energy equal to their high-toned beauty, yet are they so pure and so refined, that not a line of them could feeling spare or delicacy blot fiom her pages. Her imagination v.as rich, chaste, and glowing. Her chosen themes are the cradle, the hearth-stone, and the death-bed. In her poems of Coeur de Lion, Ferdinand of Ara- gon, and Bernard del Carpio, we see beneath the glowing colors with which she clothes her ideas, the feelings of a woman's heart. Her earlier poems. Records of Woman and Forest Sanctuary, itand unrivalled. In short, her works will ever be read by a pious and enlightened community. HEMANS-SONGS OF THE AFFECTIONS, By Felicia Hemans. One volume, 32mo., gilt. 31 cents. Forming one of the series of" Miniature Classical Library." HARE— SERMONS TO A COUNTRY CONGREGATION, By Augustus William Hare, A. M., late Fellow of New College, and Rector of Alton Barnes. One volume, royal 8vo,, $3 85, Applcton's Catalogue of Valuable Publications. HALL— THE PRINCIPLES OF DIAGNOSIS, By Marshall Hall, M. D., F. R. S., &c. Second edition, with many improve- ments. By Dr. John A. Sweet. One volume, 8vo., ^2 00. This work was published in accordance with the desire of some of the most celebrated physi- cians of this country, who were anxious that it should be brought witliin the reach of all classes of medical men, to whose attention it offers strong claims as the best work on the subject. HAZEN— SYMBOLICAL SPELLING-BOOK. The Symbolical Spelling-Book, in two parts. By Edward Hazen. Contain- ing 288 engravings. 18 3-4 cents. This work is used in upwards of one thousand different schools, and pronounced to be one of the best works published. HODGE— THE STEAM-ENGINE: Its Origin and gradual Improvement, from the time of Hero to the present day, as adapted to Manufactures, Locomotion, and Navigation. Illustrated with 48 Plates in full detail, numerous wood cuts, &c. By Paul R. Hodge, C. £. One volume folio of plates, and letter-press in 8vo. $10 00. This work should be placed in the " Captain's Office " of every steamer in our country, and also with every engineer to whom is confided the control of the engine. From it they would de- rive all the information which would enable them to comprehend the cau^.* and effects of every ordinary accident, and also the method promptly and successfully to repair any injury, and to rem- edy any defect. HOLYDAY TALES: Consisting of pleasing Moral Stories for the Young. One volume, square 16mo., with numerous illustrations. 37 1-2 cents. This is a most capital little book. The stories are evidently written by an able hand and that too in an exceedingly Kttractive style. — Spectator. HOOKER— THE COMPLETE WORKS Of that learned and judicious divine, Mr. Richard Hooker, with an account of his Life and Death. By Isaac Walton. Arranged by the Rev. John Keble, M. A. First American from the last Oxford edition. With a complete general Index, and Index of the texts of Scripture, prepared expressly for this edition. Two elegant volumes, 8vo., $4 00. Contents. — The Editor's Preface comprises a general survey of the former edition of Hooker's Works, with Historical Illustrations of the period. Afler which follows the Life of Hooker, by Isaac Walton. His chief work succeeds, on the " Laws of Ecclesiasticul Polity." It commences with a lengthened Preface designed as an address "to them who seek the refor- mation of the Laws and Orders Ecclesiastical of the Church of England." The discussion is divi- dedintoeight books, which include an investigation of the topics. After those eight books of the "Laws of Ecclesiastical Polity," follow two Sermons, "The certainty and perpetuity of Faith in the elect; especially of the Prophet Habakkuk's faith ;" and " Justification, Works, and how the foundation of faith is overthrown." Next are introduced " A supplication made to the Council by Master Walter Travers," and " Mr. Hooker's answer to the supplication that Mr Travcrs made to the Council." Then follow two Sermons — " On the nature of Pride," and a " Remedy against Sorrow and Fear." Two Sermons on part of the epistle of the Apostle Jude are next in- serted, with a prefatory dedication by Henry Jackson. The last article in the works of Mr. Hooker is a Sermon on Prayer. The English edition in three volumes sells at $10 00. The American is an exact reprint, at less than half the price. HUDSON— THE ADVENTURES OF HENRY HUDSON, By the author of " Uncle Philip's Conversations." Frontispiece. 18mo., cloth. 37 cents. Forming one of the series of" A Library for my Young Countrymen." This little volume furnishcu us, from authentic sources, the most important facts in this cele- brated adventurer's life, and in a style that possesses more than ordinary interest. — Eveninv Post. HOWITT-THE CHILD'S PICTURE AND VERSE-BOOK; Commonly called "Otto Speckter's Fable-Book." Translated from the Ger- man by Mary Howitt. Illustrated with 100 engravings on w^ood. Square 12mo., in ornamental binding, $ A celebrated German review says, " Of this production, which makes itself an epoch in the world of children, it is superfluous to speak. The Fable-Book is throughout all Germany in the hands of parents and children, and will alwavs be new, because every year fresh children are born " 12 Appleton's Catalogue of Valuable Publications. HOWITT— LOVE AND MONEY; An Every-Day Tale, by Mary Hovvitt. 18mo., two Plates, cloth gilt, 38 cents. LITTLE COJN, MUCH CARE ; Or, How Poor People Live. By Mary Hovvitt. ISmo., two Plates, 38 cents. SOWING AND REAPING; Or, What will Come of It. By Mary Howitt. 18mo., two Plates, 38 cents. ALICE FRANKLIN; A Sequel to Sowing and Reaping — a Tale. By Mary Howitt. 18mo. two Plates, cloth gilt, 38 cents. WORK AND WAGES; Or, Life in Service— a Tale. By Mary Howitt. 18mo., two Plates, cloth gilt, 38 cents. STRIVE AND THRIVE; A Tale. By Mary Howitt. 18mo., two Plates, cloth gilt, 38 cents. WHO SHALL BE GREATEST; A Tale. By Mary Howitt. 18mo., two Plates, cloth gilt, 38 cents. WHICH IS THE WISER; Or, People Abroad— a Tale. By Mary Howitt. 18mo., two Plates, 38 cents. HOPE ON, HOPE EVER; Or, The Boyhood of Felix Law— a Tale. By Mary Howitt. 18mo., two Plates, cloth gilt, 38 cents. NO SENSE LIKE COMMON SENSE; A Tale. By Mary Howitt. 18nio., two Plates, cloth gilt, 38 cents. ♦^* The above ten volumes form a portion of the series published under the general title of 'Tales for the People and their Children." Of late years many writers have exerted their talent<3 in juvenile literature, with great success. Miss Martineau has made political economy as familiar to boys as it formerly was to statesmen. Our own Miss Sedgwick has produced some of the most beautiful moral stories, for the edification and delight of children, which have ever been written. The Hon. Horace Mann, in addresses to adults, has presented the claims of children for good education, with a power and eloquence of style, and an elevation of thought, which shows his heart is in his work. The stories of Mary Howitt. Harriet Martineau, Mrs. Copley, and Mrs. Ellis, which form a part of" Tales for the Peo- ple and their Children," will be found valuable additions to juvenile literature ; at the same time they may be read with profit by parents for the good lessons they inculcate, and by all other read- ers for the literary excellence they display We wish they could be placed in the hands and engraven on the minds of all the youth in the country. They manifest a nice and accurate observation of human nature, and especially the na- ture of children, a fine sympathy with every thing good and pure, and a capability of infusing it in the minds of others — great beauty and simplicity of style, and a keen eye to practical life, with all its faults, united with a deep love for ideal excellence. Messrs Appleton & Co deserve the highest praise for the excellent manner in which they have ''got up" their juvenile library, and we sincerely hope that its success will be so great as to induce them to make continual contributions to its treasures. The collection is one which should be owned by every parent wlio wishes that the moral and intellectual improvement of his children should keep pace with their growth in years, and the development of their physical powers. — .American Traveller JERRAM.— THE CHILD'S OWN STORY-BOOK; Or, Tales and Dialogues for the Nursery. By Mrs. Jerram (late Jane Eliza- beth Holmes). Illustrated with numerous Engravings. 50 cents. There are seventy stories in this volume. They are admirably adapted for the countloss youth for whose edification they are narrated — Boston Oaiette. JOHNSON— THE HISTORY OF RASSELAS, Prince of Abyssinia — a Tale. By Samuel Johnson, LL. D. 32mo., gilt leaves, 38 cents. *** Forming one of the series of" Miniature Claesical Library.*' 13 Appleton's Catalogue of Valuable Publications. JAMES.-THE TRUE CHRISTIAN, Exemplified in a Series of Addresses, by Rev. John Angell James. One vol. 18mo, 38 cents. These addresses are amongst the choicest effusions of the admirable author. — Chr. Intell. THE ANXIOUS INQUIRER A-fter Salvation Directed and Encouraged. By Rev. John Angell James. One volume, IBmo., 38 cents. Upwards of twenty thousand copies of this excellent little volume have been sold, which fully attests the liigh estimation the work has attained with the religious community. HAPPINESS, ITS NATURE AND SOURCES. By Rev. John Angell James. One volume, 32mo., 25 cents. This is written in the excellent author's best vein. A better book wc have not in a long time seen. — Evana-dist. THE CHRISTIAN PROFESSOR Addressed in a Series of Counsels and Cautions to the Members of Christian Churches. By Rev. John Angell James. Second edition. One volume, 18mo., 63 cents. A most excellent work from the able and prolific pen of Mr. James.— CAr. Intelligencer. THE YOUNG MAN FROM HOME. In a Series of Letters, especially directed for the Moral Advancement of Youth. By Rev. John Angell James. Fifth edition. One volume, 18mo., 38 cents. The work is a rich treasury of Christian counsel and instruction. — Albany Advertiser. THE WIDOW DIRECTED To the Widow's God. By Rev. John Angell James. One volume, 18mo., 38 cents. The book is worthy to be read by others besides the class for which it is especially designed ; nnd we doubt not that it is destined to come as a friendly visitor to many a house of mourning, and as a healing balm to many a wounded heart. — JV. Y. Observer KEIGHTLEY.— THE MYTHOLOGY OF GREECE And Italy, designed for the use of Schools. By Thomas Keightley. Nume- rous wood-cut illustrations. One volume, l8mo., half bound, 44 cents. This is a neat little volume, and well adapted to the purpose for which it wa.' prepared. It presents, in a very compendious and convenient form, every thing relating to the subject, of impor- tance to the young student. — L. I. Star. KINGSLEY.— THE SACRED CHOIR: A Collection of Church Music, consisting of Selections from the most distin- guished Authors, among whom are the names of Haydn, Mozart, Beetho- ven, Pergolessi, &c. &.C., with several pieces of Music by the Author; also a Progressive Elementary System of Instruction for Pupils. By George Kingsley, author of the Social Choir, &c. &c. Fourth edition. 75 cents. Mr. George Kingsley : Sir, — We have examinedthe " Sacred Choir" enough to lead us to ap- preciate the work as the best publication of Sacred Music extant. Tt is beautifully printed and substantially bound conferring credit on the publishers. We bespeak for the " Sacred Ciioir " an extensive circulation. O. S. Bowdoin, Sinceiely ycurs, E O. Goodwin, D. Ingraham. KIP.-THE DOUBLE WITNESS OF THE CHURCH, By Rev. Wm. Ingraham Kip, author of "Lenten Fast."' One volume, 12mo. Second edition. Boards 75 cents, cloth $1 00. This is a sound, clear, and able production — a book much wanted for these times, and one that we feel persuaded will prove eminently useful. It is a happy delineation of that doudle witness which the Church bears against Romanism and ultra-Protestantism, and points out her middle path as the only one of truth and safety. — Banner of the Cross. 14 Appleton's Catalogue of Valuable Publications. LAFEVER— BEAUTIES OF MODERN ARCHITECTURE; Consisting of forty-eight Plates of Original Designs, with Plans, Elevations, and Sections, also a Dictionary of Technical Terms ; the whole forming a complete Manual for the Practical Builder. By M. Lafever, Architect. One volume, large 8vo., half bound, $6 00. STAIR-CASE AND HAND-RAIL Construction. The Modern Practice of Stair-case and Hand-rail Construction, practically explained, in a Series of Designs. By M. Lafever, Architect With Plans and Elevations for Ornamental Villas. Fifteen Plates. One volume, large 8vo., ^3 00. Mr. Lafever's " Beauties of Architecture," and his " Practice of Stair-case and Hand-rail con- Btruction," constitute two volumes rich in instruction in those departments of business. They are a necessary acquisition not only to the operative workman, but to all landlords and proprietors of houses, who would combine both the ornamental and useful in their family dwellings, and also understand the most economical and profitable modes by which their edifices can be erected and repaired. LEWIS-RECORDS OF THE HEART, By Sarah Anna Lewis. One volume, 12mo., ^1 00. We have read some of the pieces with much pleasure. They indicate poetic genius of no or- dinary kind, and are imbued with much feeling and pathos. We welcome the volume as a credit- able accession to the poetic literature of the country. — Boston Traveller. LIEBIG.-FAMILIAR LETTERS ON CHEMISTRY, And its relation to Commerce, Physiology, and Agriculture. By Justus Lie- big, M. D. Edited by John Gardner, M. D. One volume. 13 cents in paper, 25 cents bound. The Letters contained in this little volume embrace some of the most important points of the Science of Chemistry, in their application to Natural Philosophy, Physiology, Agriculture, and Commerce. LETTER-WRITER, The Useful Letter- Writer, comprising a succinct Treatise on the Epistolary Art, and Forms of Letters for all ordinary Occasions of Life. Compiled from the best authorities. Frontispiece. 32mo., gilt leaves, 38 cents. Forming one of the series of " Miniature Classical Library." LOOKING-GLASS FOR THE MIND; Or, Intellectual Mirror. Being an elegant Collection of the most delightful little Stories and interesting Tales ; chiefly translated from that much ad- mired work, L'ami des Enfans. Illustrated with numerous wood-cuts. From the twentieth London edition. One volume, 18mo., 50 cents. Forming one of the series of" Tales for the People and their Children." LOG CABIN: Or, The World before You. By the author of " Three Experiments of Liv- ing," " The Huguenots in France and America," etc. One volume, ISmc, 50 cents. Every person who takes up this volume will read it with interest. It is truly what the writer intended it should be — " A Guide to Usefulness and Happiness." LOVER -HANDY ANDY: A Tale of Irish Life, by Samuel Lover. Illustrated with twenty-three char- acteristic steel Engravings. One volume, Svo., cloth $1 25, boards $1 00. Cheap edition, two Plates, paper, 50 cents. This boy Handy will be the death of us. What is the police force about to allow the uttering of a publication that has already brought us to the brink of apoplexy fifty times ?— Sport. Review. L. S. D.— TREASURE TROVE A Tale, by Samuel Lover. One volume, 8vo., with two steel Engravings. Paper cover, 25 cents. This is a capital thing. The gay and the grave, the " lively and severe," are united with a skilful hand, and there is a latent tone of sound morality running through "L. S, D." which will give a lasting value to its pages. — Commercial .Advertiser. Appleton's Catalogue of Valuable Publications. LUCY AND ARTHUR; A Book for Children. Illustrated with numerous engravings, elegantly bound in cloth. 50 cents. Lucy and Arthur is a charming story of the nurserk, prepared oy an experienced author. Se- cure it for the family. — American Traveller. LYRA APOSTOLICA. From the Fifth English edition. One elegantly printed volume, 75 cents. In this elegant volume there are forty-five sections, and one hundred and seventy-nine lyric poems, all short, and many of them sweet. — JVeio York American. MAGEE— ON ATONEMENT AND SACRIFICE: Discourses and Dissertations on the Scriptural Doctrines of Atonement and Sacrifice, and on the Principal Arguments advanced, and the Mode of Reasoning employed, by the Opponents of those Doctrines, as held by the Established Church. By the late Most Rev. William M'Gee, D. D., Arch- bishop of Dublin. Two volumes, 8vo., $5 00. This is one of the ablest critical and polemical works of modern times. The profound biblical information on a variety of topics which the Archbishop brings forward, must endear his name to all lovers of Christianity. — Orme. MANNING -THE UNITY OF THE CHURCH, By the Rev. Henry Edward Manning, M. A., Archdeacon of Chichester. One volume, 16mo., $1 00. Part I. The History and Exposition of the Doctrine of Catholic Unity. Part II. The Moral Design of Catholic Unity. Part III. The Doctrine of Catholic Unity applied to the Actual State' of Christendom. We commend it earnestly to the devout and serious perusal of all Churchmen, and particularly of all clergymen, as the ablest discussion we ever met with of a deeply and vitally important sub- ject. — Churchman. MARRYAT— MASTERMAN READY; Or, The Wreck of the Pacific. Written for Young Persons, by Capt. Marry- at. Complete in 3 vols., 18mo., with Frontispiece, cloth gilt, $1 25. Forming a portion of the series of" Tales for the People and their Children." We have never seen any thing from the same pen we like as well as this. It is the modern Crusoe, and is entitled to take rank with that charming romance. — Commercial Advertiser. MARSHALL-NOTES ON THE EPISCOPAL POLITY Of the Holy Catholic Church, with some account of the Developments of Mo dern Religious Systems, by Thomas William Marshall, B. A., of the Dio cese of Salisbury. Edited by Jonathan M. Wainwright, D. D. With a new and complete Index of the Subjects and of the Texts of Scripture One volume, i2mo., $1 25. I. Introduction. II. Scripture Evidence. III. Evidence of Antiquity. IV. Admission ot Adversaries. V. Developmentof Modern Religious Systems. A more important work than this has not been issued for a long time. We earnestly recom mend it to the attention of every Churchman. — Banner of the Cross. MARTINEAU-THE CROFTON BOYS ; A Tale for Youth, by Harriet Martineau. One volume, ]8mo., Frontispiece Cloth gilt, 38 cents. Forming one of the series of "Tales for the People and their Children." It abounds in interest, and is told with the characteristic ability and spirit of the distinguished author. — Evening Post. THE PEASANT AND THE PRINCE; A Tale of the French Revolution, by Harriet Martineau. One volume, 18mo, Frontispiece. Cloth gilt, 38 cents. Forming one of the series of" Tales for the People and their Children.' This is a most inviting little history of Louis the Sixteenth and his family. Here, in a style even more familiar than Scott's Talss of a Grandfather, we have a graphic epitome of many facts connected with the days of the " Revolution." — Courier 8f Enquirer. 16 Appleton's Catalogue of Valuable Publications. MAURICE— THE KINGDOM OF CHRIST; Or, Hints respecting the Principles, Constitution, and Ordinances of the Cath- olic Church. By Rev. Frederick Denison Maurice, M. A. London. One volume, 8vo., 600 pages, $2 50. On the theory of the Church of Christ, all should consult the work of Mr. Maurice, the most philosophical writer of the day. — Pruf. GarbetVs Bampton Lectures, 1842 MILTON— THE COMPLETE POETICAL WORKS Ol John Milton, with Explanatory Notes and a Life of the Author, by the Rev. Henry Stebbing, A. M. Illustrated with six steel Engravings. One vol- ume, 16mo., ^1 25. Forming one of the series of "Cahinet Edition of Standard Poets." *:^* The Latin and Italian Poems are included in this edition. Mr. Stebbing's Notes will be found very useful in elucidating the learned allusions with which the text abounds, and they are also valuable for the correct appreciation with which the writer di- rects attention to the beauties of the author. PARADISE LOST, By John Milton. With Notes, by Rev. H. Stebbing. One volume, 18mo., cloth 38 cents, gilt leaves 50 cents. PARADISE REGAINED, By John Milton. With Notes, by Rev. H. Stebbing. One volume, 18mo., cloth 25 cents, gilt leaves 38 cents. MAXWELL-FORTUNES OF HECTOR O'HALLORAN And his man IMark Antony O'Toole, by W. H. Maxwell. One volume, 8vo., two plates, paper, 50 cents, twenty-four plates, boards, $1 00, cloth, ^1 25. It is one of the best of all the Irish stories, full of s.jJrit, fun, drollery, and wit. — Cour. ^- Enq. MOORE -LALLAH ROOKH ; An Oriental Romance, by Thomas Moore. One volume, 32mo., frontispiece, cloth gilt, 38 cents. Forming a portion of the series of" Miniature Classical Library." This exquisite Poem has long been the admiration of readers of ail classes. MORE— PRACTICAL PIETY, By Hannah More. One volume, 32mo., frontispiece, 38 cents. Forming one of the series of-' Miniature Classical Library." "Practical Piety" has always bee deemed the most attractive and eloquent of all Hannah More's works. PRIVATE DEVOTION! A Series of Prayers and Meditations, with an Introductory Essay on Prayer, chiefly from the writings of Hannah More. From the twenty-fifth London edition. One volume, 32mo., Frontispiece, cloth gilt, 31 cents. Forming one of the series of" Miniature Classical Library." m Upwards of fifty thousand copies of this admirable manual have been sold in the U. States. DOMESTIC TALES And Allegories, illustrating Human Life. By Hannah More. One volume, 18mo., 38 cents. Contents. — I. Shepherd of Salisbury Plain. II, Mr. Fantom the Philosopher. III. Two Shoemakers. IV. Giles the Poacher. V. Servant turned Soldier. VI. General Jail Delivery. RURAL TALES, By Hannah More. One volume, 18mo., 38 cents. Contents.— I. Parley the Porter. II. All for the Best. III. Two Wealth" Farmers. IV Tom White. V. Pilgrims. VL Valley of Teais. Forming a portion of the series of "Tales for the People and their Children." These two volumes comprise that portion of Hannah More's Repository Tales which are adapted to general usefulness in this country. 17 Appletoji's Catalogue of Valuable Publications. NAPOLEON— PICTORIAL HISTORY Of Napoleon Bonaparte, translated from the French of M. Laurent de L'Ar deche, with Five Hundred spirited Illustrations, after designs by Horace Vernet, and twenty Original Portraits engraved in the best style. Com- plete in two handsome volumes, 8vo., about 500 pages each, $3 50 ; cheap edition, paper cover, four parts, $2 00. The work is superior to the long, verbose productions of Scott and Bourienne — not in style alone, but in trutli— being written to please neither Charles X. nor the English aristocracy, but for the cause of Ireedom. It lias advaniayi.s over every other memoir extant. — American Traveller. NEWMAN— PAROCHIAL SERMONS, By John Henry Newman, B. D. Six volumes of the English edition in two volumes, 8vo., $5 00. SERMONS BEARING ON SUBJECTS Of the Day, by John Henry Newman, B. D. One volume, 12mo., $1 25. As a compendium of Christian duty, these Sermons will be read by people of all denomina- tions ; iis models of style, they will be valued by writers inevery department of literature.— t/nifed Slates Oaiette. OGILBY— ON LAY-BAPTISM: An Outline of the Argument against the Validity of Lay-Baptism. By John D. Ogilby, D. D., Professor of Eccles. History. One vol., 12mo., 75 cents. From a cursory inspection of it, we take it to be a thorough, fearless, and able discussion of the subject which it proposes— aiming less to excite inquiry, than to satisfy by learned and ingenious argument inquiries already excited. — Churchman. CATHOLIC CHURCH IN ENGLAND And America. Three Lectures — L The Church in England and America Apostolic and Catholic. H. The Causes of the English Reformation. HI. Its Character and Results. By John D. Ogilby, D. D. One vol., 16mo., 75 cents. " I believe in one Catholic and Apostolic Church." JVtcene Creed Prof, Ogilby has furnished the Church, in this little volume, with a most valuable aid. We think it is d.esigned to become a text-book oa the subject of which it treats. — True Catholic. OLD OAK TREE: Illustrated with numerous wood-cuts. One volume, 18mo., 38 cents. The precepts conveyed are altogrther unexceptionable, and the volume is well calculated to prove attractive with children. — Saturday Chronicle. OLMSTED— INCIDENTS OF A WHALING VOYAGE: To which is added, Observations on the Scenery, Manners, and Customs, and Missionary Stations of the Sandwicli and Society Islands, accompanied by numerous Plates. By Francis Allyn Olmsted. One vol., 12mo., $1 50. The work embodies a mass of intelligence interesting to the ordinary reader as well as to the philosophical inquirer. — Courier Sf Enquirer. PAGET.-TALES OF THE VILLAGE, By the Rev. Francis E. Paget, M. A. Three elegant volumes, ISmo., $1 75. ^ The first series, or volume, presents a popular view of the contrast in opinions and modes of thought between Churchmen and Romanists ; the second sets forth Church principles, as opposed to what, in England, is termed Dissent; and the tliird places in contrast the chaiacter of the Churchman and the Infidel. At any time these volumes would be valuable, especially to the young. At present, when men's minds are much turned to such subjects, they cannot fail of being eagerly sought for. — JVew-York American. PALMER— A TREATISE ON THE CHURCH Of Christ. Designed chiefly for the use of Students in Theology. By the Rev. William Palmer, M. A., of Worcester College, Oxford. Edited, with Notes, by the Right Rev. W. R. Whittingham, D. D., Bishop of the Prot. Epis. Church in the Diocese of Maryland. Two volumes, 8vo., $5 00. The chief design of this work is to supply some answer to the assertion so frequently made, that individuals are not bound to submit to any ecclesiastical authority whatever : or that, if they are, they must, in consistency, accept Romanism with all its claims and errors. — Preface, 18 Appleton's Catalogue of Valuable Publications. PARNELL— APPLIED CHEMISTRY, In Manufactures, Arts, and Domestic Economy. Edited by E. A. Parnell. Illustrated with numerous wood Engravings, and specimens of Dyed and Printed Cottons. Paper cover 75 cents, cloth $1 00. The Editor's aim is to divest the work, as far as practicable, of all technical terms, so as to adaj)t it to the requirements of the general reader. The above forms the first division of the work. It is the author's intention to continue it from time to time, so as to form a complete Practical Encyclopaedia of Chemistry applied to the Arts. The subjects to immediately follow will be, Manufacture of Glass, Indigo, Sulphuric Acid, Zinc, Potash, Coffee, Tea, Chocolate, &c. PEARSON— AN EXPOSITION OF THE CREED, By John Pearson, D. D., late Bishop of Chester. With an Appendix, contain- ing the principal Greek and Latin Creeds. Revised and corrected by the Rev. W. S. Dobson, M. A., Peterhouse, Cambridge. One vol., 8vo., ^2 00. The following may he stated as the advantages of this edition over all others : First — Great care has been taken to correct the numerous errors in the references to the texts of Scripture, which had crept in by reason of the repeated editions through which this admirable work has passed; and many references, as will be seen on turning to the Index of Texts, have been added. Secondly — The Quotations in the Notes have been almost universally identified and the refer- ence to them adjoined. Lastly — The principal Symbola or Creeds, of which the particular Articles have been cited by the Autlior, have been annexed ; and wherevei the original writers have given the Symbola in a scattered and disjointed manner, the detached parts have been brought into a successive and con- nected point of view. These have been added in Chronological order, in the form of an Appen- dix.— Ta/e Editor PHILIP— THE LIFE AND OPINIONS Of Dr. Milne, Missionary to China. Illustrated by Biographical Annals of Asiatic Missions, from Primitive Protestant Times : intended as a Guide to Missionary Spirit. By Rev. Robert Philip. One vol., 12mo., 50 cents. The work is executed with great skill, and embodies a vast amount of valuable missionary inte ligence, besides a rich variety of personal incidents, adapted to gratify notonly the missionary or the Christian, but the more general reader. — Observer. YOUNG MAN'S CLOSET LIBRARY, By Robert Philip. With an Introductory Essay, by Rev. Albert Barnes. One volume, 12mo., $1 00. LOVE OF THE SPIRIT, Traced in His Work : a Companion to the Experimental Guides. By Robert Philip. One volume, 18mo., 50 cents. DEVOTIONAL AND EXPERIMENTAL Guides. By Robert Philip. With an Introductory Essay by Rev. Albert Barnes. Two volumes, 12mo., $1 75. Containing Guide to the Per- plexed, Guide to the Devotional, Guide to the Thoughtful, Guide to the Doubting, Guide to the Conscientious, Guide to Redemption. LADY'S CLOSET LIBRARY: The Marys, ^ r Beauty of Female Holiness ; The ]Marthas, or Varieties of Fe- male Piet} ; The Lydias, or Development of Female Character. By Rob- ert Philip. Each volume, 18mo., 50 cents The MATERNAL series of the above popular Library is now ready, entitled The Hannahs ; or, Maternal Influence of Sons. By Robert Philip. One volume, 18mo., 50 cents. The author of this excellent work is known to the public as one of the most prolific writers of the day, and scarcely any writer in the department which he occupies has acquired so extensive and well-merited a populnTity.— Evangelist. POLLOK.— THE COURSE OF TIME, By Robert Pollok. With a Life of the Author, and complete Analytical In- dex, prepared expressly for this edition. 32mo., frontispiece, 38 cents. Forming one of the series of " Miniature Classical Library." Few modern Poems exist which at once attained such acceptance and celebrity as this. 19 Appletoii's Catalogue of Valuable Publications. PRATT.-DAWNINGS OF GENIUS; Or, the Early Lives of some Eminent Persons of the last Century. By Anne Pratt. One volume, 18mo., frontispiece, 38 cents. Forming one of the series of" A Library for my Young Countrymen." Contents. — Sir Humphrey Davy — Rev. George Crabhe — Baron Cuvier — Sir Joshua Reyrolrla — Lindley Murray — Sir James Mackintosh — Dr. Adam Clarke. PRIZE STORY-BOOK: Consisting chiefly of Tales, translated from the German, French, and Italian, together witli Select Tales from the English. Illustrated with numerous Engravings from new designs. One thick volume, 16mo., cloth gilt. PURE GOLD FROM THE RIVERS OF WISDOM: A Collection of Short Extracts from the most Eminent Writers — Bishop Hall, Jeremy Taylor, Barrow, Hooker, Bacon, Leighton, Addison, Wilberforce, Johnson, Young, Southey, Lady Montague, Hannah More, etc. One volume, 32mo., frontispiece, cloth gilt, 31 cents. Forming one of the series of " Miniature Classical Library." PUSS IN BOOTS: A pure Translation in Prose, from the original German. Illustrated with I'i original Designs, suitable for the Tastes of the Young or Old, by the cele- brated artist, Otto Speckter. One vol., square 12mo., cloth gilt. SAINT PIERRE.-PAUL AND VIRGINIA: A Tale, by J. B. H. De Saint Pierre. One volume, 32mo., frontispiece, cloth gilt, 31 cents. Forming one of the series of" Miniature Classical Library." SANDHAM— THE TWIN SISTERS: A Tale for Youth, by Mrs. Sandham. From the twentieth London edition. One volume, 18mo., frontispiece, cloth gilt, 38 cents. Forming a portion of the series of "Tales for the People and their Children." The moral is excellent throughout. Its merit renders it a pleasunt book for even grown-up children. — Boston Post. SCOTT— THE POETICAL WORKS Of Sir Walter Scott, Bart. Containing Lay of the Last Minstrel, Marmion, Lady of the Lake, Don Roderick, Rokeby, Ballads, Lyrics, and Songs, with a Life of the Author. Illustrated with six steel Engravings. One volume, l6mo., ^1 25. LADY OF THE LAKE: A Poem, by Sir Walter Scott. One volume, ISmo., frontispiece, cloth 25 cents, gilt edges 38 cents. marmion: A Tale of Flodden Field, by Sir Walter Scott. One volume, 18mo., frontis- piece, cloth 25 cents, gilt edges 38^ents. LAY OF THE LAST MINSTREL: A Poem, by Sir Walter Scott. One volume, 18mo., frontispiece, cloth 25 cents, gilt edges 38 cents. Walter Scott is the most popular of all the poets of the present day, and de^servedly so. lie describes that which is most easily and generally understood with more vivacity and eifect tlian any other writer. His style is clear, flowing, and transparent; his sentiments, of which his style is an easy and natural medium, are common to him with his readers. — Hazlitt. SPINCKES— MANUAL OF PRIVATE DEVOTIONS: (Complete,) collected from the writings of Archbishop Laud, Bishop Andrews, Bishop Ken, Dr. Hickes, Mr. Kettlewell, Mr. Spinckes, and other eminent old English divines. With a Preface by the Rev. Mr. Spinckes. Edited by Francis E. Paget, M. A. One elegant volume, 16mo., $1 00. As a manual of private devotions, it will be found most valuable. — JVewj- York American. 20 Appletoji's Catalogue of Valuable Publications. SPENCER— THE CHRISTIAN INSTRUCTED In the Ways of the Gospel and the Church, in a series of Discourses delivered at St. James's Church, Goshen, New- York. By the Rev. J. A. Spencer, M. A., late Rector. One volume, 16mo., $1 25. This is a very useful volume of Sermons : respectable in style, sound in doctrine, and affec- tionate in tone, tliey are well adapted for reading in the family circle, or placing on the family book-shelf. * * * We think it a work of which the circulation is likely to promote true reli- gion and genuine piety. It is enriched with a body of excellent notes selected from the writings of the dead and living ornaments of the Church in England and this country.— TVtte Catholic. SPRAGUE.— TRUE AND FALSE RELIGION. Lectures illustrating the Contrast between true Christianity and various other Systems. By William B. Sprague, D. D. One volume, 12mo., $1 00. LECTURES TO YOUNG PEOPLE, By W. B. Sprague, D. D. With an Introductory Address, by Samuel Miller, D. D. Fourth edition. One volume, 12mo., 88 cents. SUTTON.-MEDITATIONS ON THE SACRAMENT. Godly Meditations upon the most Holy Sacrament of the Lord's Supper. By Christopher Sutton, D. D., late Prebend of Westminster. One volume, royal 16mo., elegantly ornamented, $1 00. We announced in our last number the republication in this country of Sutton's " Meditations on the Lord's Supper," and, having since read the work, are prepared to recommend it warmly and without qualification to the perusal of our readers. — Banner of the Cross. DISCE MORI— LEARN TO DIE: A Religious Discourse, moving every Christian man to enter into a Serious Remembrance of his End. By Christopher Sutton, D. D. One volume, 16mo., $1 00. Of the three works of this excellent author lately reprinted, the " Disce Mori " is, in our judg- ment, decidedly the best. We do not believe that a single journal or clergyman in the Church will be found to say a word in its disparagement. — Churchman. : DISCE VIVERE— LEARN TO LIVE: Wherein is shown that the Life of Christ is and ought to be an Express Pat- tern for Imitation unto the Life of a Christian. By Christopher Sutton, D. D. One volume, 16mo., $1 00. In the " Disce Vivere," the author moulded his materials, after the manner of a Kempis, into an " Imitatio Christi ;" each chapter inculcating some duty, upon the pattern of Him who gave Himself to be the beginning and the end of all perfection. — Editor^s Preface. SWART.— LETTERS TO MY GODCHILD, By the Rev. J. Swart, A. M., of the Diocese of Western New- York. One volume, 32mo., cloth, gilt leaves, 38 cents. The design of this little work, as expressed by the author in the preface, is, the discharging of Sponsorial obligations. We have read it with interest and pleasure, and deem it well fitted to se- cure its end. — Primitive Standard. SHERLOCK -THE PRACTICAL CHRISTIAN; Or, the Devout Penitent ; a Book of Devotion, containing the Whole Duty of a Christian in all Occasions and Necessities, fitted to the main use of a holy Life. By R. Sherlock, D. D. With a Life of the Author, by the Right Rev. Bishop Wilson, Author of " Sacra Privata," &c. One elegant vol- ume, 16mo., $1 00. Considered as a manual of private devotion, and a means of practical preparation for the Holy Communion of the Body and Blood of Christ, this book is among the best, if not the best, ever commended to the members of our Church. — Churchman. SILLIMAN.— A GALLOP AMONG AMERICAN SCENERY; Or, Sketches of American Scenes and Military Adventure. By Augustus L. Silliman One volume, 16mo., 75 cents. 21. ^. Appleton's Catalogue of Valuable Publications, SHERWOOD— DUTY IS SAFETY; Or, Troublesome Tom, by Mrs. Sherwood. One volume, small 4to., illustra- ted with wood cuts, cloth, 25 cents. THINK BEFORE YOU ACT, By Mrs. Sherwood. One volume, small 4to., wood cuts, cloth, 25 cents. JACK THE SAILOR-BOY, Qy Mrs. Sherwood. One volume, small 4to., wood cuts, cloth, 25 cents. Mrs. Sherwood's stories carry with them always such an excellent moral, that no child can read them without becoming better. — Philadelphia Enquirer. SINCLAIR— SCOTLAND AND THE SCOTCH; Or, the Western Circuit. By Catharine Sinclair, author of Modern Accom- plishments, Modern Society, &c. &c. One volume, 12mo., 75 cents. SHETLAND AND THE SHETLANDERS; Or, the Northern Circuit. By Catharine Sinclair, author of Scotland and the Scotch, Holiday House, &c. &c. One volume, 12mo., 83 cents. The author has proved herself to be a lady of high talent and rich cultivated mind. — JV. Y. Am. SMITH— SCRIPTURE AND GEOLOGY; On the Relation between the Holy Scriptures and some parts of Geological Science. Eight Lectures. By John Pye Smith, D. D., author of the Scripture Testimony of tJie Messiah, &c. &c. One vol., 12mo., ^] 25. ADVENTURES OF CAPT. JOHN SMITH, The Founder of the Colony of Virginia. By the author of Uncle Philip's Conversations. One volume, 18mo., frontispiece, 38 cents. Forming one of the series of" Library for my Young Countrymen. " It will be read by youth with all the interest of a novel, and certainly with much more profit. DISCOURSES ON THE NERVOUS SYSTEM. Select Discourses on the Functions of the Nervous System, in opposition to Phrenology, Materialism, and Atheism ; to which is prefixed a Lecture on the Diversities of the Human Character, arising from Physiological Pecu- liarities. By John Augustine Smith, M. D. One vol., 12mo., 75 cents. PRODUCTIVE FARMING. A Familiar Digest of the Most Recent Discoveries of Liebig, Davy, Johnston, and other celebrated Writers on Vegetable Chemistry, showing how the results of Tillage might be greatly augmented. By Joseph A. Smith. One volume, 12mo., paper cover 31 cents, cloth 50 cents. SOUTHGATE.— TOUR THROUGH TURKEY And Persia. Narrative of a Tour through Armenia, Kurdistan, Persia, and Mesopotamia, with an Introduction and Occasional Observations upon the Condition of Mohammedanism and Christianity in those countries. By the Rev. Horatio Southgate, Missionary of the American Episcopal Church. Two volumes, 12nio., plates, $2 00. SOUTHEY.-THE COMPLETE POETICAL WORKS Of Robert Southey, Esq., LL. D. The ten volume London edition in one ele- gant volume, royal 8vo., with a fine portrait and vignette, $3 50. At the age of sixty-three I have undertaken to collect and edit my poetical works, with the last corrections that I can expect to bestow upon them. They have obtained a reputation equal to my wishes. * * Thus to collect and revise them is a duty which I owe to that part of the pub- lic by whom they have been auspiciously received, and to tliose who will take a lively concern in my good name when I shall have departed. — Extract from Author's Preface. The beauties of Mr. Southcy's poetry arc such, that this edition can hardly fail to find a place in the library of every man fond of elegant literature — Eclectic Revieio Appleton's Catalogue of Valiiftble PiibHratioris. TAYLOR— THE SACRED ORDER AND OFFICES Of Episcopacy Asserted and Maintained ; to which is added, Clerus Domini, a Discourse on the Office Ministerial, bv the Right Rev. Bishop Jeremy Taylor, D. D. One volume, 16mo., $1 00. The reprint in a portable form of this eminent divine's masterly defence of Episcopacy, cannot fail of being welcomed by every Churchman. The publishers have presented this jewel in a fitting casket. — JV*. Y.American. THE GOLDEN GROVE: A choice Manual, containing what is to be Believed, Practised, and Desired, or prayed for ; the Prayers being fitted fur the several Days of the Week. To vi^hich is added, a Guide for the Penitent, or a Model drawn up for the Help of Devout Souls wounded with Sin. Also, Festival Hymns, &c. By the Right Rev. Bishop Jeremy Taylor. One volume, 16mo., 50 cents. THE YOUNG ISLANDERS: A Tale of the Last Century, by Jefl'erys Taylor. One volume, 16mo., beauti- fully illustrated, 75 cents. This fascinating and elegantly illustrated volume for the young is pronounced to equal in inte- rest De Foe's immortal work, Robinson Crusoe. HOME EDUCATION, By Isaac Taylor, author of "Natural History of Enthusiasm," &c. &c. Sec- ond edition. One volume, 12mo., ^1 00. Avery enlightened, just, and Christian view of a most important subject. — Am, Bib. Repos. PHYSICAL THEORY Of another Life, by Isaac Taylor. Third edition. One vol., 12mo., 83 cents. One of the most learned and extraordinary works of modern times. SPIRITUAL CHRISTIANITY. Lectures on Spiritual Christianity, by Isaac Taylor. One vol., 12mo., 75 cents The view which this volume gives of Chiistianity,both as a system of truth and a system of duty, is in the highest degree instructive. — ilbany Evening Journal. NATURAL HISTORY OF SOCIETY In the Barbarous and Civilized State. An Essay towards Discovering the Origin and Course of Human Improvement, by W. Cooke Taylor, LL. D., ifec, of Trinity College, Dublin. Handsomely printed on fine paper. Two volumes, 12mo., $2 25. THOUGHTS IN PAST YEARS: A collection of Poetry, chiefly Devotional, by the author of The Cathedral. One volume, 16mo., felegan'tly printed, $1 25. TOKEN OF AFFECTION. One volume, 32mo., frontispiece, cloth, gilt leaves, 31 cents. FRIENDSHIP. One volume, 32mo., frontispiece, cloth, gilt leaves, 31 cents. LOVE. One volume, 32mo., frontispiece, cloth, gilt leaves, 31 cents. * REMEMBRANCE. One volume, 32mo., frontispiece, cloth, gilt leaves, 31 cents. THE HEART. One volume, 32mo., frontispiece, cloth, gilt leaves, 31 cents. Forming a portion of the scries of" Miniature Classical Library." Each volume consists of nearly one hundred appropriate extracts fiom the best writers of Eng land and America 23 Appleton's Catalogue of Valuable Publications. THOMSON-THE SEASONS, A Poem, by James Thomson. One vol., 32mo., cloth, gilt leaves, 38 cents. Forming one of the series of* Miniature Classical Library." Place " The Seasons " in any light, and the poem appears faultless. — S. C. Hall. URE— DICTIONARY OF ARTS, Manufactures, and Mines, containing a clear Exposition of their Principles and Practice. By Andrew Ure, M. D., F. R. S., &c. Illustrated with 1240 Engravings on wood. One thick volume of 1340 pages, bound in leather, $5 00, or in two volumes, $5 50. In every point of view, a work like the present can but be regarded as a benefit done to theoret- ical and practical science, to commerce and industry, and an important addition to a species of literature the exclusive production of the present century, and the present state of peace and civi- lization. — AtheiKBum. Dr. Ure's Dictionary, of which the American edition is now completed, is a stupendous proof of persevering assiduity, combined with genius and taste. For all the benefit of individual enter- prise in the practical arts and manufactures, and for the enhancement of general prosperity through the extension of accurate knowledge of political economy, we have not any work worthy to be compared with this important volume. We are convinced that manufacturers, merchants, trades- men, students of natural and experimental philosophy, inventive mechanics, men of opulence, members of legislatures, and all who desire to comprehend something of the rapidly accelerating progress of those discoveries which facilitate the supply of human wants, and the augmentation of social comforts with the national weal, will find this invaluable Dictionary a perennial source of salutary instruction and edifying enjoyment. — J^ational Intelligencer. VERY LITTLE TALES, For Very Little Children, in single Syllables of three and four Letters — first series. One volume, square 18mo., numerous illustrations, cloth, 38 cents. Second Series, in single Syllables of four and five Letters. One volume, square ISmo., numerous illustrations — to match first series — 38 cents. WAYLAND— LIMITATIONS OF HUMAN Responsibility. By Francis Wayland, D. D. One volume, 18mo., 38 cents. Contents. — I. The Nature of the Subject. II. Individual Responsibility. III. Individual Responsibility (continued). IV. Persecution on account of Religious Opinions. V. Propagation of Truth. VI. Voluntary Associations. VII. Ecclesiastical Associations. VIII. Official Respon- sibility. IX. The Slavery Question. WILBERFORCE— MANUAL FOR COMMUNICANTS; Or, The Order for administering the Holy Communion ; conveniently arrang- ed with Meditations and Prayers from old English divines : being the Eu- charistica of Samuel Wilberforce, M. A., Archdeacon of Surrey, (adapted to the American service.) 38 cents, gilt leaves 50 cents. We most earnestly commend the work. — Churchman. WILSON.-SACRA PRIVATA. The Private Meditations, Devotions, and Prayers of the Right Rev. T. Wil- son, D. D., Lord Bishop of Soder and Man. First complete edition. One volume, 16mo., elegantly ornamented, $1 00. The reprint is an honor to the American press. The work itself is, perhaps, on the whole, the best devotional treatise in the language. It has never before in this country been printed entire. — Churchman. A neat miniature edition, abridged for popular use, is also published. Price 31 cents. WOMAN'S WORTH; Or, Hints to Raise the Female Character. First American from the last Eng lish edition, with a Recommendatory Notice, by Emily Marshall. One neat volume, 18mo., cloth gilt 38 cents, paper cover 25 cents. The sentiments and principles enforced in this book may be safely commended to the atten- tion of women of all ranks. — London Atlas. YOUTH'S BOOK OF NATURE; Or, The Four Seasons Illustrated, being Familiar Descriptions of Natural His- tory, made during Walks in the Country, by Rev. H. B. Draper, Illustra- ted with upwards of 50 wood Engravings. One vol., square 16mo., 75 cents. One of the most faultless volumes for the voung that has ever been issued.— C*r. R^fleetor. '24 ;^ D. APPLETON & COMPANY, HAVE JUST PUBLISHED, MISCELLANEOUS ESSAYS ON CHRISTIAN MORALS, EXPERIMENTAL AND PEACTICAL, ORIGINALLY DELIVERED AS LECTURES AT BROADMEAD CHAPEL, BRISTOL, BY JOHN FOSTER. One Volume, 18mo. of near 300 pages, 50 cents. This volume contains twenty-six subjects : I. The New Year. II. Spring and its Moral Attributes. — III. Autumn and its Moral Attri- butes. — IV. Winter and its Moral Attributes — V. Supreme Attachment due to Spiritual Objects. — VI. Spiritual Freedom produced by know- ledge of the Truth. — VII. Christ, though invisible, the object of devout affection. — VIII. Fallacies operating against Earnestness in Religion. IX. Earnestness in Religion enforced. — X. Comprehensiveness of the Di- vine Law. — XI. Self-Discipline suitable to certain Mental States.— XII. Characteristics of Vain Thoughts. — XIII. Correctives of Vain Thoughts. XIV. Necessity and Right Method of Self-Examination. — XV.Uses and Per- version of Conscience. — XVI. Formality and Remissness in Prayer. — XVII. "Watchfulness and Prayer. — XVIII. Sober-Mindedness. — XIX. False Grounds of Superiority in Holiness. — XX. Right Mode of giving and receiv- ing Reproof. — XXI. Noah and the Deluge. — XXII. Destruction of Sodom and Gomorrah. — XXIII. Elijah's Sacrifice and the Priests of Baal. — XXIV. Ignorance of our Mode of Future Existence. — XXV. Christian Doctrine of the Perfectibility of Man. — XXVI. End of the Year. The renowned Essayist, by the request of his friends, delivered at Bris- tol some years since a series of Lectures which are now issued under the title of Essays. The volume comprises twenty-six topics, combining in an unusual degree both novelty and variety. Among the attractive works of more recent publication this ranks of the very superior order. It is issued as a pocket companion and as the disquisitions are both concise and animating, few books can be named which are more suited to arrest the attention of the traveller and to occupy the occasional leisure of the store and counting room. For youth, and Sabbath school and district Li- braries, probably not one book of its class can be selected which has stronger claims than this volume. c < 1^; I^^K^^I^MK 'Z2k_ c:z^mZL < d . cc^c cr ^ c< :jc _ ^ic: cgrc: ; 0^^ . :,^^-:f5:ci c^-^^^.co: " ca